263 17 197MB
English Pages 814 [830] Year 1952
GREAT BOOKS OF THE WESTERN WORLD
\
.
5&^iH2H2&?&?&7&r2i
12.
LUCRETIUS PPirTFTTIS
Intrpduct
l.The 2.
The
3.
The
082 GRE
art
I
000
I
«
DATE DUE
>n «..»»»»
j—>i_—:A^A-=
rj -rJ-.
~
-
(
8'*U
° reat books of th * Western
g*H3
.World
GA 11.
;
082 GRE
EU AR AP NI
5^J
i>
,v» ,t£ ;v
ESTERN WORLD
41.
GILBERT (.A LI LEO
__
mmm
•
******>**
--^^
^v^f^H^i
-^-^.
^^^
Digitized by the Internet Archive in
2011
http://www.archive.org/details/greatbooksofwest7hutc
ROBERT VICKLROY
The Dialogues of
PLATO 7 R
INSl ITED BY
\|
HI
\
The Seventh 7
R.lXSL.tri-D
l!\
I.
\1
1
\
low
I
I
1
Letter
HARWARD
William Bextox, Publr
ENCYCLOPEDIA BRITANNICA, CHICAGO- LOS DOS
•
INC.
TOROSTO GENEVA* SYDNEY-TOKYO •
-J- -J-
of Plato, translated by Benjamin Jowett, is reprinted arrangement with Ozfoid University Press
The Dialogues b>
The Seventh by
J.
Epistle
is
reprinted from
The
Platonic Epistles, translated
Harward, by arrangement with Cambridge University Press
THE UNIVERSITY OF CHICAGO The Great Books is
published with the editorial advice of the faculties of
The University of Chicago
© 1952 by Encyclopaedia Britannica, Inc.
copyricht under international copyright
l nion t
All Rights Reserved under Pan American and Universal Copyright Conventions by Encyclopaedia Britannica, Library of Congress Catalog Card
Inc.
Number: 55-10317
BI< K ,u
\n
in
NOTE
\i
Plato, Pi \i' ion o( in
|
|fj
triston .\nA Perictionc, i
one
"i tlu-
ton
is
s.iul
CodrUS
tO
...
.
I
lis
\v
.»
^
born
ftmil) u.is, 00 DOth MRAS Ml S
CRATYLl PHAEDRI
TIMAEUS
*8
OKI
I
S
us
'1
EUTHYPHRO APOLOGY
Mil
III
I
S
US
149
SOPHIS1 STA SMAN
»74
PHILEBUS
14a
SYMPOSIUM Ml NO
\S
1
l'AKMl \!!)l
s
[ON
I
1
51a 551
l
LAWS
BOOK BOOK II CRITO 213 BOOK III P11AEDO 220 BOOK IV GORGIAS 252 BOOK V THE REPUBLIC 295 VI BOOK BOOK ^95 BOOK VII BOOK II 310 BOOK VIII BOOK III 3^4 BOOK IX BOOK IV 34^ BOOK X BOOK V 356 BOOK XI BOOK VI 373 BOOK XII BOOK VII THE SEVENTH LETTER, 800 200
I
I
vu
553 1
686 697 7'3
743
77'
784
CHARMIDES, or Temperance ONS
mi DlALOGUI
Ol
Cstrn as, n.
v >
RATI*,
The Polscstt
'.•,
*
•-
who ,
\\ tn bdai evening
nem
I
(hi
Porch
ol thi
K
i
*
I returned From the having been a good while away, thought that should like to go and look at my old haunts. So went into the palaestra ot Taurcas. which is over against the temple adjoining the porch of the King Archon. and there Found a number ot' persons, $ ot w horn I knew, hut not all. My \ sit was unexpected, and no sooner did they see me entering than they saluted me from afar on all sides; and Chacrephon. who is a kind of madman, started up and ran to me, seizing my hand, and saving. How did vou escape, Socra-(I should explain that an engagement had taken place at Potidaea not long before we came away, of which the news had only just reached Athens.) i
arm)
IS the
which
beauty, or both. Critias, glancing
// 5^/ invited
my
were coming
in.
rr*
11
attention to tome youth
and talking
other, followed bv a crowd.
Socrates, he said,
I
DOisilj
t would enquire into ihe nature uciuust pursue the enquir) into health
I
i
4
and not into w hai
.inc.
extra m
ii
\ ri
tic.
And he who ju physician as
a
wl
v
i
fudge of the whal relati
\
li
IM
icTM C
II
I"
htly will
physician
in
v
t!er and ter
;
••
I
Are not these, mv friend, the n vantages which are to Ik- gained from And are not we looking aod seekin] something more than is to Ik- found ifl That is very likely, he That is very likely, 1 said; and vcr] we have been enquiring to no purp insight?
Then, assuredly, wisdom or temperance, science oi science, M\d ot the absence
who
will
u.ils.
would seem, excepl the phy sician cm have this knowledge; and therefore noi the wise man; he would have to he a physician as well as a wise man. at all,
ledge
ih.it
cause, in addition to the
.1
rannot.
one
know
ot
this
were supposing
is
wisdom?
at hrst, the
If,
wise
discernment in others, there would certainly have been a great advantage in being wise for then we should never have made a mistake, but have passed through life the unerring guides of ourselves and of those who are under us; and we should not have attempted to do what we did not know, but we should have found out those who knew, and have handed the business over to them and trusted in them nor should we have allowed those who were under us to do anything which they were not likely to do well ulty of
;
and they would be likely to do well just that of which they had knowledge; and the house or state which was ordered or administered under the guidance of wisdom, and everything else of
'•'•
l
led to inter, because
I
observe that
if
thil
dom. some strange consequences would Let us, it you please, assume the p
follow.
iences, and further ado was originally suggested, thai w is the knowledge ot whal we know and know. Assuming all this, still, upon further
allow, as
consideration,
am
I
doubtful.
nether
I
wisdom, such as this, would do us much For we were wrong. think, in suppov we were saying just now, that such v. ordering the government of house M would be a great benefit. I
How
so: he said.
Why,
I
said,
we were
far too
the great benefits which
ready to admit
mankind would
ob-
from their severally doing the things which they knew, and committing the things ot which they are ignorant to those who were better acquainted with them.
tain
Were we not I
right in
making thatadmission 3
think not. very strange, Socrates'
How Bv
the
vou; and
dog of was thinking I 1
d,
there
as
I
much
agree with iust
now
1)1
12
A LOG LIES
consequences would we were on the wrong track; tor however ready we may be to admit that this is wisdom, [ij$] I certainly cannot make out what good this sort of thing docs to us. What do you mean he said; wish that you could make me understand what you mean.
when
I
follow,
said that strange
and
thai
I
v.as a! raid
OF PLATO happy; but I think that you mean to confine happiness to particular individuals who live according to knowledge, 1 174] such for example future.
one
:
I
dare say that what
1
am
saying
is
nonsense.
and yet it a man has any teeling of what is due to himself, he cannot let the thought which comes into his mind pass away unheeded and unexamined. replied;
like that, he said. Hear, then, I said, my own dream; whether coming through the horn or the ivory gate, I cannot tell. The dream is this: Let us suppose that wisdom is such as we are now defining, and that she has absolute sway over us; then each action will be done according to the arts or sciences, and no one professing to be a pilot when he is not, or any physician or general, or any one else pretending to know matters of which he is ignorant, will deceive or elude us; our health will be improved; our safety at sea, and also in battle, will be assured; our coats and shoes, and all other instruments and implements will be skilfully made, because the workmen will be good and true. Aye, and if you please, you may suppose that prophecy, which is the knowledge of the future, will be under the conI
trol of
and
wisdom, and that she will deter deceivers
set
up
the true prophets in their place as
the revealers of the future.
Now
I
quite agree
mankind, thus provided, would live and act according to knowledge, for wisdom would watch and prevent ignorance from intruding on us. But whether by acting according to knowledge we shall act well and be happy, my dear this is a point which we have not yet Critias, that
—
been able to determine. Yet I think, he replied, that if you discard knowledge, you will hardly find the crown of happiness in anything else. But of what is this knowledge? I said. Just
answer me that small question. knowledge of shoemaking?
Do
you mean
a
God forbid. Or of working
in brass?
Or
in wool, or wood, or anythingof thatsort? No, I do not. Then, I said, we are giving up the doctrine
who
according to knowledge is according to knowledge, and yet they are not allowed by you to be lives
happy, for these
of
it
live
as
him you
mean him,
I
I
was saying, knows the some
are speaking or of
but there are others as well.
some one who knows the past and present as well as the future, and is ignoYes,
said,
I
rant of nothing. Let us suppose that there is such a person, and if there is. you will allow that he is the most knowing of all living men. Certainly he is. Yet I should like to know one thing more: which of the different kinds of knowledge makes him happy? or do all equally make him
happy? Not all equally, he replied. But which most tends to make him ha ppy the knowledge of what past, present, or future thing? May I infer this to be the knowledge of the
game
of draughts?
Nonsense about the game of draughts.
Or
of computation?
No.
Or
of health
That
And
is
3
nearer the truth, he said.
knowledge which is nearest of all, knowledge of what' The knowledge with which he discerns good and evil. Monster! I said; you have been carrying me round in a circle, and all this time hiding from I
said,
me
that
is
the
the fact that the
life
according to knowl-
makes men act rightly and be happy, not even if knowledge include edge all
is
not that which
the sciences, but one science only, that of
good and
evil.
For,
let
me
ask you, Critias,
you take away this, medicine will not equally give health, and shoemaking equally produce shoes, and the art of the weaver whether the art of the pilot will not clothes? equally save our lives at sea, and the art of the general in war? Quite so. And yet, my dear Critias, none of these whether,
if
—
things will be well or beneficially done, science of the
Certainly not.
that he
Is
else.'
Yes,
I
I
who,
as the prophet,
if
the
good be wanting.
True. But that science is not wisdom or temperance, but a science of human advantage; not a science of other sciences, or of ignorance, but of good and evil: and if this be of use, then wisdom or temperance will not be of use. And why, he replied, will not wisdom be of use? For, however
much we assume
that wis-
I
tloii
\i
i
A
\v
i\ she a ill have good undei lui
och< I.
•..
ii
uii> c ol
An.
w
I
wisdom do
1
1
u- %
il«»
only
the effct
the
ranee, 1
hat
is
K
an)
«>t
them
mid
I
i
not
«!«>
theit
othei arts,
the
ol
is
good friend;
not he the produCCI
«•!
(
tor that
we have
just
mv
now
.nt.
true.
can
wisdom
be advantageous,
giving no advantage? Th.u, Socrates, is certainly inconceivable.
was not far in fearing that could have no sound was quite right in tie notion about wisdom; awxiating myself; tor that which is admitted to be the best ot" all things would never have seemed to us useless, it had been good tor anything at an enquiry. But now have been utterly defeated, and have tailed to discover what that is to which the imposcr ol names gave this name ot temperance or wisdom. And yet many more admissions were made by us than could then. Critias. th.u
I
I
I
I
I
be burly granted: tor
we admitted
that there
was a science ot science, although the argument said No, and protested against us: and
We admitted
hid en
h.ipp\
VVht
it.
w hethei you have th!«»
Miir that WJU must
quite
a\\cA
i
\
I.
I
tlir
ol
\c\i>\\c.
hut
lippothales,
said; uli.it
1
realU [H-tlr^t lo\r \oti \\a\c tound'
wh
II
noble ind
.»
wish
I
th.it
would hrvoui me with thr exhibition which you haw been making to thr rest t the company, and then shall be able to ju whether you know wh.it a lovei OUght tO (20$ sbout his love, either to the youth him you
ow
\otir
ii
hoiio
ful lovi
to you,
and ma)
I
;
or to others.
sclt.
you surely do not
\.i\. Socrates, he said;
tach any importance to what he
is
at-
you disown the love ot the person whom he s.ivs th.it you but deny thai make verses or address compositions to him. le is not in his right mind, said Ctesippus; he is talking nonsense, and is stark mad. c ) lippothales, I said, it you have ever made any verses or songs m honour ot vour favourite, I Jo not want to hear them; but want to know the purport ot them, that I may he able to judge ot vour mode oi approaching vour lair one. :^pus will Ik able to tell you, he said; tor it, as he avers, the sound of my words is always dinning in his ears, he must have a very accurate knowledge and recollection of them. I
*o
you mean,
said, that
I
!
I
I
1
1
I
i
es,
indeed, said Ctesippus;
I
know
only too
and very ridiculous the tale is: for though he is a lover, and very devotedly
well;
love, he has
nothing particular
his beloved
which
is
a child
not that ridiculous?
to talk
might not
He can only
al-
in
about to
say.
Now
speak of the
wealth of Democrates, which the whole city celebrates, and grandfather Lysis, and the other ancestors of the youth, and their stud of horses,
and
games, and at the Isthmus, and at Xemea with four horses and single horses these are the tales which he composes and repeats. And there is greater twaddle still. Only the day before yesterday he made a poem in which he described the entertainment of Heracles, who was a connexion of their victory at the Pythian
—
the family, setting forth
how
in virtue of this
was hospitably received by an Lysis; this ancestor was himself be-
relationship he
ancestor of
gotten of Zeus by the daughter of the founder of the deme. And these are the sort of old wives' tales which he sings and recites to us,
and we are obliged
When
I
heard
to listen to
this,
I
said:
O
him. ridiculous Hip-
•
hone-
conquered and won
mi. h
u be »lij*
»
you, the more you h thr more iidu ul( i.iiu
this t.urrst
and
best
ol
I
dents.
nil
are I
tilled
)o
more I
with the
;
spirit ot
you not agree with
And
he said. the more
difficult
!*•
ii
hi
'I
when any one
tair.
him,
I
1i
I
.in
.i
f
',iin,
1
we
s.imr as the good, «.
>i 1
.is
1
\
u
ill
hr unjust will
be the
;
i
vi
m
Ik-
1
1
1 .
1 1
I
w ith
tlir
i
en. •rni.
ol
1 1
is
n.
I
True. position ol ouri which, Bui thai too was you w '1! remember, has been already refuted
We
anything
is
to be
done?
men who argue meats: nor the
to be
done? Oi
1
is
there
can only, like the wise
I
in courts,
sum up
tin
neither the beloved, not the lover, like, nor the unlike, nor the good, nor
there were tucfa
.i
cannot remember all—
ot
whom we
number it
none
d
ipoke
them
that
ot these ait
I
lair
.it
\
I
pany. I
said,
ho
parting: Menexenui and lous ih.it vnu two boj and
ui
would think nu\ seem to I
If..: I..
.
lie. ir
.1
in.
.mi
I
In-
hacei ol d
m
.1
.1
discoursing 1
union and to oth
bad; and
diai
lover,
thai
ol
true
whi •
virtue, 01
and
theme,
quite
man and worth)
I
li>M
such an one
I
deem to be the true mud harmony than thai ol
lusions.
•
the
will be
the lyre, or an) pleasant instrument ol music;
tion
he has in his own life words and deeds arranged, not or in the Phrygian mode, nor yei
been our
tor truly
a
harmonj
ol
in the
Ionian,
in the
Lydian,
mode, which is the Dorian, and no other. Such m\ one makes me merry with the sound ot his voice; ami when bul in the true
him
hear
coui
Hut
I
\
[ellenic
am thought to be a lover of disam in drinking in his words.
;er
a
I
man whose
words
actions do not agree with his
m\ annoyance
me; and the better he speaks the more I hate him, and then seem to be a hater ot discourse. As to Socrates, have no knowledge ot his words, but of old, as would seem, have had experience of his deeds; and his deeds show that free and noble sentiments are natural to [ iSg] him. And if his words accord, then I am of one mind with him, and is
to
I
I
I
shall be delighted to be interrogated
such as he
having
and
to learn of
Solon, "that
many
is,
I
him:
would
by a
man
not be annoyed at
shall
for
fain
I
too agree with
grow
old, learning
must be allowed to add "ot the good only." Socrates must be willing to allow that he is a good teacher, or I shall be a dull and uncongenial pupil: but that the things." But
I
—
is younger, or not as yet in repute anything of that sort is of no account with me. And
teacher
therefore, Socrates,
I
give you notice that you
and confute me as much as ever you and also learn of me anything which I know. So high is the opinion which I have entertained of you ever since the day on which you were my companion in danger, and ^.we
may
teach
like,
your valour such as only the man of merit can give. Therefore, say whatever you like, and do not mind about the dirTerence of our ages.
a proof of
tl
I
I
Ami
\\ ill
I
on the pi u ill listen,
cian, attuned to 1 Eairej
I
I
i
lira
d
am delighted beyond measure: compare the man and his words, and note the harmonj and correspondence t them.
ol Ins
'
I
(shall
ing,
no harm which w.is firsi ii
and
other
own
whom
mode
pr
.
ol Ins ii
h.i\r
i
mm
-K, lir said; but triil. i\
until yes
even
lot the \t the Mine tnur he w» klr bed, ind mi down .»t my feet, tnd then hr 1
c-1
1
1
1
him
sun
ill '
Oenoc whithei
turn from
had gone
I
nn runaway
ptu
in
ilavc Satyrus, .»s meant same othei mattei had not come in the- w .iv; on my return, when a had done nipper and were about to retire to rest, ins brotnej said to me: Protagoras is come. w.is going to Mm .u once, and then thought that the night was fai spent But the moment sleep left me aftei mv fatigue, got up and came bithei dsrei t. I. who knew the \eiv COUXageOUJ madness of the man, said: What is the matter? Has Proi>t
have told you,
to
I
I
I
tagoras robbed you oi anything? lie replied, laughing:
Yes, indeed
has,
In-
wisdom which he keeps from
the
:i
I
ii
r
C
wh) ever) one ii 10 and the laws; suppose, I
and
thr s.unr ir.ulinrss
l»r
intn
intereti
in
ii
say, thai tdrrr
pU
I..
teaching one another Bute playing, do you ites, thai the sons ol good flute would be nunc likeh to be than think not. Would not the sons ol bad ones? ihcit sons grow up to be distinguished or un distinguished according to their own natural >
*.
i
>
positcs have some qualities in common; e\en the parts of the Eace which, as we were saying 1
I
I
1
and have different functions, are still in a certain point of view similar. and one ot them is like another ot them. And you may prove that they are like one another on the same principle that all things are like one another; and yet things which are like in some particular ought not to be called alike, nor things which are unlike in some particular, however slight, unlike. And do you think, I said in a tone of surprise, that justice and holiness have but a small before, arc distinct
degree of likeness? Certainly not; any more than I agree with what I understand to be your view. [$32] Well, I said, as you appear to have a difficulty about this, let us take another of the
examples which you mentioned instead. you admit the existence of folly? I
1(
1
thai p Km h is dot done sw iftly, and th.u w h nes dowly .
le
I
I
win, h
And
|llst.
replied;
th.it
thai
rence between them, Bui what matti please; and lei us assume, il you you pic-. isc will, th.it justice is holy, and thai holiness is
I
!•
is
rid
1
P.irJon me.
thai
cannot limply
proposition thai justice
holiness
I'
I
And
ilh mc*. I
fool
trmp
u would u m. i\ be permitted to give th behalt, .uul whether \ou would
like justice;
u hethei w
I
Do
.isscnted
And
.1.
is done in the same done by the same; and th.u win, h .111 Opposite in. inner 1>\ the OppOf
which
th.u
m
is
agreed.
I
le
(
tace more,
I
said,
is
there anything
I
ful-
Yrs.
To which There
And
the only opposite
the ugly?
is
the evil
there anyth::
is
There is. To which the only opposite There is no other.
And
is
no other.
is
there
is
;
the acute in sound'
True.
To which the only opposite is tl. There is no other, he s.nd. Inn that. Then
every Opposite has one opposite only
and no more? I
le
assented.
Then now,
I
said, let us recapiti:
missions. First of
all
we admitted
that every-
thing has one opposite and not more than one? We du!
And we
admitted also that what was done
opposite ways was done by Yes.
And
that
which was done
foolishly, as
further admitted, was done in the opposite to that
which was done
in
o;
we way
tern.
do.
And
is
not
is
true,
wisdom
the verv opposite of
folly
That
he
foolishly
said.
And when men
act
And that which was done temperate! done by temperance, and that which was done
rightly
and advanta-
geously they seem to you to be temperate: Yes, he said. And temperance makes them temperate?
I
ed.
And done bv Yes.
that
which
opposite:,
:
is
done
in opposite
ways
is
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
50
And
one thing
is
done by temperance, and
be said;
in opposite
yet unjust
And good
therefore by opposites:
— then
folly
is
is
good sense 1
(i
Clearly.
li
And do you remember
that lolly has already
sense
is
good counsel
doing
in-
ceed
ran ted. they succeed.
said, or
I
1
wisdom?
And you would admit
1
if
they do not suc-
;
been acknowledged by us to be the opposite of
the\ succeed.
the
existence
of
goods 2
assented.
And we
in
just:
the opposite of temperance?
He
;
that be admitted.
Yes.
ways?
Certainly.
And
let
And temperance
Yes.
And
and
are temperate,
quite another thing by follv?
said that everything has only
one
Yes.
And
opposite?
is
the
good
that
which
is
expedient for
man?
Yes.
[333] Then, Protagoras, which of the two we renounce? One says that everything has but one opposite; the other that wisdom is distinct from temperance, and that both of them are parts of virtue; and that they assertions shall
Yes, indeed, he said: and there are
things which
may
some
be inexpedient, and
are not only distinct, but dissimilar, both in
them good. thought that Protagoras was getting ruffled and excited; he seemed to be setting himself in an attitude of war. Seeing this, I minded mv
themselves and in their functions, like the parts
business,
Which
two assertions shall we renounce? For both of them together are certainly not in harmony; they do not accord
of a face.
can they be said to agree
if
assumed to have only one opposite and not more than one, and yet folly, which is one, has clearly the two opposites wisdom and temperance? Is not that true, Protagoras? What else would you say?
He
assented, but with great reluctance. are the same,
and holiness appeared to us to be nearly the same. And now, Protagoras, I said, we must finish the enquiry, and not faint. as before justice
man
you think that an unjust
can be tem-
perate in his injustice? I
should be ashamed, Socrates, he said, to
acknowledge may be found
And
shall
I
this
which nevertheless many
to assert.
argue with them or with you?
I
replied. I would rather, he said, that you should argue with the many first, if you will. Whichever you please, if you will only answer me and say whether you are of their opin-
ion or not.
My
object
is
to test the validity of
and yet the result may be that I who ask and you who answer may both be put on our trial. Protagoras at first made a show of refusing, as he said that the argument was not encouragthe argument;
ing; at length, he consented to answer.
Now
[334]
then,
I
said,
begin
at the
and answer me. You think
that
beginning
some men
and gently
When you
said: say, Protagoras, that things
inexpedient are good, do you ent for
man
and do you of
many
mean
inexpedi-
only, or inexpedient altogether?
call
the latter good'
Certainly not the
is
Then temperance and wisdom
Do
I
of these
how
or agree: for
everything
call
things
last,
he replied; for
I
know
— meats, drinks, medicines, and
which arc inexpediman, and some which are expedient; and some which are neither expedient nor inexpedient for man, but only for horses: and some for oxen only, and some for dogs; and some for no animals, but only for trees; and some for the roots of trees and not for their branches, as for example, manure, which is a good thing when laid about the roots of a tree, but utterly destructive if thrown upon the shoots and young branches; or I may instance olive oil, which is mischievous to all plants, and generally most injurious to the hair of every animal with the exception of man, but beneficial to human hair and to the human body generally; and even in this application (so various and changeable is the nature of the benefit), that which is the greatest good to the outward parts of a man, is a very great evil to his inward parts: and for this reason physicians ten thousand other things, ent for
always forbid their patients the use of
oil
in
their food, except in very small quantities, just
enough
to extinguish the disagreeable sensa-
tion of smell in meats
When
and
sauces.
he had given this answer, the company cheered him. And I said: Protagoras, I have a wretched memory, and when any one makes a long speech to me I never remember
PR( what he
\s thru,
talking aboul
is
il
I
»
I
\(.
i
had U
you uric going you would have had t.. r.o-.c youi m>\N hav ing ni< li a bad memoi \ will '
;:i>!
.
,
tocul youi answers ihorter,
mr w
il
I
hkr
!
ir
i
you would take partun
tth JTOU.
W'lut do son mean? hr said: bow am to shoiten m\ answi .hall ike thru) too
id mi red
I
I
not.
•a.i'.lv
I
.Hid lo,
Hut the truth
laid.
-hurt rtU'i
ask
insH er u hat appears tO tnr to In- short enough, or what appears to you to he short 1
quest I
you can speak and
said, thai
A
otTi iboui the same things ai such length thai wordi nevei tcrnifd to tail, or with nich brevity thai no one could vise fewer
Beach
them. Phase therefore. [$$$] it \ou talk with me, to adopt the latter or more compendious method. oi
item, I
he replied,
fought, ami tation
it
hail
I
which
many
mv
words followed the method a battle of
adversaries desired, as
you want me to o\o. should have been no better than another, and the name of Protagoras would have been nowhere. saw that he was not satisfied with his previous answers, and that he would not play the part of answerer any more if he could help; and sidcred that there was no call upon me to continue the conversation; so I said: ProtagoI
I
do not w ish to force the conversation upon vou if you had rather not, but when you are ras.
I
me
such a way that I can follow you, then I will argue with you. Now you, as is said of you by others and as you willing to argue with
in
sav oi yourself, are able to
have discussions
in
shorter forms of speech as well as in longer, for
master of wisdom; but I cannot manI I only wish that could. You, on the other hand, who are capable of either, ought to speak shorter as I beg you, and then we might converse. But I see that you are disinclined, and as I have an engagement which will prevent my staying to hear you at greater length (for I have to be in another place), I will depart; although I should have liked to have heard you.
you are
when
1
enou] have heard,
have
that
is
|
is |
lid.
!
Shall
!*-!!
a
these long speeches:
Thus I spoke, and was rising from my seat, when Callias seized me by the right hand, and in his left
hand caught hold
of this old cloak
said: We cannot let you go, Socyou leave us there will be an end of our discussions: I must therefore beg you to
|
should repU
|
same
in
ili.it
ot in\
,
I
hut
won!,!
thq
ply. tad t) and me in the same stadium, you must bid him sl.u ken his speed to mine, fol quickly, and he can run tad in like I
manjM discoursing, you must ask
him
to shorten bis
answers, and keep to the tirst; it not, how can there l>e anv For discussion is one thing, ami oration
is
quite another, in
But you
he did
at
di
mak
mv hum.
sec. Socr.r
d Pro claim to sj>eak in h way, jual as vou claim to s|>eak in \ours. lerc Alcibiades interposed, and Callias, is not a true statement ot the our friend Socrates admits that he cannot make a speech in this he yields the palm to Pi ras: but I should be greatly surprised it he
may
fairly
1
a
—
yielded to any living
man
in the
ing and apprehendir. oras will
confess that he
make is
power of hold-
j.imcnt.
N
a similar admission,
and
inferior
mentative skill, that is enough for Socrates; but if he claims a superiority in argument as well, not, when a qui let him ask and answer
—
is
away from answering, making
asked, slipping
the point, and in-
a speech at such length that most of his hearers forget the question at issue not that Socrates is likely
stead of
(
—
I
although he may pretend in fun that he has a bad memory ). And Socrates appears to me to be more in the than Protagoras; that is my view, ami man ought to say what he thinks. When Alcibiades had done speaking, some one Critias. I believe went on to say: C ) Prodicus and Hippias, Callias appears to me to be get
I
will be
—
bound
for that,
—
of mine.
He
a partisan of Protagoras:
rates, for
if
des,
who
side.
But we should not be partisans either of
and
this led Alcibia-
loves opposition, to take the other
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
52
Socrates or of Protagoras; let us rather unite in entreating both of them not to break up the discussion.
[337 J Prodicus added: That, to
me
to be well said, for those
Critias,
who
seems
are pres-
an ocean of words, but let there be a mean observed by both of you. Do as I say. And let me also persuade you to choose an arbiter or overseer or president: he will keep watch over your words and will prescribe their proper
ent at such discussions ought to be impartial
length.
hearers of both the speakers; remembering, however, that impartiality is not the same as
This proposal was received by the company with universal approval: Callias said that he
equality, for both sides should be impartially
heard, and yet an equal
meed should
not be
assigned to both of them; but to the wiser a higher meed should be given, and a lower to the less wise.
And
I
as well as Critias
would beg
you, Protagoras and Socrates, to grant our request, which is, that you will argue with one another and not wrangle; for friends argue with friends out of goodwill, but only adversaries and enemies wrangle. And then our meeting will be delightful; for in this way you, who are the speakers, will be most likely to win esteem, and not praise only, among us who are your audience; for esteem is a sincere conviction of the hearers' souls, but praise is often an insincere expression of men uttering falsehoods contrary to their conviction. And thus we who are the hearers will be gratified and not pleased; for gratification is of the mind when receiving wisdom and knowledge, but pleasure is of the body when eating or experiencing some other bodily delight. Thus spoke
many of the company applauded words. Hippias the sage spoke next. He said: All of you who are here present I reckon to be kinsmen and friends and fellow-citizens, by nature and not by law; for by nature like is akin to like, whereas law is the tyrant of mankind, and often compels us to do many things which are Prodicus, and
his
against nature.
grace then,
if
How we,
great
would be the
who know
dis-
the nature of
and are the wisest of the Hellenes, and met together in this city, which is the metropolis of wisdom, and in the greatest and most glorious house of this city, should have nothing to show worthy of this height things,
as such are
of dignity, but should only quarrel with
one
another like the meanest of mankind! I do pray and advise you, Protagoras, and you, Socrates, to agree upon a compromise. Let us be your peacemakers. And do not you, Socrates, aim at this precise and extreme brevity in discourse, if Protagoras objects, [338] but loosen and let go the reins of speech, that your words may be grander and more becoming to you. Neither do you, Protagoras, go forth on the gale with every sail set out of sight of land into
would not
let
me
ofT,
choose an arbiter. But
and they begged me
to
said that to choose
an
I
umpire of discourse would be unseemK was inferior, then the interior or worse ought not to preside over the better: or if he was equal, neither would that be well: for he who is our equal will do as we do, and what will be the use of choosing him.1 And it you say, "Let us have a better then," to that I answer that you cannot have any one who is wiser than Protagoras. And if you choose another who is not really better, and whom you only say is better, to put another over him as though he were an inferior person would be an unworthy reflection on him: not that, as far as I am concerned, any reflection is of much consequence to me. Let me tell you then what I will do in order that the conversation and discussion may go on as you desire. If Prois not disposed to answer, let him ask and I will answer; and I will endeavour to show at the same time how, as I maintain, he ought to answer: and when I have answered as many the person chosen
—
questions as he likes to ask,
manner answer me; and
let
him
in like
he seems to be not answering the precise question if
very ready at asked of him, you and I will unite in entreating him, as you entreated me, not to spoil the discussion. arbiter
—
all
And of
this
you
will
require no special
shall be arbiters.
This was generally approved, and Protagoras, though very much against his will, was obliged to agree that he would ask questions; and when he had put a sufficient number of them, that he would answer in his turn those which he was asked in short replies. He began to put his questions as follows: I am of opinion, Socrates, he said, that skill in poetry is the principal part of education; [339] ano this I conceive to be the power of ^
knowing what compositions of the poets are correct, and what are not, and how they are to be distinguished, and of explaining when asked the reason of the difference. And I propose to transfer the question which you and 1 have been discussing to the domain of poetry; we will speak as before of virtue, but in reference to a passage of a poet. Now Simonides says to
PRO! iron
(lie
poem
01
I
kiu>\\
to you w hole i
the
I
\
Mtu>n be
And
in
a contradiction,
good
No, not
I
as
not agree with the ot a
m
\
M
becomii
lid not
Simonid*
icw. diat
"I lardl)
I
replied.
\
fir*
1
in
1
man
.1
contradiction? he asked.
.1
And
same
word
ol
you
do
s.i\. "I
Pittacua, albeii the
wise man: Hardl) can
a
man
will observe th.»t this
he
is
said
two
s.i\-
poet.
know it. And Ao you 1
.ire
think,
consistent
lie
said, tluit the
:
I
I
little
I
either in his
first
I
had received
I
blow from the hand of an expert boxer, when I heard his words and the sound of the cheering; and to confess the truth, I wanted to get time to think what the meaning of the poet really was. So 1 turned to Prodicus and called him. Prodicus, I said, Simonides is a countryman of yours, and you ought to come to his aid. [ $40] I must appeal to you, like the river Scamander in Homer, who, when bea
leaguered by Achilles, aid him, saying: Brother dear,
let
hut
tor
trom himself.
summons
the Swnois to
us both together stay the force of
not
something
sa\m;*,
diflei
Pitta< us
does not say; oni des s.ns, th.u bardl) can man become go hut hardly can a man he good: and our Jricnd Prodicus would maintain that being, l'r.1
ras,
not the
is
same
with himself.
sistent
becoming;
as
Simomdes
.ind
thc\
1!
not in
is
dare- say that
I
and many others would
Prodicttl
say, S
On the one hand hardly For the gods hope nude virtu But on the other hand u
•
,
become g
.
height,
Then,
to retain virtue, h
I
sit ion. is
Prodicus heard and approved; but P:
Your
ras said:
correction. Sckt.i-
greater error than
which you are
or his second assertion.
Many of the audiencecheered and applauded this. And felt at first giddy and faint, as if
us.
1'itt.u 11s,
imagines, tor repeating thai which be
himself,
turther on in the poem, forgetting,
and blaming Pittacus and refusing to agree with him, when he says, "Hardly can a man be .!." which is the very same thing. And yet when he blames him who says the same with himself, he blames himself; so that he must be
the hero.
or. is
then he blatnrs
are not the same, then
said, think so (at the same time Yes, could not help tearing that there might he .something in what he said). And you think otherwise? Why, he said, how can he be consistent in both : First of all. premising as hisown thought, "I lardly can a man become truly good"; and
wrong
•
Quite right, said Prodk
utterance
then a
wish
I
\..i the
I
ingi
.ill
\rm, w hu h is irn sui h
»:
1
1
J
part
on is
•
.is
m wh.it follows he meant t» ar.;ue
il
.1
litth
:
|
.1
diiiu ulty in
bo
"ii
:
liblc tor a tiiiie,.ind onl\ fol
become good, and
t^W. wish Protagoras either to ask or an ;
:
I
iwct .is he is inclined; but would rathei hive done with pocmssndodes, it hedoes not objo t. and come back to the question about which w .is asking you at first, Protagoras, and by your help make an end d that The talk about the I
but
I'i.'
would do allies, snd
In(
me
commonplace inter vulgar company have re-
like a
tainment to which a who, because they are not able to verse or amuse one another, while they are drinking, with the sound ot their own vo and conversation, by reason d their stupidity, raise the price of flute-girls in the market, hiring course;
i
tor a great
their
sum
the voiee ot a flute instead ot
own breath, to among them:
course
are real gentlemen
no
he the
medium
but where the
will or
will not 1sunt.11/
\\r
see
the argument
we ma)
th.u
a
rates rlsr.
and men of education, you
the
medium, and which they
anil in
own
pany
voices are
carry on by turns
w uh one another.
to talk
think
like this of ours,
And
and men such
a
com-
as
we
do not require the help of another's voice, or of the poets whom you cannot interrogate about the meaning of what they profess to be,
are saying; people
some
who
cite
them
that
!
ashamed by then
when
tii
were superadded, d
that
s.u.l
I
i
answer.
So I
I
haw
s.tid:
I
)o not
imagine, asking qui .inn.; up ,\
1
is
to ask. *
that
to sa)
thai he docs e>
is
evil
which
when near, and lessei will gram thai also.
become greater and smaller, and more and iewer.and differ in degree? For if any one sa\ s: "Yes, Socrates, but immediate pleasure differs widely from future pleasure and pain" To that I should reply: And do they ditier in anything but in pleasure and pain.' There can be no other measure of them. And do you, like a
—
weigher, put into the balance the pleasures and the pains, and their nearness and distance, and weigh them, and then say which skilful
outweighs the other. If you weigh pleasures against pleasures, you of course take the more
numb
VI
Ik
at
11
'
consist in
d
not doing or in avoiding the
be the
ta,\
ing prim ipte
:•
Would
Inn:
oi
an ol measuring be tl or would the power oi
the
not
ciple;
not the latter that deceiving art whicfl us Wander Up and down and take the things
one tune ot which in our actions and
at
both
great a\m\ small
:
v.
I
our
in
But the
ait
I
would do away with the and. showing the truth, won 1
h the
soul at last to find rest in the truth,
thus
our
N.i\e
life.
Would
acknowledge
orally
plishes this result
is
Yes, he said, the
and
not
that tin
art
the art ot measureo
an
turement.
1
human
Sup,
depend on the choice oi od on the knowledge ot when a man to
choose the greater or less, either Ives or to each otlu-
there of the relations of pleasure to pain other
than excess and defect, which means that they
lux
.1.
thickness and arc in then
oi
at a
knowledge
a
tk>n
one
is
:
Would
and
when
delect,
and
number, when the question and e\en The world will assent, :
:
not
ot
1
not ki
of measuring,
ot excess
life
and
id whether would be the
distance: what
principle of our li\es
—
in
:i.
the
a
I
is
1
will
they
:
Protagoras himself thought that thev W
Well then,
my mends.
that the salvation ot
ny
I
human
to consist in the right choice
pains,
—
in the
to
them:
lit; 1
res
and
choice of
and the and remoter, must not
er,
this
measurm:
be a con-
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
62 sideration of their excess ity in
and delect and equal-
relation to each other
This
is
;
undeniably true.
to introduce
names, whether he
to say pleasurable, delightful, joyful.
And this, as possessing measure, must undeniably also be an art ami sciem They will agree, he said. The nature ot that art or
you said that pleasure olten got the advantage even over a man who has knowledge; and we reiused to allow this, and you rejoined: C) Pro-
what
is
disposed
However,
by whatever name he preiers to call them, 1 will ask you, most excellent Prodicus, to answer in
my science will be a
matter of future consideration; but the existence of such a science lurnishes a demonstrate answer to the question which you asked of me and Protagoras. At the time when you asked the question, it you remember, both of us were agreeing that there was nothing mightier than knowledge, and that knowledge, in whatever existing, must have the advantage over pleasure and all other things; and then
tagoras and Socrates,
would beg my tnend Prodicus not his distinction of
is
the
meaning
—
of
sense oi the words. Prodicus laughed and assented, as did the
others.
Then, my friends, what do you say to this? Are not all actions honourable and useful, of which the tendency is to make life painless and pleasant' The honourable work is also usclul and good? This was admitted. Then, I said, if the pleasant is the good, nobody does anything under the idea or conviction that some other thing would be better and is also attainable, when he might do the belter.
And
this inferiority of a
man
to himselt
merely ignorance, as the superiority of a
is
man
wisdom.
tell us being overcome by pleasure if not this? what you call such a state: if we had immediately and at the time answered "Ignorance,"
to himself
you would have laughed at us. But now, in laughing at us, you will be laughing at yourselves: for you also admitted that men err in
ion
and being deceived about important mat-
ters
?
—
and pains; that is, in their choice of good and evil, from defect of knowledge; and you admitted further, that they err, not only from defect of knowledge in general, but of that particular knowledge which is called measuring. And you are also aware that the erring act which is done without knowledge is done in ignorance. This, therefore, is the meaning of being overcome by pleasure; ignorance, and that the greatest. And our friends Protagoras and Prodicus and Hippias declare their choice of pleasures
—
that they are the physicians of ignorance; but
you,
who
are under the mistaken impression
that ignorance
of
not the cause, and that the art speaking cannot be taught, nei-
is
which I am go yourselves, nor send your children, to
ther
the Sophists,
who
are the teachers of these
—you take care of your money and give them none; and the that you are the worse public and private both —Let things
result
off
is,
in
life:
us suppose this to be our answer to the world in general:
And now
I
should like to ask you,
[358] Hippias, and you, Prodicus, as well as Protagoras (for the argument is to be yours as well as ours), whether you think that I am speaking the truth or not? They all thought that what
I
said
was en-
And
To
agree,
I
said, that the pleasant is
the good, and the painful evil.
And
here
I
all
is
assented.
not ignorance the having a false opin-
is
unanimously assented. no man voluntarily pursues evil, or that which he thinks to be evil. To prefer evil to good is not in human nature; and when a man is compelled to choose one of two evils, no one will choose the greater when he may have the less. this also they
Then,
said,
I
All of us agreed to every
Well,
said, there
I
fear or terror; ticularly
and
like
agree with
me
expectation of
is
word
of this.
a certain thing called
here, Prodicus,
I
should par-
to
know whether you would
in
defining this fear or terror as
evil.
Protagoras and Hippias agreed, but Prodicus said that this was fear and not terror. I said; but let me ask our former assertions are true, a man will pursue that which he fears when he is not compelled? Would not this be in flat contradiction to the admission which has been already made, that he thinks the things which he fears to be evil; and no one will pursue or voluntarily accept that which he thinks to be
Never mind, Prodicus,
whether,
if
evil ?
[359] That also was universally admitted. Then, I said, these, Hippias and Prodicus, are our premisses; and I would beg Protagoras to explain to us
he said
tirely true.
Then you
They
at first.
I
how
he can be right in what in what he said
do not mean
quite at first, for his first statement, as you may remember, was that whereas there were five
\(
I
ttol
i
cm
.
none
Uir
ii
V
thrin
tii
i»t
lliciu
them had
oi
\\
Wai
like »t\) «'ihrt
which heaiterwaidi made ii
the
ili.u
bui
-in
•
w ere
in to
ik
I)
And
the others.
pro
follow ing
iv
i \ And » ill show yoil VI li-it COCK ir.c t«. U llir n.itu: the task, ind w li.u ion ol discourse 1
n
this,
»>i
the •
I
I
i
in
lic-.u
;
and
if I
do
ridiculous manner,
onl) venture to
I
chit to a ver) inartistic *!*»
laugh
i>.»t
impm\
and
me.
ai
foi
I
before you
isc
am
cagei to heaj youi wisdom: and must ihereiorc ask you and youi disciples to refrain son oJ Vxio hua, from laughing. And now, (
let
mc
ol
those
)
to .i^L
idiculous questions which
t
am
I
There
does not. Well, then,
is
said, since
next question. Shall
wc
we
not be
happy
is it
We
not
solemn sage
ma) be
that wealth
required to
is
easily is
wc esteem good? No us
tell
which
this,
answered; for every one a good.
will say
are not health
and beauty goods, and
there be any doubt that
power, and honours goods 3
He
good
birth,
own
in one's
and
land, are
other goods are there
3
I
said.
and indeed think, Cleinias, that we shall be more right in ranking them as goods than in not ranking them as goods: For a dispute might possibly arise about this. What then do you say?
They
are goods, said Cleinias.
Very
well,
I
said;
and where
tind a place for
in the
wisdom
company-
— among the
think whether we have left out any considerable goods. I do not think that we have, said Cleinias. I
Cleinias,
th.it
said,
Upon recollection, I said, indeed am afraid that we have left out the greatest of them all. I
to
am
Z4
I
him
I
Bute-players
fortunate ami successful in
I
I
.>
.
assented.
le
are not the
Writing and reading (
scnU
And
one
rtun.itr
the dangers ol
it
tl.
the •
d in war, in V
you W
rather take the risk
general, or with
— in
I
3
With
a
wise one.
you were
it
ill,
whom
would you
have as a companion in a dangerous wise physician, or an ignorant one? :sc
You
man
is
le
lllnc
one.
think,
sank thai
I
more fortunate than
rant one I
in
let:-
ertainly.
Amid
to act
with an
if]
3
assented.
[280] Then wisdom always makes men fortunate: for b) wisdom no man would e\cr err, and therefore he must act rightK and SUCO or his wisdom would be wisdom no longer. agree
the goods.
And now,
!
flute?
We
goods or not?
Among
know,
say of temperance, justice, cour-
age: do you not verily
we
ing his SUI
\
And
assented.
And what What do you
.
th.it.
company would you company with a wise
other personal g He agreed.
Can
what was the meat isdom is
more fortunate on None, certainly.
Certainly, he said.
And
a
he simple minded south was
I
Ami
things do
list
may know
child
obsei
assented.
the
.iskcd
1
o not .ill nun desire happiness? Ami yet, perhaps, tins is one put
do you
\\'h\
I
contrived in a
I
general conclusion, that he
who
wisdom had no need of fortune. I then recalled to his mind the previous state of the question. You remember, said, our making tb sion that we should be happy and tormany good things were present with us I
.
3
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
70
He assented. And should we
be happy by reason of the
presence of good things, ; if they profited us
if
they profited us not,
they profited us, he said. they profit us,
if we only had them and did not use them? For example, if we had a great deal of food and did not eat, or a great deal of drink, and did not drink,
And would
should we be profited? Certainly not, he said.
Or would an artisan, who had all the implements necessary for his work, and did not use them, be any the better for the possession of them.' For example, would a carpenter be any the better for having all his tools and plenty of wood, if he never worked? Certainly not, he said.
And
if a person had wealth and all the goods which we were just now speaking, and did not use them, would he be happy because he possessed them?
of
No
indeed, Socrates.
as the possession of
if you have the use as well good things, is that suffi-
my opinion. And may a person use them Yes, in
That
is
of a thing
one
an
is
nor an
He
quite true, is
far
said.
And
the
wrong
use
worse than the non-use; for the
and the other is neither a good [281] You admit that?
evil,
evil.
assented.
Now
in the working and use of wood, is not which gives the right use simply the knowledge of the carpenter? Nothing else, he said. And surely, in the manufacture of vessels, knowledge is that which gives the right way of making them?
spoke is
in the use of the
at first
goods of which
we
—wealth and health and beauty,
not knowledge that which directs us to the
right use of them,
and regulates our
practice
about them?
He thing,
and every use of a which gives a man not
in every possession
knowledge
A A A A A
poor man.
weak man or weak man. noble
man
man?
a strong
or a
mean man?
mean man.
And
a
coward would do
geous and temperate
man
less
than a coura-
;
And an indolent man less than an active man? He assented. And a slow man less than a quick; and one who had dull perceptions of seeing and hearing less than one who had keen ones? All this I
was mutually allowed by said, Cleinias, the
sum
us.
of the mat-
appears to be that the goods of which we spoke before are not to be regarded as goods in themselves, but the degree of good and evil in them depends on whether they are or are not under the guidance of knowledge: under the guidance of ignorance, they are greater evils than their opposites, inasmuch as they are
more
able to minister to the evil principle
which
them; and when under the guidance of wisdom and prudence, they are greater goods: but in themselves they are nothing? That, he replied, is obvious. What then is the result of what has been said? Is not this the result
are indifferent,
is
that
—that other things
and that wisdom
is
the only
good, and ignorance the only evil? assented.
[282] Let us consider
a further point,
I
said:
Seeing that all men desire happiness, and happiness, as has been shown, is gained by a use, life, and the and good fortune in the use the inference of them, is given by knowledge, is that everybody ought by all means to try and
and
a right use, of the things of
right use of them,
assented.
Then
man?
He
agreed.
And
—
rich
rules
that
He
I
ter
either rightly or
rightly. I
me,
he not make fewer mistakes.? if he made fewer mistakes would he not have fewer misfortunes? and if he had fewer misfortunes would he not be less miserable? Certainly, he said. And who would do least a poor man or a
Then,
cient to confer happiness?
wrongly? He must use them
tell
Yes.
Then, I said, a man who would be happy must not only have the good things, but he must also use them; there is no advantage in merely having them? True. Well, Cleinias, but
said, O tell me, what do posman, if he have neither good sense nor wisdom? Would a man be better off, having and doing many things without wisdom, or a few things with wisdom.' Look at the matter thus: If he did fewer things would
And
sessions profit a
or
If
only good-fortune but success? He again assented.
make
—
himself as wise as he can?
II
M
II, l.i
I
;
a lien i.uu tins
tic
iu-i
01
|
man
think-, tint
iMiir. t.u
guardian
i
oi
lie
.
money, from
tli. »n
iiiuir
friend oi
i
i
u hethei iii.tu oi it range d and praya to them thai il>r\ would imparl c
i
to
.'in
you,
is
mm
.ii
i
dishonourable,
.ill
Clcinias; ooi in .m\ one to be blamed foi d an) honourable aervice oi ministration to ani
whether
in. in,
gel
w isdom.
v
1
I lovei
k>
you
01
not,
i
Ins .inn
il
||
led by
us to h.isr
thnn
and play, and [wait
jest
t0
laid.
I
aid, I quite agree, and
m
re
think that you
tti
I
profoun
said:
.•.hi.
said, Cleiniaa,
I
it
wisdom can
only
be
and does not come to man ipontanc ously; for this is i point which h.is still to be considered, and is not yet agreed upon bj you and me •it.
But
think, Socrates, thai
I
wisdom can be
taught, he said.
you sa) having saved
hi
lid;
I
and
I
shall
i
words. Well. -t\:
ell,
not
C
7*
linn
all
1
H thcii
(
U then r\:striu
thru nor
"i
oi
(
in.
we
I
i
which
If-iin
i
I
!
1
.
.1
Ami w
in K\
I
nam
just
that proved, 11 you ma) remembi could affirm negative; foi no one could affirm
(hat
>
l
tesippus,
I
e sure. And now suppose
Her.
he pleases? Will not the successful speaker rather be he who speaks in the natural iks
we do
whefl we name cannot
Her. other,
failure.
natures?
Her. Soc. tor in
I
as things
quite agree with you.
And
naming a part giving names men speak. is
Her. That Soc.
And
not
3
is
is
a sort of action
not
naming
and
also a sort
2
And we saw
that actions were not relabut had a special nature of
own-
Then
I
the
we name with
)o
we
not give intormatior.
|
to their
the threads of the V
of distn
Her.
And
Soc.
the shuttle
which has
with something
And
Then
Soc. well
— and
is
the instrument of the
to be cut has
3
that
which has
will
woven
or
means
use
the
like a teacher
like
.
name
:
well
— and
the well
3
Her. Yes. Soc. And when the weaver uses the whose work will he be using well.3 Her. That of the carpenter.
And
is
every
man
shuttle,
a carpenter, or the
3
Her. Only the Soc.
to be
the weaver will use the shuttle
well
skilled onlv
Her. Yes. Soc.
}
Her. Certainly we do. Then a name is an instrument of teaching and ot distinguishing natures, as the shut-
Soc.
success.
agree.
Soc. But again, that to be cut
I
Soc.
means
argument would lend us to inSoc. fer that names ought to be given according to a natural process, and with a proper instrument, and not at our pleasure: in this and no other shall
.i
and distinguish things according
teacher
Her. Precisely.
Her.
ask
;
tive to ourselves,
way
I
wca\cr Her. Assuredly.
Her. True. Soc.
that
\*-
|
I
tle is
speaking
has a relation to acts, of action
of speaking
true.
is
if
on n.
question about names: will \ou BOI I Regarding the name as an instrument.
ought to be spoken, and with the natural instrument 3 Anv other mode of speaking will result in error and of speaking,
•'•'
.»
kind of action?
a
the
tr
some
Hennogenes, there is Orestes the man of the mountains who appean to be rightly called; whether chance gave the name, or perhaps some poet who meant to express the brutality and fierceness and mountain wildness sin,
)
nature.
Her, That
>
.
N .
And
very likely, Socrates.
his father's
name
is
also according
into
).
antalus; and int
1
ident ot tr.idit
1
I
he nan
father,
Hem
/
meaning, although hard
to he ui
sentence, which some call him and use the one half, and others who use the other halt call him tifl Am r. t! 'her signify the nature ot the tod, and the business :>rrss the name, as we were savin nature. Pot there is none who is more the thor of life to us and to all, ih;m the
cause re.ilU like into
two
.1
1
parts, tor
I
king of
Her, Clearly. .
.u
it
!\ iii
'i
comphshmeni the
being now
.a
.i
and these
word
my
the top oi
bent,
1
1
mg
1
understand, hut ttuda is transparent, ami agrees with the principles which preceded, tor all thingsbeingin aflui ioviw), k.im.i is a io\ (going badly); and this evil motion when existing in the soul has the general name oi as yet
i
kojoo, or vice, specially appropriated to ot tuuc&s
icfrai
may
The
it.
Ik turther
trated by the use or heJda (cowardice),
which
to
I
(
presses the greatest soul;
and
and strongest bond
curopta (difficulty)
same nature (from a
not,
an
is
and
go), like anything else which
is
ot the
evil ot the
-n-optvaTHai to
an impediment
motion and movement. Then the word Rojrta appears to mean *a/c) will be the opposite
or this sort
or" it,
signify-
ing in the first place ease of motion, then that the stream of the good soul is unimpeded, and has therefore the attribute of ever flowing without let
or hindrance, and
or,
more
1
is
therefore called
t«> stagnation he gave the n.une
hindered the
this
dow beaten together
is
rrocn
«»:
sorts.
.iii
and
fiui
into
•
Her. Hut what do yoU Soc.
Thai
is
more obscure;
onl) due to the quantity,
by altering or into
Her. .
He
r.
-\\^l
\et
the b
has been
o.
What do yotl mean This name appears to denote mind. :
\
lo"
me ask vou what is the cause wh\ anything has a name; is not the principle which imposes the name the c.i Her. Certainly. Ami must not this be the mi: Soc. Let
or ol
men. or
Her. Soc.
oi
both
:
\
Is
not
mind
that
which
things by their names, and
caller
not
is
•
mind
the
:
xaAoi Her. That is evident. Soc. And arc not the work* ot intelligence
beautiful
(
I
and mind worthv ol praise, and are not other works worthy of blame? Her, Certainly. Soc. Phvsic does the
work
of a physician,
carpentering docs the works ot
He
r.
.Iptr?/,
Soc.
and
works
correctly, aeiptiri) (ever-rlowing),
Iliad, vi. 265.
enemy
whuh
illus-
have come alter dpSpcio, but was torgotten, ami. as tear, is not the only word which has been passed over. AoA/.i signifies that the soul is bound with a strong chain Secrpo?), lor Atar means strength, and theretore SuXia ex-
ought
:ig
•
great hence-
I>r
it.
on!\
should like
meaning ol the two words (virtue) and Muc(a (vice); &peTJj do not
meaning
am
koAAi
Bowing), and this is in accordance with former derivations. For the name gi
,
consider the
to
i
ami oi m was s.i\ ing,
\\\o, pajKo%
pupfwnfr. But, as
;
I
mean
has the
irr right;
li
ionale
sign oi great ac
for fiijKo*
ing oi greatness,
make up
be
too
also.
you
likelj
.
I
word
this
t
will
1-
a
and
carpenter'
\actlv.
And
the principle of beauty does the
of beauty?
Her. Of course.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
102
And
Soc.
principle
that
we
affirm
to
be
mind'
Soc.
Her. Vcr\ true. Soc.
lie
Then mind
is
rightly called beauty be-
cause she does the works which and speak of as the beautiful:
Her. That
is
we
recognize
their opposites.
[417]
The meaning of avfxfyipov (expedient) I that you may discover for yourself by the
light of the previous examples,
—
for
it is
a
sis-
meaning just the motion (i
and
(eW|«o«) or hinderei m\ d brother
n>i
8I01
is
hat
oi
.1
whn
h rnlrrs into lh
not see th.it we could do anything I
We
could not: tor by bodily imitation only can the body eves express anything. Her. Vers, true. N And when we want to express ourscb cs, either with the voice, or tongue, or mouth, the expression is simply their imitation of that .
n b.
Then
Sac.
name
a
is
vocal imitation ot that
a
which the vocal imitator names or imitates? Her.
I
think
Soc. \a\\ that
I;
in (
we have
Why
Her.
so.
my
I
am
disposed to think
not reached the truth as yet.
stre.im
not?
it we have we shall he obliged admit that the people who imitate sheep, or cocks, or other animals, name that which they
to
them
is
a
I
have been right
in
what
I
opinion, no. But wish that you me, Socrates, what sort of an imitaI
n.m
-
to re
asking;
h.is
.in.:
grasped thr n.iturc
and s\Hab!cs
:n
such
.1
ot
uunnrr
Her. Very good. Bui are these the oni\ prnn.irv names, or are there otl
Her. There must be others. should expect. But how shall wc further analyse them, ami wl the imitator begin? Imitation 01 the rtaenrc ism syllables and letters; ought WC not. tl,: I
hrst to separate the letters, just as those
who
.ire
beginning rhythm first distinguish the of elementary, and then oi compound sounds, and when they have done so. but not ; they proceed to the consideration ot rh\thms I
He
r.
Yes.
Must WC
not begin in the
sam
separating the vowels, and then the
consonants ami mutes, into
«.'
which are neither vowels, nor
mutes; and distinguishing into classes the An when we have pervowels themselves yet
i
should reply, not a musical imitation, although that is also vocal; nor, again, an imitation or. what music imitates; these, in my judgment, would not be naming. Let me put the matter as follows: All objects have sound and figure, and many have colour: Her. Certainly.
But the
the semivowels,
:
:
Soc. In the
Sbc.
'
tl
the
to the received distinctions 01 the learned: also
my
name
think
as to imitate the CSSCnCC or not.
letters; first
was saying?
tion
tu
in letters
Soc.
tell
in
about which fOM wc whether the ii.ni nr
imitate.
Her. In
),
I
to
;
Soc. Because
would
True, then
is
1
friend,
Her. Quite true. Soc. Then could
tin',
condition
a
Soc. So
I
nam
or
n. liner,
.
which we want to express. Her. It must he so, think.
hi
\\
.
horse, or any other
gestures
and the
1
animal,
.
W
/•/-'•
should mut. itc the natun the thine; the elevation ol our hands to hea> en n
first place,
art of
I
naming appears
fected the classification of things, their
sec
whether, as
we
sh.>
in the case of
which the and hence we shall see their natures, and see, too, whether they have in them classes as there are in the letters; and when we have well considered all this, we shall know letters,
be
all
1
not to be
names, and
Cf.
there are any classes to
referred;
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
106
how
to apply
them
what they resemble
to
—
ters to the expression of objects, either single letters
when
Gods waiting
plexity have their
whether one letter is used to denote one thing, or whether there is to be an admixture of several of them; just, as in painting, the painter who wants to depict anything sometimes uses purple only, or any other colour,and sometimes mixes up several colours, as his method is when he has to paint flesh colour or anything of that kind he uses his colours as his figures appear to require them; and so, too. we shall apply letrequired, or several letters; and so
we shall form syllables, as they are called, [425] and from syllables make nouns and verbs; and thus, at last, from the combinations of nouns and verbs arrive at language, large and fair and whole; and as the painter made a figure, even
must
in the air; an*
get out of our difficulty in like fashion, b
saying that "the
Gods gave
the
names, ant
first
therefore they arc right." This will be the bes contrivance, or perhaps that other notion ma'
•
be even better still, of deriving them from souk barbarous people, for the barbarians are oldei than we arc; / 426] or we may say that antiq uity has cast a veil o\cr
them, which
is
the same
sort of excuse as the last; for all these are noi
reasons but only ingenious excuses for hawn^. no reasons concerning the truth of words, yet
any
ignorance of
sort of
first
names involves an ignorance
or primitive
secondary
of
I
words; for they can only be explained by the primary. Clearly then the professor of languages should be able to give a \erv lucid explanation of first names, or let him be assured he will only talk nonsense about the rest. Do you not suppose this to be true ;
was carried away meaning to say that this wis the way in which not we but) the ancients formed language, and what they put together we must take to pieces in like manner, if we are to attain a scientific view of the whole subject; and we must see whether the primary, and also whether the secondary elements are rightly giv-
names are though I have no objection to impart them to you if you desire, and I hope that you will communicate to me in return anything better which you may have. Her. Fear not; I will do my best.
so shall
we make
speech by the art of the
or the rhetorician, or by that
I
am
literally
some other
namer Not
art.
speaking of ourselves, but
—
(
en or not, for if they are not, the composition of them, my dear Hermogenes, will be a sorry piece of work,
and
in the
wrong
certain that
Her.
I
them
in this
way?
for
I
am
should not.
Much less am Shall we leave
men
say,
we must do
likely to
as well as
we
can.
What
do you think 2 Her. I very much approve. Soc. That objects should be imitated in letters and syllables, and so find expression, may appear ridiculous, Hermogenes, but it cannot be avoided there is no better principle to which we can look for the truth of first names. Deprived of this, we must have recourse to divine help, like the tragic poets, who in any per-
—
first
and
Soc. In the
me the
notions of original
ridiculous,
first
place, the letter p appears to
to be the general (/ci'i^ais).
meaning
among same
of this
the ancients, is
And
letters.
77 was not in use only employed e; and
letter
who
nor, which
as Uvat.
correctly given as
ern
instrument expressing all I have not yet explained latter word, which is just
But
(going); for the
iccris
the root
be able. them, then? or shall we Soc. seek to discover, if we can, something about them, according to the measure of our ability, saying by way of preface, as I said before of the Gods, that of the truth about them we know nothing, and do but entertain human notions of them. And in this present enquiry, let us say to ourselves, before we proceed, that the higher method is the one which we or others who would analyse language to any good purpose must follow; but under the circumstances, as I
My
truly wild
motion
direction.
Her. That, Socrates, I can quite believe. Soc. Well, but do you suppose that you will be able to analyse
tier. Certainly, Socrates.
Soc.
is
the old Teens-
Assuming
in
a foreign form, the
word
ku'7/o-k will be corresponding mod-
this foreign root
*
change of the 77 and the insertion of the v,we have nvnym*, which should have been wueunjim or cicris-; and arda^ is the negative of iemi (or cutis-), and has been improved into o-ruais. Now the letter p. as I was saying, appeared to the imposer of names an
and allowing
for the
excellent instrument for the expression of tion:
and he frequently uses the
mo-
letter for this
example, in the actual words he represents motion by p\ also in the words rpofios (trembling), Tpa\v>; (rugged); and again, in words such as Kportiv purpose;
for
ptw and
porj
(strike),
Opaveiv
(crush),
ipcLKeiv
(bruise),
BpvTTTtLv (break), KeppaTi^ecv (crumble), pvp.-
(Sdv (whirl); of
all
these sorts of
movements
he generally finds an expression in the letter R, because, as I imagine, he had observed that the tongue was most agitated and least at rest in the pronunciation of this letter, which he
RATYLI
(
*>
I
l>\
.in
letter
he-
I
menti whk
,l
hr uses the
.ill
lettei
subtle rlr
ir
i
through
pass
h
uhv
is
.
hr
i
you
tl
imitati
.!••
i
snothci ol
m
;
uhilr
th
i
h the pronun*
In.
iation is a< ompanicd xpenditui breath; these are used in the imitation ol iu< h
the
notions
Uotkr.l out. .Hid
t
.
i
I
•
when
to
Ik-
ihivei in
i
\
shaken
.
|hO( k
|
introduced In the givei
i\s
what ii have thought thai the ind pressure oi the tongue in the uttei .'i and r wai expressive »>t binding .m.l rest in a place: he hirtnei observed the liquid movement oi a, in the pronunciation t which the tongue slips, and in this In- found the ea pression oi smoothness, .is m ,\
He teems
(windy),
s.
glutinous
clammy
yAiKis-. yAota»8(s-.
1
he
he observed
i
have a notion of inwardness; hence he duced the sound in iv&ov and t\r.*
What
How
rates?
I
be
bed the wall come
Phaedr.
lx-
was staving with Fpicrates, the house of Morvehus; that house
at
x
I
rca
OUfltl
117
\.
liki
guide
dunk
in llir
1
kj
trol lui
•
you
thai
in
ii
In iend; .*««! hope uw when \ou hr.r I
yOU will ruihr
th.it
whuh
le.ison, e,
tint
IS,
I
.mi
.i
and the men who dwell
lowt
ol
ki
M
•
in thectt) are
m\
and not the trees qi tin- country, do indeed l>clir\c tli.it \oii found spell with which to draw me out «>t the into the country, like hungr) cov< l>< whom a bough or a bunch ol trim is \\.i\ol. oni) hold up before me in like mann book, and n»hi ma) lead mo .ill round r\ti ami mrr the Wide World. Ami DOW h.i\m rived, intend to he down, and do you choose any posture in which you can read Inst. Begin.
from; but
not
ill
I
il
hers,
Though
;
1
.i
friendship
It
publu
i
.i
I
i
You know how
isten,
m. liters
with me; and how, ai conceit may arranged for the advantage ol both ol us. Ami maintain that ought not •! in ni| suit, because am not your lover: tor lovers repent of the kindnesses which the) have shown when their passion CCasCS, hut to the non-lovers who are tree ami not under any compulsion, no tune ot repentance ever comes; tor they confer their benefits according to tinst.unl
I
W
this affair
I
I
I
i
measure of their ability, most conducive to their
way which is own interest. Then
in the
how
by reason of their love they have neglected their own concerns and rendered service to others: ami when to these benefits conferred they add on the troubles which they have endured, they think that they have long ago made to the beloved a very ample return. But the non-lover has no such i.
!o\ers consider
tormenting recollections; he has never neglected his atlairs or quarrelled with his relations; he has no troubles to add up or excuse to invent; and being well rid of all these evils, why should he not freely do what will gratify the beloved
:
— that, fer
if
men,
true,
i|
and ot
il!
n
he
his heart;
his laboUl has riot is
mon
u.mh been
m.istrr.
good, and Again.
not
the
ol
lost
:
but
tl
SI
opinio
Mis is following the eupation ), and whenever the. 1
his
exchange tm o p ordt about some affair ot love i
temptation; but when nc asks the reason w h\ bo .nisr .
IIO
pi
ople
know
one th.it
talking to another is natural, whether ship or mere pleasure be the moti
Once more,
it
\ou
te.ir
friendship, consider that
m
the
tk klcr M
anv other
a mutual calamity; but now, given up what is
quarrel might be
when you have tore,
m
oser, and there you will be you will have more reason in
to you,
1
t
of the lover, for his vexations
.ire
mam.
.\w\ he
always fancying that every one is against him. Wherefore also he debars his be loved from society; he will not have vou intimate with the wealthy, lest they should exceed him in wealth, or with men of education, lest they should be his superiors m understanding; is
|
t pains; and me ostentatiously toexuli trom w
.-I
i |K*.in
.!
Imw
well he
to
>..tilil
the
%.i\
1
1
\i
dim
i
in
il
same thing
in i^«>
ui tin
U
ll.lt
s. I
v
:
.is
cspo
the
merii oi oi \\ liuh the iubje
uld
t
you
si
I
I
I
along w
\«'u.
itli
\n
ckni sages, men and women, w ho have ami written ol these things, would mm- up in judgment against me, it out oi complaisance I
to \OU.
,1
Who arc they, and where did you anything better than thii .mi sure thai must have heard; bui .it this moment Ao not remember From whom; perhaps from Sappho the lair, or An.u rcon the I
!
I
or, possibly, ,
is
beech
Why,
:
M
s.i\
I
t
nil,
good
.is
bom
a prose- writer.
because
and
that
I
Whj
perceive thai
I
COuld
do
my
make .mother
as that ol Lysias,
and
Now am certain that this is not my own. who am well aware
kill
wanting airs.''
trom
know
grand:
is
who was my
— but
better oration, equal in
length and entirely new, on the same subject; I. like the nine Archons. will promise to
and set
up :,
a
golden image
at
Delphi, not only
but ot you, and as large as
or"
lite.
You are a dear golden ass it you suppose me to mean that Lysias has altogether missed the mark, and that can make a speech trom
I
I
his art and
1
re let
indeed,
there
how
know
I
matters Band; and
fc»
won!
the
Then don't say
that
will; and Phaedr. Yes, but be an oath. "I say. or rati I
god
u:
is
it.
m\
be witness
will
swear, that unless you rep discourse here in the t.ueot this \erv plane-tree, plane-tree
I
will
I
never
tell
you another; ne\cr
his
tricks
arguments are to be excluded. something which is to the point. Who, tor example, [236] could speak on this thesis ot yours without praising the discretion of the non-lover and blaming the indiscretion of the lover.- These are the commonplaces of the subject which must come in (for what else is there to be said? ) and must be allowed and excused; the only merit is in the arrangement of them, for there can be none in the invention; but when you leave the commonplaces, then there may be some originality. Phaedr. I admit that there is reason in what all
to
ot authors will say
I
which
ot
word ot another''' Soc Villain! am conquered; ot discourse has no more dr. Then why arc you
Soc.
The worst
Phaedruj
succ-t
DM
tore per]
compete With extern; h He is a master in am an untaught man.
mind
earnest desire. Only, as you say, promise
make another and
nn
would he
that be a mystery not to be divulged even at
my to
s;
am
I
Phaedr, You sec never
where you heard the discourse or from whom; let
and
alone,
not uni
stir
ot the
:
i'.ut. it
informant.
That
we
this place
boson,
younger than \u: Where do not compel me to use
I
I
dr.
K.itl
I
stupidity
1
invention
that
I
my
compel
'"1
all
nothing, and therefore can only inter that have been rilled through the ears, like a pitcher, from the waters ot another, though have actually forgotten in
or
different.
>\n
I
ot
and you up
I
let
you have
the poor lover
tl
still
al
:
Soc. I am not going to play trick you have taken the oath, tor cannot allow myI
self to
be starved.
Phaedr. Proceed.
[2^ J
Soc. Shall
Phaedr. Soc.
I
I
tell
vou what
I
will
do :
What?
will veil
my
face
the discourse as fast as
I
and gallop
can, for
if
I
tl
see
you
I
ashamed and not know what to say. Phaedr. Only go on and you may do anything else which you please. shall feel
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
120
Come,
Soc. are
called,
O
ye Muses, melodious, as ye
whether you have received
this
name from the character of your strains, or because the Melians are a musical race, help,
O
me in desires me
the tale
help
which
my
good triend here
to rehearse, in order that his iriend
whom
he always deemed wise may seem to him to he wiser than ever. Once upon a time there was a fair boy, or, more properly speaking, a youth; he was very
and had a great many lovers; and there was one special cunning one, who had perfair
suaded the youth that he did not love him, but he really loved him all the same; and one day when he was paying his addresses to him, he used this very argument that he ought to accept the non-lover rather than the lover; his
—
words were as follows: "All good counsel begins in the same way; a man should know what he is advising about, or his counsel will all come to nought. But people imagine that they know about the nature of
when they having come
things,
don't
know about them, and,
not to an understanding at first because they think that they know, they end, as might be expected, in contradicting one another and themselves. Now you and I must not be guilty of this fundamental error which we
condemn
in others; but as our question is whether the lover or non-lover is to be pre-
ferred, let us first of all agree in defining the
nature and power of love, and then, keeping our eyes upon the definition and to this appealing, let us further enquire whether love brings advantage or disadvantage. "Every one sees that love is a desire, and we
know
also that non-lovers desire the beautiful
and good.
Now
in
what way
is
the lover to be
distinguished from the non-lover? Let us note that in every one of us there are two guiding and ruling principles which lead us whither they will; one
is
is
pleasure, that
power
of misrule
is
called excess.
Now
excess has
bers,
and many forms, and any of these forms very marked gives a name, neither hon-
when
possessed by
many names, and many mem-
ourable nor creditable, to the bearer of the name. The desire of eating, for example, which
is
it is
desire of drink,
called gluttony,
called a glutton; the tyrannical
which
inclines the possessor of
name which
the desire to drink, has a
too obvious, and there can be as
only
is
doubt by what name any other appetite of the same family would be called; of that
now
my
I
which happens
—
little
will be the
it
dominant.
to be
name And
think that sou will perceive the drift of
word
discourse; but as every spoken
manner
is
in a
had better say further that the irrational desire which overcomes the tendency of opinion towards right, and is led away to the enjoyment of beauty, and especially of personal beauty, by the desires which are her own kindred that supreme desire, I say, which by leading conquers and by the force of passion is reinforced, from this very force, receiving a name, is plainer than the unspoken,
1
—
called love
(
tppoj^xei '«k epojc
description
and certainly not the terror of his enemies; which nobody can deny. And now let us tell what advantage or disadvantage the beloved will receive from the guardianship and society of his lover in the the next point to
him. But w
':
ot
is
'
time? Must he not nel the extn mitj when he
the anxiety ot his friends and also ot his lover,
matter of his property; this
in
then:.
himself,
and
v
intolerable
when
the
m
and, besides being inl over the world in all their indcluacy and someness when he is drunk.
And not only while his love is he mischievous and unpleasant, but when his love !
he becomes a {xrrtidious enemy of him on whom he showered his oaths ami and promises, [241 1 and yet could hard vail upon him to tolerate the tedium companv even trom motives ot irr hour of payment arrives, and now he is the servant of another master; instead of love and infatu. lom and temperance arc his 1
bosom
it
the beloved has not discov-
ered the change which has taken place in when he asks for a return and recalls to his
and doings; he bespeaking to the same person, and the other, not having the courage to recollection former sayings lieves himself to be
confess the truth, and not fil
die oaths and promises
know ing how which he made
to ful-
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
122
under the dominion of folly, and having now grown wise and temperate, docs not want to do as he did or to be as he was before. And so he runs away and is constrained to be a dethe oyster-shell
faulter;
1
has fallen with the
— he changes pursuit into
other side uppermost
while the other is compelled to follow him with passion and imprecation not knowing that he ought never Irom the first to have accepted a demented lover instead of a sensible non-lover; and that in making such a choice he was giving himself up to a faithless, morose, envious, disagreeable being, hurtful to his esflight,
tate,
hurtful to his bodily health,
and
still
more
hurttul to the cultivation of his mind, than
which there neither is nor ever will be anything more honoured in the eyes both of gods and men. Consider this, fair youth, and know that in the friendship of the lover there is no real kindness; he has an appetite and wants to feed
upon you:
As wolves love lambs
so lovers love their loves.
you so, I am speaking in verse, and had better make an end; enough. Phaedr. I thought that you were only halfway and were going to make a similar speech But
I
told
therefore
I
about
all
lover.
Why do you not proceed?
Soc.
the advantages of accepting the non-
Does not your
I
add the praises of the non-lover, what become of me? Do you not perceive that I
to
will
already overtaken by the Nymphs to whom you have mischievously exposed me? And therefore I will only add that the non-lover has all the advantages in which the lover is accused of being deficient. And now I will say no more; there has been enough of both of them. Leaving the tale to its fate, [242] I will cross the river and make the best of my way home, lest a worse thing be inflicted upon me by you. Phaedr. Not yet, Socrates; not until the heat of the day has passed; do you not see that the hour is almost noon? there is the midday sun
am
standing still, as people say, in the meridian. Let us rather stay and talk over what has been said, and then return in the cool. Soc. Your love of discourse, Phaedrus, is superhuman, simply marvellous, and I do not believe that there is any one of your contempo1
game
which two
parties fled
or pursued according as an oyster-shell
which was
In allusion to a
thrown into the uppermost.
air fell
in
number
of speeches. I would except Simmias Theban, but all the rest arc tar behind \ou. And now I do verily believe that you ha\c been
the
the cause of another.
Phaedr. That
is
good news. But what do you
mean? Soc.
I
mean
to say that as
the stream the usual sign
was about to cross was given to me, I
which always iorbids, but never bids, do anything which I am going to do; and I thought that I heard a voice saying in my ear that I had been guilty of impiety, and that I must not go away until I had made an atonement. Now I am a diviner, though not a \crv good one, but I have enough religion tor mv own use, as you might say of a bad writer his writing is good enough for him; and am beginning to see that I was in error. O my friend, how prophetic is the human soul! At the time I had a sort ot misgiving, and, like Ib\cus.'*l was troubled; I feared that I might be buying honour from men at the price of sinning against that sign
me
to
—
I
Now
the gods."
What
Phaedr. Soc.
That was
I
recognize
my
error.
error? a dreadful speech
brought with you, and you made
which you utter one
me
as bad.
simplicity observe that
have got out of dithyrambics into heroics, when only uttering a censure on the lover? And if I
am
rancs who has either made or in one wav or another has compelled others to make an equal
with the dark or light side
How
Phaedr. Soc.
It
was
so?
foolish,
I
say,
—
to a certain ex-
impious; can anything be more dreadful? Phaedr. Nothing, if the speech was really such as you describe. Soc. Well, and is not Eros the son of Aphro-
tent,
dite,
and
a
god
3
Phaedr. So men say. Soc. But that was not acknowledged by Lysias in his speech, nor by you in that other speech which you by a charm drew from my lips. For if love be, as he surely is, a divinity, he cannot be evil. Yet this was the error of both the speeches. There was also a simplicity about them which was refreshing; [243] having no truth or honesty in them, nevertheless they pretended to be something, hoping to succeed in deceiving the manikins of earth and gain celebrity among them. Wherefore I must have a purgation. And I bethink me of an ancient purgation of mythological error which was devised, not by Homer, for he never had the wit to discover why he was blind, but by Stesichorus, who was a philosopher and knew the reason why; and therefore, when he lost his eyes, for that was the penalty which was inflicted upon him for reviling the lovely Helen, he at
»
r
1
\
1
i
i
once purged himself \nd the intation, vt hi< h began thus
m
and when
lie
had completed
his
poem, which
ii
called "the recanution," iminediatel) hi
No*
returned to him.
culirt Stesichorus 01
make m\
i
before
veiled
U>M and
intation
Ik-
in thai
I
M>ur.
i
re> ilin
foi
on ould be more agreeable to
1
.1
own. when we
of
tell
the-
1
—
aare say not, Socrates.
Soc. Therefore, because 1 blush
and
Love himself,
I
of
my
cars
also because
.it
I
the thought
am
afraid
or'
wash the brine out with water from the spring; and desire to
s.irnc name, 1! they madness to be I must have thought that there madness which was a noble t! words, parrot)} and p and the letter r is only a modern
insertion.
and
and therefore
tion,
Know
then, fair youth, that the former
was the word of Phaedrus, [244] the son of Vain Man. who dwells in the city of Myrrhina (Myrrhinusius). And this which I
is
is
it
An
faculty
1
the
other signs-
.
rational in\ese
-this, tor as
which supplies from
art
mind
1
1
trik
)
two
confirmed by the
I
ot birds or ot
ly
Soc.
this
:i
termed
discourse
And
which was given by them to the of futurity, whether
Phaedr. Be assured that he shall. You shall speak the praises of the lover, and Lysias shall be compelled by me to write another discourse on the same theme. Soc. You will be true to your nature in that, believe you.
and
both by the
rather than the non-lover.
I
;
with madness
to
Phaedr. Speak, and fear not. Soc. But where is the fair youth whom I was addressing before, and who ought to listen now; lest, if he hear me not, he should accept a non-lover before he knows what he is doing 3 Phaedr. He is close at hand, and always at your service.
•
In-
b
\\
when go move up ih< 1
1
*
«-
to
\
banquet
the vault
c*l
heaven
1
.«n«l 1
ifim the)
il,
will
jealous) hai no place in th
foi
tul choir. Bui
i»i
man) ^
:
the top
he chariots ol
it •
• 1
h-\
but
others labour,
the-
re
foi ilir
tpidly
I
\
i
|
tangible essence, visible onl) to mind, the pilot ot the soul. The divine intelligence, being nur-
tured upon
d
which
receiving the food proper to
it.
is
capable
rejoices at
and once more gazing upon truth, is replenished and made glad, until the revolution ot the worlds brings her round again to the same place. In the revolution she beholds justice, and temperance, and knowledge lute, not in the form of generation or of relation, which men call existence, but knov absolute in existence absolute: and beholding the other true existences in like manner, and feasting upon them, she passes down into the interior of the heavens and returns home; and there the charioteer putting up his ho: the stall, gives them ambrosia to eat and nectar reality,
to drink.
[24S] Such is the life of the gods; but ot other souls, that which follows God best and is likest to him lifts the head of the charioteer into the outer world,
and
is
carried round in the
revolution, troubled indeed bv the steeds,
with I
:
difficulty
other only
and
beholding true being; while an-
rises
and
falls,
and
sees,
and
ag.iin
by reason of the unruhness ot the steeds. The rest of the souls are also longing tails to see
after the
ll. is
n. nu-
seen truth in the second degree shall be
mind and pure knowledge, and
the intelligence ol every soul
beholding
some musical and loving
upper world and they
not being strong
enough they
all
follow, but
are carried round
below the surface, plunging, treading on one
'uel; the
which
ot
is
the third class
s
:
or economist, or trader: the fourth shall
lover ot gymnastic
shall lead the lite ot a
prophet or
the sixth the character 01
.1
pod
him or
s-
:
imitative artist will be assigned; to the
the
lite
I
I
st vcutli
of an artisan or husfaandmai
eighth that ot
a sophist or
—
ninth that of a tyrant; probation, in which he
improves, and he
who
demaj
al!
the
I
who doc docs unr:
de-
teriorates his lot.
years must elapse before the one can return to t! whence she came. [249] tor she camber wings in less; onl\ the soul ot a guileless and true, or the soul of a lover, who is not devoid of philosophy.
Ten thousand
soul ot each
mm
•
1
in the third of the
recurring jKncxls
ol
sand years; he is distinguished from the nary good man who gains wings in three t: sand years:— and thev who choose this lite _ three times in succession have wing them, and go away at the end of three t! sand years. But the others receive judgment when they have completed their first life, and 1
after the
judgment they
go,
some
the houses ot correction which
of
them
to
the
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
126
and are punished; others to some place heaven whither they are lightly borne by justice, and there they live in a manner worthy of the life which they led here when in the form of men. And at the end of the first thousand years the good souls and also the evil souls both come to draw lots and choose their second life, and they may take any which they please. The
amazement; but they
earth,
in
in
this rapture
soul of a
man may
pass into the
life
of a beast,
or from the beast return again into the
man.
But the soul which has never seen the truth will not pass into the human form. For a man must have intelligence of universals, and be able to proceed from the many particulars of sense to one conception of reason; this is the recollection of those things which our soul once saw while following God when regardless of that which we now call being she raised her head up towards the true being. And there-
—
—
mind of the philosopher alone has wings; and this is just, for he is always, according to the measure of his abilities, clinging in fore the
recollection to those things in
which God
abides,
beholding which He is what He is. And he who employs aright these memories is ever being initiated into perfect mysteries and alone becomes truly perfect. But, as he forgets earthly interests and is rapt in the divine, the vulgar deem him mad, and rebuke him; they do not see that he is inspired. Thus far I have been speaking of the fourth and last kind of madness, which is imputed to him who, when he sees the beauty of earth, is transported with the recollection of the true beauty; he would like to fly away, but he cannot; he is like a bird fluttering and looking upward and careless of the world below; and he is therefore thought to be mad. And I have
and
in
shown
what
are ignorant of
means, because they do not clearly perceive. For there is no light of justice or temperance or any of the higher ideas which are precious to souls in the earthly copies of
them: they are seen through
a glass dimly;
and
there are few who, going to the images, behold
them the realities, and these only with diffiThere was a time when with the rest of the happy band they saw beauty shining in in
culty.
brightness,
— we philosophers following
gods; and then
in the
company with other
train of Zeus, others in
we beheld
the beatific vision
mystery which may be truly called most blessed, celebrated by us in our state of innocence, before we had any experience of evils to come, when we were admitted to the sight of apparitions innocent and simple and calm and happy, which we beheld shining inpure light, pureourselves and not vet enshrined in that living tomb which we carry about, now that we are imprisoned in the bod\, like an oyster in his shell. Let me linger over the memory of scenes which have passed away. But of beauty, I repeat again that we saw her there shining in company with the celestial forms; and coming to earth we find her here too, shining in clearness through the clearest
and were
initiated into a
aperture of sense. For sight
is the most piercing though not by that is wisdom seen; her loveliness would have been transporting if there had been a visible image of her, and the other ideas, if they had visible counterparts, would be equally lovely. But this is the
of our bodily senses;
privilege of beauty, that being the loveliest she
most palpable
is
also the
is
not newly initiated or
to sight.
who
Now
he
who
has become cor-
rupted, does not easily rise out of this world
this of all inspirations to be the noblest
to the sight of true beauty in the other; he looks
and highest and the offspring of the highest to him who has or shares in it, and that he who
only at her earthly namesake, and instead of being awed at the sight of her, he is given over to pleasure, and like a brutish beast he rushes on to enjoy and beget; [251] he consorts with
loves the beautiful
is
called a lover because he
For, as has been already said, every soul of man has in the way of nature beheld true being; this was the condition of her
partakes of
it.
passing into the form of man. But
all
souls
do
not easily recall the things of the other world;
may have seen them or they may have been
[250] they time only,
for a short
unfortunate and, having had their hearts turned to unrighteousness through some corrupting influence, they may have lost the in their earthly lot,
memory
of the holy things which once they saw. Few only retain an adequate remembrance of them; and they, when they behold here any image of that other world, are rapt
wantonness, and is not afraid or ashamed of pursuing pleasure in violation of nature. But he whose initiation is recent, and who has been the spectator of is
many glories in
amazed when he
like face or form,
sees
the other world,
any one having a god-
which
is
the expression of
a shudder runs through him, and again the old awe steals over him; then looking upon the face of his beloved as of a god he reverences him, and if he were not afraid of being thought a downright madman, he would sacrifice to his beloved as to the image of a god; then while he gazes on him
divine beauty; and at
first
I'll \l lion,
an.
DIM
S
tlir
I
in unusual beat and the receives the effluence ol beaut) thro the eyes, the wing moistens and h< Vnd
ity,
warms, the parti out ol which tlir .uul \s lm h had been hith< .uul bad prevented tlir w ing from
..111:
es into i
i
us
\\c
a
,
;
.
ma)
I*-
•.•
m.l
i
wlu.
Il
ti
Forth, are melted, .uul .is nourithi ims uym\ him, the lowei end ol the w
iwell .uul grow from the i"«»t up and the growth extendi undei ilir uholr soul foi once the whole \\.»s \s in hiring tins process the w lu.lt- soul ii all in a state ol ebullition .uul effervescence, which ma) be compared to the irritation .uul uneasi is
to
wards;
may
1
iuss in
tlu-
mum m
bubbles up, .uul hai is
a feeling ol
uneasiness .uul
but
beloved meets •
blc
|
K-r eye
warm motion
.uul
ot
she
which flow emotion
towards her, therefore called
is refreshed .uul warmed by them, and then she ceases trom her pain with joy. But when she is parted trom her beloved and her
tails,
then the orifices of the pass. me wing shoots dry up ami
out ot which the
.
and intercept the germ ot' the wing; which, being shut up with the emotion, throbbing as with the pulsations ot' an artery, pricks the aperture which is nearest, until at length the entire soul is pierced and maddened and pained, and at the recollection ot beaut \ is again delighted. And from both ot' them together the soul is oppressed at the strangeness ot her condition, and is in a great strait and excitement, and in her madness can neither sleep by night nor abide in her place by day. And
wherever she thinks that she
will behold the
beautiful one, thither in her desire she runs.
And when
she has seen him, and bathed herself in the waters of beauty, her constraint is loosened, and she is refreshed, and has no more
pangs and pains; and
this
is
the sweetest of
all
SlU h
.is
I
\>ct
lov
l.i
ill
i
i\
ihr
,
in.
d upon. I
s
h.r
htrdly,
!
ffld
them
Mir.
I
men ind
one another, lie u ill rc.isoiiN oi his arrangement, and show whj one soul is persuaded bj particuUu form ol inrni, and anothei not \ ou lit\ c hit upon vei j good w a) s thai in the true and only \ nibjtt ^.m be ki forth 01 treated b) n rules ol .ut. whether in speak writing. Hut the writers oi the present day, ai who* (eel you have sat, craftily conceal the nature ol the iouI which they know quite well, Nor, until tlu\ adopt our method ol reading and writing, gas we admit th.it they write by rules ol an /'•• Wh.u is our method : Soc, cannot give you the exact details; but I should hkc to tell you generally, .is Ear as is in m\ power, how man ought to proceed accord ing to rules ol art i
!
:
thru km-! •
to
IN
in.
;
I
.1
.
tins
m
;
..
.
•
.
lux)
i
t
it
.i
||
then
u Would \ .uid k have heard from Lysiai thing whi< h in Phacdr. It tr\ t
but
the
.11
r
moment
Cf.
I
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
138
Phaedr. Certainly, he does. believe that he has a clever and inI genious case of this sort: He supposes a feeble and valiant man to have assaulted a strong and cowardly one, and to have robbed him of his coat or of something or other; he is brought into court, and then Tisias says that both parties should tell lies: the coward should say that he was assaulted by more men than one; the other should prove that they were alone, and should argue thus: "How could a weak man " like me have assaulted a strong man like him: The complainant will not like to confess his own cowardice, and will therefore invent some other lie which his adversary will thus gain an opportunity of refuting. And there are other devices of the same kind which have a place in I not right, Phaedrus? the system. Phaedr. Certainly. Soc. Bless me, what a wonderfully mysterious art is this which Tisias or some other gentleman, in whatever name or country he rejoices, has discovered. Shall we say a word to him or not? Phaedr. What shall we say to him? Soc. Let us tell him that, before he appeared, you and I were saying that the probability of which he speaks was engendered in the minds of the many by the likeness of the truth, and we had just been affirming that he who knew the truth would always know best how to discover the resemblances of the truth. If he has anything else to say about the art of speaking we should like to hear him; but if not, we are satisfied with our own view, that unless a man estimates Soc.
—
5
Am
the various characters of his hearers and to divide all things into classes
hend them under
and
is
able
to compre-
single ideas, he will never be
a skilful rhetorician even within the limits of
human power. And this skill he will not attain without a great deal of trouble, which a good man ought to undergo, not for the sake of speaking and acting before men, but in order that he may be able to say what is acceptable to God and always to act acceptably to Him as far as in
wiser
him
men
lies;
[274]
for there
than ourselves, that a
is
a saying of
man
of sense
should not try to please his fellow-servants (at least this should not be his first object) but his good and noble masters; and therefore if the way is long and circuitous, marvel not at this, for, where the end is great, there we may take the longer road, but not for lesser ends such as yours. Truly, the argument may say, Tisias, that if you do not mind going so far, rhetoric has a fair beginning here.
Phaedr. I think, Socrates, that this is admiif only practicable. Soc But c\cn to tail in an honourable object is honourable. Phaedr. True.
rable,
Enough appears
Soc.
of a true
and
to
false art of
have been said by us speaking.
Phaedr. Certainly. Soc. But there is something \et to be said of proprietv and impropriety of writing. Phaedr. Yes. Soc. Do you know how you can speak or act about rhetoric in a manner which will be acceptable to
God?
Phaedr. No, indeed. Do you.' Soc. I have heard a tradition of the ancients, whether true or not they only know; although if we had found the truth ourselves, do vou think that we should care much about the opinions of men? Phaedr. Your question needs no answer; but I wish that you would tell me what you say that you have heard. Soc. At the Egyptian city of Naucratis, there was a famous old god, whose name was Theuth; the bird which
is
called the Ibis
is
sacred
him, and he was the inventor of many arts, such as arithmetic and calculation and geometry and astronomy and draughts and dice, but to
his great discovery
was the use
of letters.
Now
days the god Thamus was the king of the whole country of Egypt; and he dwelt in that great city of Upper Egypt which the Hellenes call Egyptian Thebes, and the god himself is called by them Ammon. To him came Theuth and showed his inventions, desiring that the other Egyptians might be allowed to have the benefit of them; he enumerated them, and Thamus enquired about their several uses, and praised some of them and censured others, as he approved or disapproved of them. It would in those
take a long time to repeat all that Thamus said Theuth in praise or blame of the various arts.
to
But when they came to letters, This, said Theuth, will make the Egyptians wiser and give them better memories; it is a specific both for the
memory and
for the wit.
Thamus
re-
O
most ingenious Theuth, the parent or inventor of an art is not always the best judge plied:
of the utility or inutility of his to the users of
stance,
you
who
them. [275]
own And
inventions in this in-
are the father of letters,
from a
own
children have been led to attribute to them a quality which they cannot have; for this discovery of yours will paternal love of your
create forgetfulness in the learners' souls, be-
1
l'i
w
the)
-
:ll
ate
not
I
\
will trust to the external written chai
remember of themselves
not
you have dis overed
ii
k
hut
not
in lid not
which
mci
t
on!)
but
truth,
the
Mlriit
the)
they
ling;
having
the
will
s!n>w
be
thi
k
comp
tiresome
wisdom without
oJ
tl>r
x
ites,
Egypt, or
\ihi
.in
^
easily invent
any other country. s is tradition in the temple ot Ion. th.it o.iks lust gave prophetU utter inces. The menoi old, unlike in their simpli< ity .'.
i
1
I
oi
.1
young philosophy, deemed th.it the) heard the truth even from "oak or rock," wasenough lor them; where. is \ou seem to consider not whether a thing is or is not true, hut who the speaker is and trom what country the tale it
it
.l!'.
husb
.1
t.ikr the
w
;
1
them
plant
"hiring the
!
'•
i
t.'
Iw~
I
.
aid
.
•:
:
S
I
fu
I
w ill be hearen »>i many ind w ill have leai ned noth to he omnis< ieni and w ill generally uth;
rc.ilit\
DKI
rem in
to
ciplrs ti
I
memoi
iIh-ii
them sake
-
amusement and pastime
ot
m
is
in
he WOUld
le.ot
at
e.irnest
he iOWl in
I
lit'
uses husbandry, and months the seeds whkh he
I
in
if
ut
hersell
«hr
fcrphdl
m any one whodoes sen ice to .mother un-
oi
But
w ho
the
is
er
this
h
is .is
ti
ommoi
1
m\
contribution as could m
good
I'.uis.mi.is
1
in
I
,
1
.1;
wha h have been wise to speak; and AriatooV turn ot Aristophanes anced way
in
I
1
1
the
••
had eaten too miM h, or fron he bad the hiccough,and wasoblij turns with r\ xim.u husthe 1
;
reclining on the COUch
bdow
him.
I
he said, you ought enl. COUgh, or to s(K-.ik in mv turn until
:
.
us,
':.
I
oil.
the one capable of
do lx»th. said Eiyiimai your turn, and do J and while am speaking let you to hold your breath, and 1! after JTOU done so tor some time the hicCOUgh is no better, then gargle with a little water; and it it still continues, tickle your nose with something and sneeze; and it you sue; the most violent hiccough is surwill do as you prescribe,
virtue, the other seeking to acquire
get on.
each ot them a law, and the lover thinks that he is right in doing any service which he t.in to his gracious loving one; and the other that he is right in showing any kindness which he can to him who is making him wise and good;
communicating wisdom and them with a view to education and wisdom; when the two laws of love are fulfilled and meet in one then, and then only, may the beloved yield with hon-
—
our to the lover. Nor when love is of this disinterested sort is there any disgrace in being deceived, but in every other case there is equal disgrace in being or not being deceived. For he who is gracious to his lover under the impression that he is rich, [185] and is disappointed of his gains because he turns out to be poor, is disgraced all the same: for he has done
show that he would give himself up to any one's "uses base" for the sake of money; but this is not honourable. And on the his best to
will
I
I
s[K-.ik in
.
I
1 1
I
Eryximachui spoke as follows: Seeing that Pausamas made a fair Ixrginmng. [l86j and but a lame ending, must endeavour I I
think that he has rightl\ tinguished two kinds of love. Hut my art further informs me that the double love is merely an affection of the soul of mar: his deficiency.
I
-
the
tair.
or towards anything, but
in the bodies of all
of the earth, is
and
the conclusion
from
how
my own
I
animals and
may
which
art of
say in I
seem
in
all
to
found
to be
productions that
have gathered
medicine, whence
great and wonderful
deity of love,
is
I
learn
and universal is the whose empire extends over all
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
156
human. And from medicine I will begin that I may do honour to my art. There are in the human body these two kinds of love, which are confessedly different and unlike, and being unlike, they have loves and desires which are unlike; and the desire of things, divine as well as
the healthy
is
one, and the desire of the diseased
another; and as Pausanias was just now saying that to indulge good men is honourable, is
—
and bad men dishonourable: so too in the body the good and healthy elements are to be indulged, and the bad elements and the elements of disease are not to be indulged, but discouraged. And this is what the physician has to do, and in this the art of medicine consists: for medicine may be regarded generally as the knowledge of the loves and desires of the body, and how to satisfy them or not; and the best he
who
able to separate fair love
making love grow up among them; and thus
these other cases, music implants,
and unison
to
music, too,
is
concerned with the principles of
application to harmonv and rhythm. Again, in the essential nature of harmony and rhythm there is no difficulty in discerning love which has not yet become double. But when you want to use them in actual life. either in the composition of songs or in the cor rect performance of airs or metres composed already, which latter is called education, then the difficulty begins, and the good artist is needed. Then the old tale has to be repeated of fair and heavenly love the love of Urania the fair and heavenly muse, and of the duty of accepting the temperate, and those who are as yet intemperate only that they may become temperate, and love
in
their
—
of preserving their love;
gar Polyhymnia,
and again, of the
vul-
who must
friendship and accord in these elements, was
be used with circumspection that the pleasure be enjoyed, but may not generate licentiousness; just as in my own art it is a great matter so to regulate the desires of the epicure that he may gratify his tastes without the attendant evil of disease. Whence I infer that in music, in medicine, in all other things human as well as divine, both loves ought to be noted as far as may be, [18S] for they are both present. The course of the seasons is also full of both
the creator of our art, as our friends the poets
these principles;
physician
is
is
from foul, or to convert one into the other; and he who knows how to eradicate and how to implant love, whichever is required, and can reconcile the most hostile elements in the conand make them loving friends, is a Now the most hostile are the most opposite, such as hot and cold, bitter and sweet, moist and dry, and the like. And my stitution
skilful practitioner.
ancestor, Asclepius,
here
tell us,
and
knowing how
believe
I
to
implant
them; and not only
medicine in every branch, but the arts of gymand husbandry are under his dominion. [ i8y] Any one who pays the least attention to the subject will also perceive that in music nastic
same reconciliation of opposites;and this must have been the meaning Heracleitus, although his words are not ac-
there I
is
the
suppose that
of
The One is united by harmony of the bow and the
curate; for he says that
disunion, like the lyre.
Now
harmony
there
is
is
an absurdity in saying that
discord or
is
composed
of elements
But what he probably meant was, that harmony is composed of differing notes of higher or lower pitch which disagreed once, but are now reconciled by the art of music; for if the higher and lower notes still disagreed, there could be no harmony clearly not. For harmony is a symphony, and symphony is an agreement; but an agreement of disagreements while they disagree there cannot be; you cannot harmonize
which are
still
in a state of discord.
—
that is
which
disagrees. In like
compounded
and long, once and now in accord; which accordance, the former instance, medicine, so in all
differing as in
manner rhythm
of elements short
and when,
as
I
was saying, the
elements of hot and cold, moist and dry. attain the harmonious love of one another and blend in temperance and harmony, they bring to men. animals, and plants health and plenty, and do them no harm; whereas the wanton love, getting the upper hand and affecting the seasons of the year, is very destructive and injurious, being the source of pestilence, and bringing many other kinds of diseases on animals and plants; for hoar-frost and hail and blight spring from the excesses and disorders of these elements of love, which to know in relation to the revolutions of the heavenly bodies and the sea-
sons of the year
more
all
is
sacrifices
termed astronomy. Furtherand the whole province of
which is the art of communion between gods and men these, I say, are concerned only with the preservation of the good and the cure of the evil love. For all manner of impiety is likely to ensue if, instead of accepting and honouring and reverencing the harmonious love in all his actions, a man honours the other love, whether in his feelings towards gods or parents, towards the living or the dead. Wherefore the business of divination is to see to these loves and to heal them, and divination divination,
—
M tlu-
i%
peacemakei
M
i
ItWr
«
t
li
IN
godi uml men,
•!
•
knowledge ol th< h exist len< ics w
l>\
i
•..
i
human
in
lo
t!
force oi
ind the lo ted w nli
love
ially,
u Km
ind which
ii
l»
i
company with
perfected in
tern
W lull' men, h.is ihe greatest power, and in the source out happiness and harmony, and m us h icndj with the gods w ho are above un. and u :ih one another. dare vi\ thai w hu h might be said in niNlu
pel iik e .ind
e,
i
I
I
i
and he u ith set en t
round
.»
. but this w.in not intentional,
you, Aristophanes, ike
some
ma) now lupplj the amis lmr ol commendation;
othei
perceive that you
I
rid oi the
.in-
d,
I
I
.1
1
I
1
1
I
You I
are quite right, said Aristophanes, laughwill
unsay
my
words; DUl do you please
Hot to watch me. as
I
tear that in the speech
I am about to make, instead ol others laughing with mc, which is to the manner horn or" our muse and would he all the better, shall only he laughed at by them. Ho you expect to shoot your holt and es Aristophanes? Well, perhaps it you are very careful and bear in mind that you will Ik- called to account, I may be induced to let you off. Aristophanes professed to open another \ein o! discourse; he had a mind to praise Love in another way, unlike that either ot Pausanias or Eryximachus. Mankind, he said, judging by their neglect of him. have never, as think, at ail understood the power of Love. For if they had understood him they would surely have built noble temples and altars, and oilered solemn sacrifices in his honour; but this is not done, and most certainly ought to be done:
which
1
I
is the best friend of men, and the healer of the ills which are the great impediment to the happiness of the race. will try to describe his power to you. and you shall teach the rest of the world what I am
since of
all
the gods he
the helper
I
teaching you. In the the nature of
first
place, let
man and what
now
I
d Aj istophanes, w ho Followed, the hiccough is gone; not, however, until plied tin wonder whethei ihr \\ and harmony ol tlu- body has love ol such noises and ticklings, tor no sooner applied the sru ing than was cured. ryximachus said: Beware, friend Aristoph« gfa you are going to speak, you .ire making fun oi me; and shall have to watch and see whether cannot have a laugh at your expense, when you might speak m pe ing.
i
mm
mc
treat of
has happened to
do.
i
and hr
. turning foUf
Icet.
right in
and over
v.
when
v.
hr
ith
were thrre. and 1>
SI
dances, hr
is
(
.ur
:
i
lord
kindness evci and nevci gives unkind good, the wondei oi the the amazement o( the gods; desired by those who have no part in him, and pro to those who baVC the Inner part in him; es
in.iniiri
kliru the
!
||
should spc.ik Well ilitrritlon u
Ii. ili;'
V,
ness; the friend oi the
hun
.
parent of delicacy, luxury, desire,
Fondness,
[ardful ol the good, regard
softness,
utc to
comrade, helper; glor) ol gods and men, leader best and brightest: in whose
whk h
footsteps
let
ever)
man
follow, sweetl) singing
honour and joining in thai sweet strain with which love (."harms the souls ol gods and men. Such is the speech, Phaedrus, hah playful, yet having a certain measure oi serious: in his
my
which, according to the god.
ability.
I
dedicate to
t\ t
an
imagu
gathered
l>c
a:, '
that
"he is all this." and ':' Milking hun ap|>car the
who knou hun upon those who know h:m
ot all to those
not un|H)se
I
noble and solemn In hearsed. But as
mn
pn
ot
misund
I
when
the praise
I
nature ot
-
said that
'
;
.'
I
had clone speaking, was a general eheer; the young man was thought to have spoken in a manner worthy of himself, ami of the g And Socrates, looking at Kryximachus, said: Tell me. son ot Acumen us, was there not reason in my tears.- and was not a true prophet when said that Agathon would make a wonderful oration, and that should be in a strait. The part of the prophecy which concerns Agathon, replied Kryximachus, appears to me to be true; but not the other part that you
Phaedrus, whether you would have the truth about love, spoken in am and in any order which may happen to into my mind at the time. Will that Ix
will be in a strait.
able to you?
\:
Stodemus
saicl
that there
1
I
:
I
—
Why. my
dear friend, said Socrates, must not I or any one be in a strait who has to speak attcr he has heard such a rich and varied discoui am especially struck with the lx*auty of the concluding words who could listen to them I
—
wuhout amazement
2
When
I
reflected
on the
immeasurable inferiority of my own powers. I Was ready to run away for shame, if there had been a possibility of escape. For was reminded of Gorgias, and at the cm} of his speech fancied that Agathon was shaking at me the Gorginian or Gorgonian head of the great master I
I
my
would take
I
must beg t»» be absolved from ise which made in ig Euripides would say was a promise of the and not ot the mind do not praise ill strain: tor deed, cannot. But it you like t hr.tr di turn,
When Agathon
I:
vou should reall) should ap[>car to prai
the evil: in every word, work, wish, Eear
ol
sa> tour, pilot,
or
I
)
lips
:
:
I
;
I
about love,
am
I
manner, though
I
ready
tie the easiest way, and
...
to the wise
shall take
w
in
bai
is
"I ben
b
t:
L
i»i
"What "
;
tal
th
t
foolish
beaut] in every form
is
to
one
ii
and the samel Ami when he perceives tins be will abate Ins violent love oi the one, which he will despise and deem a sm.ill thing, and will
me
a lover oi
next stage the
lu-
all
beautiful forms; in the
will consider thai the beauty
mind
oi the
is more honourable than the beauty outward form. So that it a virtuous soul
have but
a little
comeliness, he will be content
and tend him, ami
and brim: to the birth thoughts which may improve the young, until he is compelled to contemplate and see the beauty oi institutions and laws, and to understand that the beauty oi them all one family, ami that personal beauty is a trifle; and alter laws and institutions he will go on to love
will search out
i
to the sciences, that he
may
see their beauty,
being not like a servant in love with the beauty oi one youth or man or institution, himselt a slave
mean ami narrow-minded,
hut drawing
towards dnd contemplating the beauty, he will create
many
tair
is
and noble
revealed to
him
which is the science of beauty everywhere. To this I will proceed; please to give me your very best attention: of a single science,
"He who
has been instructed thus far in the who has learned to see the
things ot love, and
due order and succession, when he comes toward the end will suddenly perceive a nature of wondrous beauty (and this, [21 1 J Socrates, is the final cause of all our former toils) a nature which in the tirst place is everlasting, not growing and decaying, or beautiful in
—
waxing and waning; secondly, not
fair in
dtmtmii
I
•
out
tint tin
niiliK in r
thai beauty,
(..
the
oi is
11.
true .t
II
fai
from the
1
1
u
beauties «»t earth and moui vikc oi that otha beaui only,
thr
and from out
two
in
t.ur
prai bees,
forms, and fi and from fair pi notions, until from t.ur notion'. the notion oi absolute beauty, and what the essence oi beauty is. Ins. ius." nid the stra th.it hie above all others which man should fail
ill
I
one
point of view and foul in another, or at one
live,
the
contemplatioo «>t beauty absoluti beauty which ii you once beheld, nu wi in
see
not to DC after the incisure ot gold.
garments, ami
.
and youths, w b enCC now entrain es -I \u and D a one would be content to live seeing them and conversing with them without drink, it that were possible look .it them and to Ik- with them. But wh.it if man had eyes to see the true beauty the diwnc mean, pure .\m\ clear and U1 beauty, fair boys
I
—
I
not clogged with the [Pollutions of
vast
thoughts and notions in boundless love oi a dom; until on that shore he grows and waxes strong, and at last the vision
but lasting, whii
ami
all
the colours ami
— thither
\
.unties ol
:
human
life
looking, ami holding converse with
the true beauty simple
member how
in that
and divine ;
communion
/
21 2 j
only,
I
Ixrl.
ing beauty with the eve oi the mind, he will be enabled to bring forth, not imagi but realities! for he has hold not ot an image but oi a reality ). and ortfa and nour ing true virtue to become the friend and be immortal, it mortal man may. Would that be an ignoble lil Such. PhaedlUS and I speak not on!\ were the a you, but to all of you I
—
—
am
persuaded of their truth. And being persuaded of them, I try to persuade others, that in the attainment ot this end hutima; anil
man
I
nature will not
:id
a helper better
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
168
And therefore, also, man ought to honour him as
than love.
I
say that e
myself honour him, and walk in his ways, and exhort others to do the same, and praise the power and spirit I
of love according to the measure of
my
ability
now and ever. The words which I have spoken, you, Phaedrus, may call an encomium of love, or anything else which you please. When Socrates had done speaking, the com-
pany applauded, and Aristophanes was beginning to say something in answer to the allusion which Socrates had made to his own speech, when suddenly there was a great knocking at the door of the house, as of revellers, and the sound of a flute-girl was heard. Agathon told the attendants to go and see who were the intruders. "If they are friends of ours,'* he said, 1
them in, but if not, say that the drinking is over." A little while afterwards they heard the voice of Alcibiades resounding in the court; he was in a great state of intoxication, and kept roaring and shouting "Where is Aga"invite
thon? Lead me to Agathon," and at length, supported by the flute-girl and some of his attendants, he found his way to them. "Hail, friends," he said, appearing at the door crowned with a massive garland of ivy and violets, his head flowing with ribands. "Will you have a very drunken man as a companion of your
Or
crown Agathon, which was my intention in coming, and go away? For I was unable to come yesterday, and therefore I am here to-day, carrying on my head these ribands, that taking them from my own head, I may crown the head of this fairest and wisest of men, as I may be allowed to call him. Will you laugh at me because I am drunk? Yet I revels?
know /
shall
I
very well that
I
am
speaking the truth,
may laugh. But first tell shall we have the understand-
21 3] although you
me;
if I
come
ing of which or not?"
I
in
spoke?
2
The company were
Will you drink with
me
vociferous in begging
would take his place among them, and Agathon specially invited him. Thereupon he was led in by the people who were with him; and as he was being led, intending to crown Agathon, he took the ribands from his own head and held them in front of his eyes; he was thus prevented from seeing Socrates, who made way for him, and Alcibiades took the vacant place between Agathon and Socrates, 3
Cf. 205.
Supra, 212: "Will you have a very drunken
man?"
etc.
couch.
By all means: but ner in our revels?
who makes said
the third part-
Alcibiades, turning
round and Socrates.
here
and
starting up as he caught By Heracles, he said, what
sight of is
this
'
Socrates always lying in wait lor me. always, as his way is, coming out at all is
sorts of unsuspected places: and now, what have you to say for yourself, and wh\ ;ire you lying here, where perceive that you have con1
trived to find a place, not by a joker or lover of jokes, like Aristophanes, but by the fairest
of the
company?
Socrates turned to
Agathon and
said:
I
must
ask you to protect me, Agathon; for the passion of this man has grown quite a serious matter to me. Since I became his admirer I have never been allowed to speak to any other one, or so much as to look at them. If I do, he goes wild with envy and jealousy, and not onlv abuses me but can hardly keep his hands me, and at this moment he may do me some
harm. Please to see to this, and either reconcile me to him, or, if he attempts violence, protect me, as I am in bodily fear of his mad and passionate attempts.
There can never be reconciliation between you and me, said Alcibiades; but for the present I will defer your chastisement. And 1 must you, Agathon, to give me back some of the ribands that I may crown the marvellous head of this universal despot I would not have him complain of me for crowning you, and neglecting him, who in conversation is the conqueror of all mankind; and this not only once, as you were the day before yesterday, but alw; Whereupon, taking some of the ribands, he crowned Socrates, and again reclined.
—
Then he sober,
that he
1
and in taking the place he embraced Agathon and crowned him. Take of! his sandals, said Agathon, and let him make a third on the same
my
friends, to be
a thing «ot to be
endured: you
said:
which
is
—
You
seem,
must drink lor that was the agreement under which I was admitted and I elect myself master of the feast until you are well drunk. Let us have a large goblet, Agathon, or rather, he said,
—
addressing the attendant, bring
me
that
wine-cooler. The wine-cooler his eye
was
quarts
—
serve,
my
a vessel
he filled bade the attendant fill this
which had caught holding more than two and emptied, [214] and it again for Socrates. Ob-
friends, said Alcibiades, that this in-
genious trick of mine will have no effect on Socrates, for he can drink any quantity of wine and not be at all nearer being drunk. Socrates
1
M
I
the
J|
I
I
N
m
*
Mlll.U
the attendant
ulti.lt
W
litis N.U.I
hive neith
^>£y^*ys>g>^g>^>£>^£>^^>^*>^£.
[jo] Meno. Can you
tell
me, Socrates, whether
acquired by teaching or by practice; or if neither by teaching nor practice, then whether it comes to man by nature, or in what other virtue
way?
O
Meno, there was a time when famous among the other Hellenes only for their riches and their riding; but now, if I am not mistaken, they are equally famous for their wisdom, especially at Larisa, which is the native city of your friend AristipSocrates.
the Thessalians were
pus.
And
this
is
Gorgias' doing; for
when he
came there, the flower of the Aleuadae, among them your admirer Aristippus, and the other chiefs of the Thessalians,
fell
in love
am
as
poor as the
rest
virtue
you
is.'
And am
with his
of the world;
say further that
I
I
the "quale"?
How,
if I
knew
much
alike.
body who had. Men. There will be no difficulty, Socrates, in answering your question. Let us take first the
man
—he should know how to ad-
state,
and
in the administration of
to benefit his friends
himself.
174
have.
for I shall be truly delighted to find that I have been mistaken, and that you and Gorgias do really have this knowledge; although I have been just saying that I have never found any-
and he must
can I know nothing at all of
my
Men. Very true. Soc. Then as he is not here, never mind him, and do you tell me: By the gods, Meno, be generous, and tell me what you say that virtue is;
minister the
how
this report of
I
suspect that you and he think
know
the "quid" of anything
back
Men. And did you not think that he knew? Soc. I have not a good memory, Meno, and therefore I cannot now tell what I thought of him at the time. And I dare say that he did know, and that you know what he said: please, therefore, to remind me of what he said; or, if you would rather, tell me your own view; for
virtue of a
confess with
to carry
dear boy, but you have never known of any one else who did, in my judgment. Men. Then you have never met Gorgias when he was at Athens?
may
it
I
I
Thessaly? Soc. Not only that,
shame that I know literally nothing about virtue; and when I do not
and
I
to
Soc. Yes,
wisdom. And he has taught you the habit of answering questions in a grand and bold style, which becomes those who know, and is the style in which he himself answers all comers; and any Hellene who likes may ask him anything. How different is our lot my dear Meno. [yi] Here at Athens there is a dearth of the commodity, and all wisdom seems to have emigrated from us to you. I am certain that if you were to ask any Athenian whether virtue was natural or acquired, he would laugh in your face, and say: "Stranger, you have far too good an opinion of me, if you think that I can answer your question. For I literally do not know what virtue is, and much less whether it is acquired by teaching or not." And I myself, Meno, living as I do in this region of poverty,
tell if he was fair, or the opposite and noble, or the reverse of rich and noble? Do you think that I could? Men. No, Indeed. But are you in earnest, Socrates, in saying that you do not know what
Meno, could
of fair; rich
is
A
and harm
his enemies;
also be careful not to suffer
woman's
virtue,
if
harm
you wish
to
"
|
Ml kn.'W iboul tut)
mi)
ilt.it,
tO "I.!.
in
ilio be caul)
hn
I
hoUSC,
.ni.l
den ribed ».r,|.
175 the
\\ I,., I
indoors, and obej bei husbaj
in
condition
;
triu. lie. Ik. in!
oi
Of
t>i
numbei
definitions oi them;
t»'i
and
each
actions
tin-
01
ol
VII
t
irtucs
\
young
life,
(ft
.u;rs ol
and no
less,
virtue
is
ol us in
l.u
k
relatn .ill
\
hi
virti
thai
imc mi) be said i>i Iov« fortunate am, Menol Win S you fai one virtue, you present mr with 1 iwarm oi them, which are in N*>tn keeping. Suppose that v.m \ on the figure ol the iwarm, and ask oi you, What ii the nature »»t the b and you answer that there arc man) kinds oi bees, and repl) Bui ^l*' bees diftei .is bees, be cause there are many and different kinds ol them; or arc they not rather to be distinguished In some other quality, .is for example beauty, low would you answer me? size, or ahape? Men. should answer that bees do not differ From one another, as bees. tad it went on to s.iv: That is what I desire to know, Meno; tell me what is the quality in which they do not differ, but are all alike; would you Ik* able tO answer .
I
1
••
thu
without
Met
I
1
trm and
Men,
!
i»ist
U.ih men and women good men and women, '
to
1
rrt.ii'
i
Ik-
1
•
S.ill.
ue.
1
I
I
—
one
Men. They
I
should.
And
Men.
so of the virtues,
understand? I am beginning to understand; but I do not as yet take hold of the question as I could wish. Soc. When you say, Meno, that there is one virtue of a man, another of a woman, another of a child, and so on, does this apply only to
Men.
size,
would you say the same of health, and strength? Or is the nature of
health always the same, whether in
man
or
Men. They would Then now that
should say that health
is
the same,
man and woman. Soc. And is not this true of size and strength If a woman is strong, she will be strong by reaboth in
:
son of the same form and of the same strer subsisting in her which there is in the man.
the- sameness of all virtue and remcmlxr what and Gorgiai say that wrtuc is. Men. Will you ha\c one definition of them
has been proven,
mean
to say that strength, as strength,
man
ference
Men.
or
woman,
2
That
Soc.
the same.
Is
is
know
them
all,
tue
the |>owcr
is
clude
and
I
And
virtue?
all
And
in a slave,
who governed
whether
there any dif-
Cf. Tfuractctus, 146.
1260*-
dclini'
not what to sav. but that
Is
same
virtue the
Meno? Can Ix:
in a
child
the child govern his
any longer a
and would he s\..
Men. think not. Socrates. No, indeed; there v« I
will not virtue, as virtue, be 13.
seeking.
ha\e one
Setc.
Yet once more, fair friend: according is "the power of governing"; but
in that.
to you, virtue
Men. i.
am
to
father, or the slave his master;
think not.
Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
I
ning mankind. does this definition ol \irtuc in-
do vou not add I
what
you want
I:
I
:
[j$] Soc. a
is
tr\
all
.
of
not.
Soc.
Soc. I
temperate and
1:
woman? Men.
Ik-
Yes.
hen all men are good in the and by participation in the same virtui 11. Stub is the And they surely would not bjVC good in the same way, Unless their virtue had been the same?
Do you
and
un-
I
however many .\n
(
the time w h< n
l
to
be
Icd^c by putt in
imisi
ul
this .is
.«t
man, which only need
»
nto U»
lit
him, both
Kts in
:
h.i
he
foi
v
.ilu
t
i\
.
.ilu.iss citJ
•
>b\ h'lislv.
\nJ
thai
the truth ol
ii
thingi .ilw.iss
.ill
is imn Wherefore be ol good cheer, and u\ to fed m hal you do not know, or rather what you do not remembei like what you feel, aomehow, thai
existed in the loul, then the s.ml
I
arc- s.a
I
is
m»t
\ml
Meno, like what am laying. have said ol which am not altogether confident Bui thai we shall be better I,
things
1
1
I
ami braver and Less helpless u we think thai we ought to enquire, than we should have hern it
',.
indulged in the idle fancy thai thei no knowing and no use m seeking to know what we di> not know; that is a theme upon which am ready to right, in word and deed, to the utmost oi my power. There again, Socrates, your words
membt
or rather,
alone
n.
me
.ire.iureeJth.it a
man
I
gether into the nature
ot virtue
2
Men. By all means. Socrates. Ami \ct would much rather return to my original question. Whether in seeking to acquire virtue we I
should regard
it
as a thing to DC taught, or as
a gift ot nature, or as
other
way
Soc.
to
men
in
some
:
Had
ot myself,
coming
I
the
Meno,
command I
ot
you
{
should
enquire about that which lie does not know, shall you And make An effort to enquire to-
as well as
would not have enquired
whether virtue is given by instruction or not, until we had first ascertained "what it is." But as you think only of controlling me who am your slave, and never of controlling yourself, such being your notion of freedom, must yield to you, for you are irresistible. And therefore I have now to enquire into the qualities of i thing of which I do not as yet know the nature. At any rate, will you condescend a little, and allow the question "Whether virtue is given by instruction, or in any other way." to be argued upon hypothesis? [Sj] As the geometriiamwhen he is asked whether a certain triangle is capable of being inscribed in a certain circle, I
it
taught; and
lx-
Men.
Then, aswe
irtue
\
is
knowli
Yrtainly.
(
this question:
excel lent.
Soc.
it
;
Then now we have
I
.
d
'i
llol I).
!.
.
i
l'\
m
(who
recently
h.is
4
made himaeu
Polycrates), but h\ his
,i\
w\
.1
Anthcmion, who
i
;
m ho
I
in
insolent,
not p
ei
.
well condition
.1
'
•
in
\
,
htm
to
arc the t
\
whom
inn
«-i
.
Ins h
edu< ition, as the Athenian pci ban to think. tor the) choose
from
i
and indua
ikill
01
ifns son oi
.
own
\ou
.ire
hkels
ri
to learn !
the
fill i
in
der
I
thus:
matter
tin-
we
It
to be a
them;
In
i |
Or
v
we wanted htm to we not send him to
il
Uer, should .
tl.
What, A
Certainly.
.
tor
rupting influent
to the physicians? I
w
ot milir, 'lie
good physi< ian, to whom should we send him? Should we not send him
ranted Meoo
|>c,
whether w ho they
\:i\tus. to help me and youi answering our question, Who arc
tc.ulu
thr
.irr
men
arc. Plc.isc-.
Mctn>
thrsr
th.it
be a '^n^\ cob
do you me. in
the cobl
who
to
DOt only
corrupt those
/
An J
Soc.
so forth:
in
s.i\
who
these arc
tli.it
do them
••
n
metm. fOU aware t}. ami other politicians have doubts wheti. tue can Ik- taught or not. but ti. Qjfl the
And
.ire t
.ire
same thi: Men. Where does he SO) In these elegiac va
poet sa\s the very
.
make with \ou
Do
hU
I
to thi
1 will lose
t'.
I
thr imteUig
..
you observe
that virtue
I
v
.1!!
tins
:
when
But
ii
place, the) havi
and, in
th>-
>•n
r
indeed, Scm
listen to
ill
will
Hi.it
tlir
unjust, and hateful n> the gods.
is
i
w
I
nut no qui< k ol apprehension ai the jud
tor tQ art
snd
\n\
inakr thr
am
that
appro> ing
in
ilu\ do,
h w
'I
m
and
would you ihou
low
and
.III
Ins fathei
ist 1
him, dies ihmumK
nil
i
ates; ai
least
il
they
me.
^
.it
i.
r
s
Bui they will be sure to listen it they find thai jrou are good speaker. There was notion thai came into my mind while you w
th.it
ting;
said to myself: "Well,
1
Euthyphro does prove
me
to
thai
and whai til
it
1
:
may
be hateful to the gods,
still
piety
and im
piety are not adequately defined In these dis tiiutions. tor that
which
is
hateful to the gods
h.is been shown to be also pleasing and dear to them." And therefore, Euthyphro, do not .isk you to prove this; I will suppose, it you like, that all the gods condemn and abominate such will amend the definition so an action. Bui tar .is to say that what all the gods hair is impious, and what they love pious or holy; ami I
I
what some
of
them
love
and others hate
is
and impiety? 3
Soc.
I
am conwhy not.
no reason But whether this admission will greatly assist you in the task of instructing me as you promised, is a matter for you to consider. Euth. Yes. I should say that what all the gods love is pious and holy, and the opposite which cerned. Euthyphro, there
they
is
Ought we
enquire into the truth of this. Euthyphro, or simply to accept the mere statement on our own authority and that of others
to
What do you
2
Euth.
We
say
;
We
should enquire; and
shall
in a little while.
wish holy
I
believe that
know better, my good friend. The point which I should hrst
understand is whether the pious or beloved by the gods because it is holy.
to is
DOf
is
is
vrr-n
not
tint)- led
..
now
I
|-
;
k- intelligible; and statr tu.ii
,
in
s
tl.
bi
tb
think, Euthyphro, thai
ting will
m\ meaning
thai
:>.
action or passion implies pre
t
or pa ssion.
dcst
is
must all
instructed
..
fair
that to
which the
given : As in the case of horses, you may observe that when attended to by the horseman's art they are benefited and improved, are they not? Euth. True.
men
in re
ligion.
And spe.ik the truth. Socrates. me then, oh tell mc — what I
Soc. Tell
not attention always designed
good or benent of is
should. in, there
As there
would be
your meaning, Euthyphro? Euth. Yes.
attention
all
ing of a ship.
is
Soc. In like
And
i
the art of attending to hors
art of attending to the
Soc.
is
to the ship-builder
Euth. True. And I should also conceive that the art of the huntsman is the art of attending to Euth. Yes. Soc. As the art of the oxherd is the art of attending to oxen? Euth. Very true.
for the
inc
view would you
.
Yes,
Nor
which
ser\ ice, ba> ing in
every one qualified to attend to but only the huntsman.:
Soc.
I
to the:;
;
is
h
still
I
(
manship
hk
nisi
work which
the gods
is
thai
do by the help
ministrations? •;. Many and which they do. [14] Soc. W'\
fair,
Socrates, arc the
nd, and I
But the chief of them
Would you chief
1
not sa\ thai
is
rar
is
the
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
198
Euth. Certainly. Soc.
Many and
Euth. That
fair, too,
works of the
are the
husbandman, if I am not mistaken; but his work is the production of food from the
chief
earth
?
Euth. Exactly. Soc. And of the many and fair things done by the gods, which is the chief or principal one 5 Euth. I have told you already, Socrates, that to learn all these things accurately will be very
tiresome. Let
me simply say that how to please the
piety or holi-
gods in word and deed, by prayers and sacrifices. Such piety ness
is
learning
and states, just as which is unpleasing to the gods, is their ruin and destruction. Soc. I think that you could have answered in much fewer words the chief question which I asked, Euthyphro, if you had chosen. But I see plainly that you are not disposed to instruct me clearly not: else why, when we reached the point, did you turn aside? Had you only answered me I should have truly learned of you is
the salvation of families
the impious,
—
by this time the nature of piety. Now, as the asker of a question is necessarily dependent on the answerer, whither he leads I must follow; and can only ask again, what is the pious, and
what
piety?
is
Do
sort of science of
Euth. Yes, Soc.
And
and prayer
I
you mean
that they are a
praying and sacrificing?
do.
is giving to the gods, asking of the gods?
sacrificing is
Euth. Yes, Socrates. Soc.
Upon
of asking
Euth.
this view, then, piety
is
a science
and giving?
my
capitally, Socrates.
friend; the reason
is
that
I
am
and give my mind to it, and therefore nothing which you say will be thrown away upon me. Please then to tell me, what is the nature of this service to the gods? Do you mean that we prefer requests and give gifts to them? a votary of your science,
Euth. Yes, I do. Soc. Is not the right of
way
of asking to ask
the right
of giving
is
to give
them in return what they want of us. There would be no meaning in an art which gives to any one that which he does not want. Euth. Very true, Socrates. Soc. Then piety, Euthyphro, is an art which gods and men have of doing business with one to
another ?
have no particular liking for anywish, however, that you would tell me what benefit accrues to the gods from our gifts. There is no doubt about what they give to us; [15] for there is no good thing which they do not give; but how we can any good thing to them in return is far from being equally clear. If they give everything and we give nothing, that must be an allair of business in which wc have very greatly the advantage of them. Euth. And do you imagine, Socrates, that any benefit accrues to the gods from our gifts 3 Soc. But if not, Euthyphro, what is the meaning of gifts which are conferred by us upon the gods? Euth. What else, but tributes of honour; and, I
thing but the truth.
I
.
as
I
was
just
now
what pleases them.' pleasing to the gods, but
saying,
Soc. Piety, then,
is
not beneficial or dear to them
Euth.
I
?
should say that nothing could be
dearer.
Soc. Then once more the assertion is repeated that piety is dear to the gods' Euth. Certainly. Soc. And when you say this, can you wonder at your words not standing firm, but walking away? Will you accuse me of being the Daedalus who makes them walk away, not perceiving that there is another and far greater artist than Daedalus who makes them go round in a circle, and he is yourself; for the argument,
comes round to the same not saying that the holy or pious was not the same with that which is loved of the gods? Have you forgotten? Euth. I quite remember. Soc. And are you not saying that what is loved of the gods is holy; and is not this the
as
you
same
will perceive,
Were we
what
as
is
dear to them
—do you
see?
Euth. True.
Sor.Then
either if
we were wrong in our formwe were right then, we are
wrong now. Soc.
way
may
One of the two must be true. Then we must begin again and
Euth.
Euth. Certainly.
And
an expression which you
is
like.
er assertion; or,
them what we want? Soc.
if
point.
You understand me
Soc. Yes,
you Soc. But
use.
What
ask.
That is an enquiry which I shall never be weary of pursuing as far as in me lies; and I entreat you not to scorn me, but to apply your mind to the utmost, and tell me the truth. For, if any man knows, you are he; and therefore I must detain you, like Proteus, until you tell. If you had not certainly known the nature of piety and impiety, I am confident is
piety?
.
i
,
would ncvei
i>u
.
«-ti
U
i
i
I
i
run
mi. h
«•'
in the sighi |
im
Mm IN
.
therefore, ih
iliul
J Jo
i
n
1!
n.>l
hurry,
md
I
"i
\
must go now
I
.mi
i
in
I'll
i
APOLOGY -^%N*>%.^>
[iyj
How
fected by
vou,
O
that they almost so persuasively
made me
forget
who
I
not l>e good; but think only of the truth of my words, and give heed to that: let the speaker speak truly and the judge decide justly. And first, I have to reply to the older charges and to my first accusers, and then I will go on
was
did they speak; and yet they
have hardly uttered
many
Never mind the manner, which may or may
Athenians, have hecn afbut I know
my accusers, I cannot tell; word
a
of truth. But of the
was one which quite amazed me; I mean when they said that you should be upon your guard and falsehoods told by them, there
—
For of old I have had many who have accused me falsely to you during many years; and I am more afraid of them than of Anytus and his associates, who are dangerous, too, in their own way. But far more dangerous are the others, who Ix to the later ones.
accusers,
not allow yourselves to be deceived by the force my eloquence. To say this, when they were
of
certain to be detected as soon as
and proved myself
I
opened
my
anything but a great speaker, did indeed appear to me most shameless unless by the force of eloquence they mean the force of truth; for if such is their meaning, I admit that I am eloquent. But in how different a way from theirs! Well, as I was saying, they have scarcely spoken the truth at all; but from me you shall hear the whole truth: not, however, delivered after their manner in a set oration duly ornamented with words and phrases. No, by heaven! but I shall use the words and arguments which occur to me at the lips
to be
when you were
—
moment;
my
for
cause: at
am confident in the justice my time of life I ought not to I
appearing before you,
O men of Athens,
me
it
of
me.
a favour:
And
—
If I
I
—
defend myself in
my
children,
minds with
and took possession
their falsehoods, telling of
one Socrates, a wise man, who speculated about the heaven above, and searched into the earth beneath, and made the worse appear the better cause.
The
cusers
whom
disseminators of this tale are the acI dread; for their hearers are apt
fancy that such enquirers do not believe in And they are many, and their charges against me areof ancient date, to
the existence of the gods.
and they were made by them in the days when you were more impressible than you are now in childhood, or it may have been in youth and the cause when heard went by default, for there was none to answer. And hardest of all, I do not know and cannot tell the names of my
of
be
in the
let no one exmust beg of you to grant
character of a juvenile orator pect
of your
accusers; unless in the chance case of a
accus-
tomed manner, and you hear me using the words which I have been in the habit of using
poet. All
Comic
who from
suaded you
—
envy and malice have persome of them having first con-
—
men
in the agora, at the tables of the
vinced themselves
anywhere else, I surprised, and not to interrupt me on this account. For I am more than seventy years of age, and appearing now for the first time in a court quite a stranger to the language
with; for I cannot have them up here, and cross-examine them, and therefore I must simply fight with shadows in my own defence, and argue when there is no one who answers. I will ask you then to
and therefore I would have you regard me as if I were really a stranger, [ 18] whom you would excuse if he spoke in his native tongue, and after the fashion of his country: Am I making an unfair request of you?
assume widi me, as I was saying, that my opponents are of two kinds; one recent, the other ancient: and I hope that you will see the propriety of my answering the latter first, for these accusations you heard long
money-changers, would ask you not to be
or
of law,
I
am
of the place;
—
most
200
all
this class of
are
difficult to deal
.
and mu
hi
ihc- -..iinr
pound
i
i
11
in I*
i
u
I
i
f
11
l«.
ihr
(.:•
i
«h. ilr.
ii.
pro
il
true
I
lul ike glad if probe the argument furthet feat that when dren, you are haunted with
01
the soul leaves the body, the wind ma) really blow bet away and icattei her; especiall) ii man ihould happen to die in great itorm and m>t w hen the iky ii aim.
the)
c
I
anythi
lia
.1
them alwayt w
of
Ii
.i>
i
Cebes answered with a smile: Then, Socrates, you must irgue us cut t>i out (ears and yet, strictly speaking, they .ire not our tens, but there is a child within us to whom death is son oi hobgoblin: him too we must persuade .1
when
not to be afraid
In- is
alone
in the
dark.
Soc rates said: -ft the voice of the charmer be applied daily until you have charmed away the I
fear. /
Ami where shall we find a good charmer when you are gone?
jSj
of our fears, Socrates, 1
he replied,
[ellas,
is
a
rous races not a tew: seek tor
I
should
it
you
please, let us return to
argument
at
which we
or
!
!> j
Ii
r
1
or quite the reverse? M.i\ the) not rather bt ICribed as almost alwayi changing and hardly ever the same, either with themselves or with
one another
The
:
Cebes; the) are always
latter, replied
a state- ot
And
/?>t Ins lusts, the- iouI, mean, accustomed to hate and feai i bodily
1)(
probable. An«!
bod)
ilir
I
I
ihe bod) ind
!>\
led to believe thai the truth onl)
form, which
.t
diftv uli
them
pi.
here
Some
is
not, be said.
arc happiei than others;
and the hap
themselves and in the pis whu h they go arc these m bo have pra< tised thr civil and social virtues which are < ailed ten both
pseat
anoe and
in
and are acquired by habit and and mind/ they the happ
justice,
attention without philosophy
Why
.ire
Bei auac they
may
be
a into
1
some gentle .i\\A social kind whuh is Like thnr own, such .is bees or w.isps or ants, or b.u k again into the form oi man, and ]ust and mod
men may be supposed to spring lrotn them. Very likely. \o one who has not studied philosophy and who is not entirely pure at the time of his departure is allowed to enter the company of the
erate
knowledge only. And Simmias and febei, why the true votaries of philosophy abstain from all fleshy lusts, and hold out against them ami renot befuse to give themselves up to them, Clods, but the lover of this
is
the reason,
(
—
cause they fear poverty or the ruin of their families, likcthelovers ol money, and the world in general; nor like the lovers of power and honour, because they dread the dishonour or
disgrace of evil deeds.
No,
Socrates, that
would not become them,
said Cebes.
No
indeed, he replied; and therefore they
own souls, and do moulding and fashioning the body, say farewell to all this; they will not walk in the ways of the blind: and when philosophy offers them purification and release from evil, they feel that they ought not to resist her influence, and whither she leads they turn and who have any
care of their
not merely live
fT.:
lust.
By unchaste loo^s, loose gestures, and foul taIJ{, Bf.t most by lewd and lavish act of sin, Lets in defilement to the inward parts, The soul grows clotted by contagion, Imbodies, and imbrutcs, till she quite lose,
The
.
and propensii 1
ti we-.
this corporeal
finally in
.ill
depart pure and unalloyed?
continual association and constant care body have wrought into bei nature.
Ven Ami
there
to
by the corporeal, which 'hr
pan
il
Ami
Impossible, be replied. Slu-
will
ih iiM h natui
doyousu]
attained on)) b) philosophy;
I
which to and can be
mtcHritti.il principle,
tin-
the bodily eye
t
eyond question, the soul is immortal and imperishable, [ioj] and our souls will truly exist in another world' am convinced. Socrates, said Ccbcs, and have nothing more to object; but if my friend Simiinas. or any one else, has any lurther objection to make, he had better speak out. and do not know to what not keep silence, since other season he can deter the discussion, h there is anything which he wants to say or to
ot the
"But although the odd the approach of the even, why may not the odd perish and the even take the place ot the odd?" Now to him who makes this objection, we cannot answer that the odd principle is imperishable; tor this has not been acknowledged, but it this had been acknowledged, there would have been no difficulty in contending that at the approach of the even the odd principle and the number three took their departure; and the same argument would have held good of lire and heat and any other thing. Very true. And the same may be said of the immortal: the immortal is also imperishable, then the it soul will be imperishable as well as immortal; Yet
will not
if
True.
imperishable,
attacking the
and unmeltcd— tor it could ne\cr have pcrnor could it have remained and admitted the heat
soul,
Then when death attacks a man, the mortal portion of him may be supposed to die. but the immortal
must not three he imperishable?
mow, must
Most
sa\ that this
course.
•
must not the
also impensh.i
Yes. he said.
ishable,
OF PLATO
true;
will
not mistaken, as well as
ney thither.
For
after death, as they say, the genius of
I'll \l tndi\ idu.il. to uln'iii hr
,
Kim
leads
if
I
ertatn plat
>
iiri
has been given
i
Ki
\ou
you mean mall that youj art producci tlir
mom
you
>»>
mrii and nut
l)|
II.
What
I
A
rned
ideccivin] Willi
1
the
Now
I
same way;
want
—
is
to
know
about rhetoric
rhetoric the only art
in
which
brings persuasion, or do other arts have the
same
effect
3 I
mean
say
to
teaches anything persuade
— Does
men
who
he
of that
which
he teaches or not 3 Gor. He persuades, Socrates, there can be no mistake about that. Soc. Again, if we take the arts of which we were just now ipeaking: do not arithmetic
—
—
and the arithmeticians teach us the properties of
number
3
Gor. Certainly. Soc.
And
therefore persuade us of
them
3
Gor. Yes. Soc.
Then
artificer of
arithmetic as well as rhetoric
persuasion
Gor. Clearlv.
3 .
is
an
OF PLATO
DIALOGl
256 Soc.
And
any one asks us what sort of per-
if
—
and about what, wc shall answer, persuasion which teaches the quantit\ ot odd and r\cn; 1 454 J and wc shall he able to show that all the other arts ot which wc were just now speaking arc art nicer so! persuasion, and of what suasion,
Then
.
rhetoric
not the only artificer of
is
Gor. True. then,
that
works by persuasion, but
m
same, as
the
case- ot
mscn which persuasion
what?
—
is
is
not only
rhetoric
that other arts
do the
the painter, a question
a very lair
way
Of what and about
one:
rhetoric the artificer,
not that a lair
is
of putting the
5
".
think
I
you approve the question, Gorgias, what is the answer? answer, Socrates, that rhetoric is the Gor. art ot persuasion in courts ot law and other assemblies, as I was just now saying, and about Soc.
'I
"hen,
if
I
And
that,
I was suswould not have
Gorgias, was what
pecting to be your notion; yet
I
\ou wonder if by-and-by am found repeating seemingly plain question; tor I ask not in order to confute you, but as I was saying that the argument may proceed consecutively, and I
:.
that
we may
not get the habit of anticipating
and suspecting the meaning of one another's words; I would have you develop your own views in your own way, whatever may be your hypothesis.
Gor. Soc.
I
think that you arequite right, Socrates. let me raise another question;
Then
is such a thing as "ha\ ing learned" Gor. Yes. Soc. And there is also "having believed"? Gor* Yes. Soc. And is the "having learned" the same as "having believed," and are learning and belief
there
the
same things?
Gor. In the same. Soc.
my
Then
would appear, is the persuasion which creates belief about the just and unjust, but gives no instruction about them? rhetoric, as
artificer of a
Gor. True. Soc.
And
the rhetorician does not instruct the
just and unjust, but he creates belief about them; for no one can be supposed to instruct such a vast multitude about such high matters
time 3 Gor. Certainly not.
in a short
Come, then, and let us see what we realmean about rhetoric; for do not know what my own meaning is as yet. When the assembly Soc.
ly
I
meets to elect a physician or a shipwright or any other craftsman, will the rhetorician be taken into counsel? Surely not. For at every election he ought to be chosen who is most skilled; and, again, when walls have to be built or harbours or docks to be constructed, not the rhetorician but the master workman will advise; or when generals have to be chosen and an order of battle arranged, or a proposition
ascertain in
what do you
your judgment is right, as you may this way: If a person were to say
—
to you, "Is there, Gorgias, a false belief as well
— you would reply,
taken, that there
is.
Gor. Yes. Soc. Well, but
is
Gor. No.
say,
Gorgias?
Since you profess to be a rhetorician and a
judgment, Socrates, they are not
well as a true?
and not
taken, then the military will advise the rhetoricians: er of rhetoricians,
I
if I
there a false
am
not mis-
knowledge
as
me assure as well as
from you.
And
here
let
have your interest in view own. For likely enough some one
you that
my
mak-
cannot do better than learn
the nature of your art
And
as a true.'"
we
—one
courts of law or other assemblies about things
and unjust.
the just
Just so.
gives belief. Soc.
so.
well 3
then assume two sorts of perwhich is the source of belief without knowledge, as the other is of knowledge 3 Gor. By all means. Soc. And which sort of persuasion does rhetoric create in courts of law and other assemblies about the just and unjust, the sort of persuasion which gives belief without knowledge, or that which gives knowledge? [455] Gor. Clearly, Socrates, that which only
question.(
Gor.
suasion,
jxrrsuasion?
Seeing,
And yet those who have learned as who ha\c believed are persuaded
Soc.
as those
Soc. Shall
and about what. d'jr. Vary true.
sort,
Sot
Soc. No, indeed; and this again proves that knowledge and belief ditfer. Gor. Very true.
I
young men present might desire become your pupil, and in fact I see some, and a good many too, who have this wish, but they would be too modest to question you. And therefore when you are interrogated by me, I would have you imagine that you are interrogated by them. "What is the use of coming to or other of the to
GORG1 "
Not:
tlirv
I
will
what
.ul
will \..n tan h in i" ich iie
t
l»r-
i
I
and
trs,
will
1
nature
sjfcpss lir.iril,
thr Athenians
lh.it
(
.n
:
thr
to. in
iri|
,
it \
tlir
have
the din ks and thr walls
and the plan
oi thr
«i|
drlrn, r Mot
III
\rrtrd thru iiiMnu
harbcan
accordance with the counsels, partly i>i Themista Irs. and partly ol Peru les, and n«>t .u tinon ol the builders. Sum h is thr tradition, Got shout Themistot les; and myaeli heard the ipeo h ot Pericles when he advised vis about the (raddle devised
|
lion
rhcti
«>t
think,
1
oi
w .i\ oi leading ui on, endeiVOUl t.» ir\r.»l to \
!:kr youi
ij"
hit
•
friends.
\"U .in\uri tlinu
ill
I
ti.
t-nl
alio which Socrates has juit mentioned
low W
r and not so strong as others ol not, being wiser, be also bettei than we are, and
m
u>i
in tins
mattej
mean
w
n
be will
obbli
who understand
but also
aliani
\
and the
u«>t
able
men
the adminii
not on!
e I
t«»
bum from
••
soul.
In reason ot his authority, bui he will noi ex
pend or uuikr use
own
oi
person, or
it
then on he will be pun
large] share ol
.1
ished- his ihare will
lie
noes,
ex*. tt-J
thai
»>t
than th.u ot others, and w e.ikest ot all. he being the best ot less
the smallest share ot right,
Cal.
all,
my friend? You talk about
it
tome, and he In- the
all
will h.i\ e
Callicles:---am
I
not
am
1
not speak-
Answer " Yes"
or
is
Soc.
And ought
Cal.
not the better to have a larger
Not
of meats
and drinks.
but with ah* rq vim with nevei saj in e about t! things, lor at onr time \ou wrrr defining the 1
I
.
-
tnd the superior to be the stronger, then
and now von bring t new notion: the snprrior .111. the DCD now dec lared by you to be the agaifl as the Wiser, a
1
wish, my good Eriend, th.u you me, once tor all. whom you atlirm to l>c the lx-t ter ami superior, and in wh.it they are ln-ttrr' Cal. have already told vmi that meanthosrwho are wise and courageous in the adminis Lration ot a state they ought to l>c the rulers ot their states, and justice consists in their hai I
ing
more than
their subjects.
or will they not have
I
Then
the skilfullest
and
best in
making
my
walk about
in
and have the greatest number them? Cal. Fudge about shoes! What nonsense are
the largest shoes,
Cal.
not your meaning, perhaps you would say that the wise and good and true husbandman should actually have a larger share of seeds,
own
if
this
is
and have land
How
as
much
seed as possible for
2
you go on, always talking
in the
same way, Socrates! [491] Soc. Yes, Callicles, and also about the same things. Cal. Yes, by the Gods, you are literally alwavs talking of cobblers and fullers and cooks and doctors, as if this had to do with our argu-
What do you mean? mean that every man
I
is
but perhaps you think that there for
him
to rule himself;
rule others
Cal.
he
is
his is
own
ruler;
no necessity
only required to
:
What do you mean
by his "ruling over
himself".?
A
simple thing enough; just what is said, that a man should be temperate and master of himself, and ruler of his own Soc.
commonly
Cal.
What
innocence! you
— the temperate?
whv
will
you not
tell
me
in
what a
mean
those fools
—
any one may know that to meaning. Cal. Quite so, Socrates; and they are really fools, for how can a man be happy who is the servant of anything' On the contrary, I plainly assert, that he who would truly live ought to allow his desires to wax to the uttermost, and not to chastise them; but when they have grown to their greatest he should have courage and intelligence [492] to minister to them and to Soc. Certainly:
be
my
And
this
natural justice and nobility.
To
satisfy all his longings.
ment. Soc. But
more than themselves,
?
pleasures and passions.
you talking 2 Soc. Or,
Eriend
Soc.
shoes ought to have the advantage in shoes; the shoemaker, clearly, should
Cal.
th.it
1
Soc. But whether rulers or subjects will they
understand: then, perhaps, of coats the skilfullest weaver ought to have the largest coat, and the greatest number of them, and go about clothed in the best and finest of them? Cal. Fudge about coats! Soc.
trom
I
me
:
Soc.
1
—
"No."
Cal. Yes.
share
111 \
I
Soc. Well, hut l\o you admit that the wiser the better.'
:it
u hu h you bring against
I
meats and drinks and
physicians and other nonsense; ing of them,
his
politicians
1
tratioi
and
he will have a largei share rod Junks, because he ii better, U.wc the distribution ol .ill ol then
the me. us
of
i-.«-
In ihf
told \-»i
not
l>\
Either, then,
S
ol
be
i!ir.,,l\ 1
ol toi
:l.unlv.
his
'
us,
»>i
some-
dui supri
275 !.
•.u.:.;r
d
who
..
I
llld Still
the truth?
the-
ill
iii
of
And what
Foxton, say
does our friend Socrates, he assent to this, or
—does
not? Soc. cles.
He
does not assent; neither will Callisees himself trulv. You will ad-
when he
DIALOG UE S OF PLATO
278 run.
I
suppose, that good and evil fortune are
opposed
And
if
in the
sentence which you have just
word
"thirstv" implies pain
man
cannot have them both, or be
Cal. Yes.
ophthalmia
called
/-/«/'/ Cal.
To
and sound
Soc.
Soc.
the
Soc.
And when
Sue.
same eyes
he has got rid or his ophthalot his eyes too?
them both
Cal. Certainly not.
That would
surely be marvellous
and
?
Cal. Very.
Soc.
gets rid ot
them
in
is
Soc.
And
turns?
)r
(
When
you are thirsty?
in
pain?
—
he
may have
strength and weak-
same way, bv his? swiftness
Cal.
It is.
You said also, that no man could have good and evil fortune at the same time? Cal. Yes did. / 49j] Soc. But you admitted, that when in pain a man might also have pleasure?
J
and slowness?
Cal. Clearly.
Cal. Certainly.
Soc.
And
does he have and not have good and happiness, and their opposites, evil and Soc.
pleasure in drinking?
Soc.
Cal. Yes.
Soc.
is
Soc. Do you see the inference: that pleasure and pain are simultaneous, when vou sav that being thirsty, you drink? For are they not simultaneous, and do they not afreet at the same time the same part, whether of the soul or the bod> which of them is affected cannot be supposed to be of any consequence: Is not this
affected by them, and
Cal. Yes.
ness in the
?
true ?
suppose that he
I
want
Cal. Yes.
the final result, that he gets rid ot
absurd
There
And
Sot
together? Soc.
expressive of
Cal. Yes.
same time?
mia, has he got rid of the health Is
is
ot the satisfaction of the
Cal. Certainly.
Cal. Certainly not.
Soc.
the word "drinking"
and
?
Cal. Yes.
be sure.
at
And
pleasure,
:
Soc. Hut he surely cannot have the
well
admit that
pleasant?
And
disease, they exclude
—
is
is
uttered, the
and
without them both, at the same time? Cal. What do you mean? SOi Take the case ot any bodily alieciion: a nun may have the complaint in his eyes
which
are thirsty,
one
they arc opposed to each other,
then, like health
another: a
And you would
when vou
Cal. Yes.
Cal. Yes.
Soc.
Very good.
Soc.
to drink,
each other?
to
misery, in a similar alternation?
'
Then
pleasure
fortune, or pain the
therefore the
good
is
is
not the same as good
same
as evil fortune,
and
not the same as the pleas-
ant?
Cal. Certainly he has.
Cal.
I
wish
I
knew,
Socrates,
what your quib-
then there be anything which a man has and has not at the same time, clearly that cannot be good and evil do we agree? Please
bling means.
not to answer without consideration.
Cal. Well, get on, and don't keep fooling: then you will know what a wiseacre you are in
Soc.
If
—
Cal.
—
I
entirely agree.
Go back now to our former admissions. you say that to hunger, I mean the mere ot hunger, was pleasant or painful?
Soc. 1
)id
stale
said painful, but that to eat when you hungry is pleasant. know; but still the actual hunger is Soc.
Cal.
I
are
1
painful:
am
I
not right?
And
You know,
Callicles,
your admonition of me. Soc.
from
Does not
a
man
cease
from
his thirst
and
drinking at the same time? Cal. I do not understand what you are saying. Gor. Nay, Callicles, answer, if only for our sakes; we should like to hear the argument his pleasure in
—
Cal. Yes, Gorgias, but thirst, too,
but you affect not
know.
out.
Cal. Yes.
Soc,
Soc. to
painful?
I
must complain of
Need adduce any more instances, or would you agree that all wants or desires are
is always arguing about little and unworthy questions. Gor. What matter? Your reputation, Callicles, is not at stake. Let Socrates argue in his
painful?
own
is
Cal. Yes, very. I
Cal.
1
agree,
and therefore you need not ad-
duce any more instances. 1
Cf. Republic,
iv. 4 ^6.
the habitual trifling of Socrates; he
fashion.
you shall ask these peddling questions, since Gorgias wishes to have them. Cal. Well, then, Socrates,
little
—
Vs,
were
i
:
S
pleasure
.\
man
i
ease
"i
pleasure
i
roni
drinking
lm
(
at
1
v l
tin-
;d «lc-
is
the s.ime 1
tpproai h
ir.iscN
from pain and pleasure
^t
i,
adhere to what you mid? do; but what
1
win, my mend,
is
the infereo
the inierencc
thai
I
I
I
with them.' Cal. Yes. 3
the courageous and the wise are the good
would you not
say so?
Cal. Certainly.
did you never see a foolish child
re-
:
joicing.
man
too?
Cal. Yes, certainly: but
what
a foolish
Nothing
[498] Soc.
is
your drift 5 if you will
particular,
I
And
have.
man
re-
sorrowing
Which They
rejoice
are
and sorrow most
— the
3
much upon
1
battel pleased
.«t
thr
il.ii'
I
ben arc thr foolish and the w the brave all pleased and pained, .is vou Wt re laying, m nr.irlv cd and evil? 1. e. in having more pleasure and more pain.]
bad
in a nearlv
[
do not know what you mean.
Cal.
I
Soc.
Why, do you
really
not
remember saying
that
good were good because good was present with them, and the evil because evil; and that pleasures were goods and pains evils remember. Cal. Yea, Soc. And are not these pleasures or goods 3 present to those who rejoice if they do rejoice the
—
Soc.
be sure.
those
who
rejoice are
And
those
who
good when
are in pain have evil or
sorrow present with them
I
think, in
Soc. evil
3
see a
coward
And would you
still
say that the evil are
by reason of the presence of
Cal.
Soc.
in battle?
Then
goods are present with them.3
Cal. Yes. a par,
Enough: And did you ever
To
;
Cal. Yes.
that respect.
Cal.
\nd arc they not enemy'i departure
Soc.
did you ever see a sensible
wise or the foolish
Soc.
ihrv ripi.ilK
Cal. Certainly.
Cal. Yes.
Cal.
r
I
only answer.
Soc.
thr brs
3
have.
I
And
joicing or
.11
should imagine that more- p. uned.
Soc.
And do vou call the tools and cowards good men For you were saying |ust now that
Cal. Yes,
ire
Cal. Yes.
Soc.
Soc.
I
I
.
Col, ii
good is not the tame as the pleasant, or the evil the same as the painful; there is a cessation ot pleasure anil pain at the same moment: hut not ot good ami evil, tor they are different, low then can pleasure be the same as good, or pain as e\ il ? Ami would have vou look at the matter in another light, which could hardly, think, have been considered bv vou when you identified them: Are not the uood good because they have g
I
.
I
their will
?
[510/ Cal. ( iranted, Socrates, it you will only have clone. Soc. Then, as would appear, power and art have to be provided in order that we may do no injustice.'
Cal. Certainly.
like
than this greatestof
lous
u tint thei
the doing injustice
Soc.
And what
art will protect us
from
suffer-
ing injustice.it not wholly, yet as far as possible
3
to know whether you agree with me; tor think that such an art is the art of one who is either a ruler or even tyrant himself, or the equal and companion of the ruling power. I
want
I
Cal.
serve
Well
how
said, Socrates;
ready
I
am
and please to obyou when you
to praise
talk sense.
Soc. Think and tell me whether you would approve of another view of mine: To me every man appears to be most the friend of him who like to like, as ancient is most like to him sages say: Would you not agree to thiv
—
:
Cal.
I
should.
Soc. But
when
the tvrant
is
rude and unedu-
DIALOGUES OF PLATO cated, he is
one
to fear .nn
ma\ be expected
and
his superior in wrtue,
who
will never be able
any one
oi
.
greatly his interior, lor the tyrant will
despise him,
and
will nc\ cr seriously
regard
him
:r:end.
Cal. '1'hat again .
:
Cul.
No. indeed.
Soc.
And
Then
be nibjed anil subscr\ ient to him; he is the will have power in the state, and no
man who one
which saves men in courts ot law, and which you advise me to cultivate Cal. Yes, truly, and very good advice too. Soc. Well, my friend, but what do you think of swimming; is that an art of any great pretensions.:
true.
is
the only friend worth mentioning, whom the tyrant can have, will he one who is of the same character, and has the same likes and dislikes, and is at the same time willing to S..
yet, In
o
1 1 * .» t
-»ll
ol i^
U
en profcuion i>
..ihct
«»•
he would hi you despise linn •
-.
I
.in.l
and ineeringly call him in engine maker, you will not allow your daughters to marr)
.lit.
.unl
on
youi ion to Ins
Mi.it iv
00,01
N»>nt
what
prin< iple,
\m.I
J.i
1
1
1
•.
1
was
amc
thai
you u
Bui
it
tlu-
ill
*'|
s.i\,
bettei
consists only in
.i
.un better*
and
what
I
Please, then,
I
bettei born."
viv,
whatever may In- his character, then youi cen oi the engine maker, and oi the phj su ian, and ot the other .ins oi salvation, is ridi< ulous. o im Friend want you to sec ih.it tin* nofatc and the good may possibly be something differ ent from saving and being saved: -May not he who is truly a man ceaSC to care about living a certain time?' he knows, as women sav. that no man can escape late, and therefore he is not fond ot lite; he leaves all that with Cod, arul I
I
—
considers in what way he can best spend his pointed term whether by assimilating him-
—
self to
the constitution under
which he
1
.u you at this moment have to consider J how you may become as like as possible to the Athenian people, you mean to be in their •>-/
it
good graces, and to have power whereas want you to think and I
this
is
in the state;
see
is
whether
—
would dearest on the
tor the interest ot either of us
not have us risk that which
I
acquisition of this power, like the Thessalian
down the own perany man will
enchantresses, who, as they say, bring
moon from heaven
at the risk of their
you suppose that becoming great in the city, and yet not conforming yourself to the ways of the city, whether for better or worse, then can only say that you are mistaken, Callicles; for he dition.
But
if
show you the
art of
1
who would
deserve to be the true natural
friend of the Athenian Demus, aye, or of Pynlampes* darling who is called after them, must be by nature like them, and not an imitator only.
He, then, who
will
them, will make you
as
make vou most
you
I
in the
ail;
w
iih a
\
things,
iii>
In. In
.
i
icv.
ire,
like
desire, a statesman
and orator: for every man is pleased when he is spoken to in his own language and spirit, and dislikes any other. But perhaps you, sweet
indulge but tun
Very
I
si\t
r
«~
us
Ins
whu
ix
h
had pleasure
ii
a \ul.
|iist
other oi our
CaL Be
i
OfM lusioris
And
-
-.will
h
-
hai
the other had in
icw
\
|
improvement ot that which was ministered whether body or soul' Quite true. And must wr not have the tame vm\ view in the treatment ot our cit\ and cit
to,
C.iii.
SOC.
Must we not
m
and make them
try
5/7/ For we have already dis< that there is no use hi imparting to them am other good, unless the mind of those who arcto have the good, whether money, or otficc, or possible
1
/
any other Shall
we
1
power, be gentle am:
sort ot
say that
:
if you like. you .\\u\ I, Callicles, were intending to set about some public business, anil were advising one another to undertake buildings, such as walls, docks or temples ot the largest size, ought we not to examine ourselves, hrst. as to whether we know or do not
Cal. Yes, certainly,
Soc. Well, then,
know
it
who
the art of building, and
— would
taught us-
not that be necessary, Callicles
1
CaL True. Soc. In the second place,
consider whether
we had
we
should have to
ever constructed any-
private house, either of our
own
or for our
and whether this building of ours was a success or not; and it upon consideration We found that we had had good and eminent masters. And had been successful in constructing friends,
many
fine buildings, not only with their assist-
ance, but without them, by our 1
Cf.
Symposium.
216.
own unaided
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
288
—
in thatcase prudence would not dissuade us from proceeding to the construction ol pub-
Have we
lic works. But it we had no master to show. and only a number of worthless buildings or ROOC at all, then, surely, it would be ridiculous in us to attempt public works, or to advise one another to undertake them. Is not this true?
if you will not answer must answer for you. But if this is what the good man ought to effect for the benefit of his own state, allow me to recall to you the names of those whom you were just now mentioning, Pericles, and Cimon, and Miltiades, and Themistocles, and ask whether you still think that thev were good citizens.
skill
Cal. Certainly.
And
docs not the same hold in all other you and were physicians, and were advising one another that we were competent Soc.
cases.; It
I
pnuiisc as state -physicians, should I not ask about you, and would you not ask about
that such
lme
I
quiries about you.
And
if
we
arrived at the con-
Cal.
1
skill of either
leaven, Callicles,
that
we
or any
up
as to set
what an absurdity
human
to think being should be so silly
do the same, without having
practised in private, whether successfully
or not, and acquired experience of the art! Is not this, as they say, to begin with the big jar
when you is
are learning the potter's art;
which
thing?
a foolish
[515] Cal. True. And now, my friend, as you are already beginning to be a public character, and are admonishing and reproaching me for not being one, suppose that we ask a few questions of one another. Tell me, then, Callicles, how about making any of the citizens better? Was there ever a man who was once vicious, or unjust, or intemperate, or foolish, and became by the help of Callicles good and noble? Was there ever such a man, whether citizen or stranger, slave or freeman? Tell me, Callicles, if a person were to ask these questions of you, what would you answer.' Whom would you say that you had improved by your conversation? There may have been good deeds of this sort which were done by you as a private person, before you came forward in public. Why will you not answer? Soc.
Cal.
You
Soc.
Nay,
are contentious. Socrates. I
ask you, not from a love of con-
want
know
tention, but because
I
what way you think
that affairs should be ad-
ministered
among us
to
in
— whether, whenyoucome
to the administration of
er
really
them, you have any oth-
aim but the improvement
of the citizens?
they were good, then clear! the citizens better in-
it
Cal. Yes.
And, therefore, when
Pericles first
began
speak in the assembly, the Athenians were not so good as when he spoke last? to
CaL Very likely. Soc. for
if
Nay, my friend, "likely" is not the word; he was a good citizen, the inference is
certain.
CaL And what difference does that make.' None; only I should like further to know
and advise others
as state-physicians
like ourselves to first
of us, then, by
do.
them must have made
Soc.
no one, whether citizen or stranger, man or woman, had ever been any the better medical
I
I
stead of worse?
clusion that for the
surely said so; for
Soc. But of
many times over man? Nay, we
the duty of a public
is
for yourself
to
me, Well, but how about Socrates himself, has he good health? and was any one else ever known to be cured by him, whether slave or should make the same enfreeman 3 And
not already admitted
Soc.
whether the Athenians are supposed to have been made better by Pericles, or, on the contrary, to have been corrupted by him; for I hear that he was the first who gave the people pay, and made them idle and cowardly, and encouraged them in the love of talk and money. Cal. You heard that, Socrates, from the laconising
set
who
Soc. But
bruise their ears.
what
I
am
going to
not mere hearsay, but well
tell
known
you now is both to you
at first, Pericles was glorious and unimpeached by any verdict of the [516] Athenians this was during the time when they were not so good yet afterwards, when they had been made good and gentle by him, at the very end of his life they convicted him of theft, and almost put him to death, clearly under the notion that he was a malefac-
and me: that his character
—
—
tor.
Cal. Well, but badness?
how
does that prove Pericles'
Soc. Why, surely you would say that he was bad manager of asses or horses or oxen, who had received them originally neither kicking nor butting nor biting him, and implanted in them all these savage tricks? Would he not be a bad manager of any animals who received them gentle, and made them fiercer than they were when he received them? What do you
a
say Cal.
I
Soc.
And
do
the fa
will
vou also do
1
or saving
me
ves.
the favour ot
»R(;i \s u hrthri
.
in.ili is .ui
M.lMlU
I I
mil
them
M
llC
\
.1
hepherdoi men?
.
thnii
and Vnd
S
iiu
hou will not answer. Cal. And you are the man who cannot speak unless there is some one to answer ; Soc. I suppose that can; just now, at am '
I
rate, the
speeches which
enough because you I
adjure you by the god
sir,
do
me whether
tell
I
am making
are long
answer me. Hut friendship, my good
refuse to ot
there does not appear to
you to be a great inconsistency in saying that you have made a man good, and then blaming him tor being bad: Cal. Yes, it appears so to me. [520] Soc. Do you never hear our professors of education speaking in this inconsistent manner
;
Cal. Yes. but
why
talk ot
men who
are
good
talk of
men
for nothing?
Soc.
who
I
would rather
say,
why
and declare that they are devoted to the improvement of tiie city, and nevertheless upon occasion declaim against the utter vileness of the city: do you think that there is any difference between one and theother? My good friend, the sophist and the rhetorician, as I was saying to Polus, are the same, or nearly the same; but you ignorantly fancy that rhetoric is a perfect thing, and sophistry a thing to be despised: whereas the truth is, that sophprotess to be rulers,
—
much
superior to rhetoric as legisla-
istry
is
as
tion
is
to the practice of law, or
medicine.
The
orators
and
gymnastic to
sophists, as
inclined to think, are the only class
who
I
am can-
not complain of the mischief ensuing to themselves from that which they teach others, without in the same breath accusing themselves of having done no good to those whom they profess to benefit. Is not this a fact? Cal. Certainly it is. Soc. If they were right in saying that they make men better, then they are the only class who can afford to leave their remuneration to those who have been benefited by them. Where-
G IAS .1% it it,
man has been benefited
ft
in
an) othei
example, hr Kai been taught
fat
trainer, hr mi]
pay,
it
htm
you
"i
nil
ti.unri let! thr ni.itln in hitn, .uid
he-
t
run
to I
no ftgroement with htm that he fthould receive money fti won is hr had given him h o( njktiI do men act unjustly, l>ui b)
\n ill
nevet be brou
hkrlv
in.iilr
t
i
.Ml.
hen
I
it
dl< tin c, a uu.l the r.u iii.ui will remain i.m and to on; and ilir dead man, who in life had fancy to have \:i.| it hr l\.i\r tlow in,; h.ui Aon in. wrai marked with the whip end had the printi he- vim: wounds in him when hr oi see thr s.imr in llir dr. id w.is \ r. yOU might unl ii his hull's urn broken oi misshap remain
ill
he
i
Ik
•
mm
tin:
.ill
ihrni, ai
.
.»
i
t
.il
in
found A»i hrlau andai
when
he w.is ah\c.
llir
s.unr ap|x
from
oi
the soul ire laid
to
who is lil
t
.hit ihr\ have
th
e few there .ire w ho .itt.un to this. Sm h gl SSS there m.i\ .irise ge*>d
ot
all
I
.1
1
true
men, however, there ai Athens and
be again,
h.i\e been, in
and
other states,
will
who
have fulfilled their trust righteousl] and there is one who is quite famous all over Hellas, ;
Ansteides, the son eral, great
As
men
e)t
Lysimai.hus. But,
are also bad,
my
in
gen-
friend.
was saying, Rhadamanthus, when he the bad kind, knows nothing
I
gets a soul ot
about him, neither ents are; he a villain;
who
knows only
and seeing
he
is,
nor
who
I
that he has got hold ot
this,
he stamps him I him awa\ toTarta
able or incurable, and sends
whither he goes and receives his proper recompense. Or. again, he looks with admiration on the soul of some just one who has lived in holiness and truth; he may have been a private man or not; and I should say, Calliclcs, that he is most likely to have been a philosopher who has done his own work, and not troubled him self with the doingsof othcrmen in his lifetime;
rus,
him Rhadamanthus sends
to the Islands of the
Aeacus does the same; and they both have sceptres, and judge; but Minos alone has a golden sceptre and is seated looking on. as Odysseus in Homer declares that he saw him: Blessed.
Holding a sceptre thr d
Now :
Cf.
I,
Calliclcs,
Rep
of gold
am
persuaded of the truth of
15.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
294 these things,
and
1
consider
how
1
shall present
my soul whole and undented before the judge in that da\. Renouncing the honours at which the world aims,
and
I
desire only to
to live as well as
die as well as
power,
And,
1
in
I
exhort
to the
men
I
utmost
oi
my
do the same. your exhortation ot me, I
other
return lor
know the truth, when die, to
can, and,
And,
can. all
I
exhort you also to take part
in
to
the great combat,
which is the COmhat ot life, and greater than every other earthly conflict. And I retort your reproach ol me. and s.iy, that you will not he
when
able to help yourself
the
clay ot trial
and
judgment, of which was speaking, comes upon you; you will go before the indge, / $2j ] the son ot Aegina, and. when he has got \ou in his grip and is earn mg you ofl. >ou will gape and your head will swim round, just as mine would in the courts ot this world, and \ery likely some one will shamefully box you on the ears, and put upon you any sort ot insult. Perhaps this may appear to you to be only an old wite's tale, which you will contemn. And there might be reason in your contemning such tales, it by searching we could find out anything better or truer: hut now you see that you And Polus and (Jorgias, who are the three wisest of the ( .reeks of our day, are not able to show that we ought to live any life which does not profit in another world as well as in this. And of all that has been said, nothing remains unshaken but the saying, that to do injustice is more to be avoided than to sutler Injustice, and that the reality and not the appearance of virtue is to I
be followed above
things, as well in public
all
that when any one has been wrong in anything, he is to be chastised, and that the next best thing to a man being just is that he should become just, and be chastised and punished: also that he should avoid all flatas in private life;
and
tery ot himself as well as ot others, ot the lew
many: and rhetoric and any other art should be used by him, and all hisactions should be done always, with a view to justice. or of the
Follow me then, and I will lead you where you will be happy in lite and after death, as the argument shows. And never mind if some one despises you as a fool, and insults you, if he has a mind: let him strike \ou, by Zeus, and do you be of good cheer, and do not mind the insulting blow, for you will never come to any harm m the practise of virtue, it you are a really good and true man. When we have practised virtue together,
we
will apply ourselves to politics,
it
seems desirable, or we will advise about whatever else may seem good to us, for we shall be better able to judge then. In our present condition we ought not to give ourselves airs, for even on the most important subjects we are always changing our minds; so utterly stupid arc wel Let us, then, take the argument as our that
guide, which has revealed to us that the best
way
of
tue in
life is to life
in this exhort all to
practise justice
and death. This way
which you
men
trust
let
vir-
us go; and
to follow, not in the
and
to follow you; for that
ing worth.
and every
in
which you exhort
way,
Callicles,
is
me
noth-
THE REPUBLIC mi
Pi RSONI 0]
Pdl
t
s«
\Kv
•••.
in
C
|]
Thi
u 001
)i
I
i
i-n
U.US]
s
SOGftATBS,
!
J.
I
HI
UYMACHI
in the
"
Wl
'
CUUI
L
.-phiilu\
thi
ill
^#- ^
BOOK I
\vi.\r
down
a
nameita
•-
-^
/r Id me tell \«'u, thai a hen man thinks himjdi to be
below and
-
il
1
f.hiitr correct
m
oi
would
nr
\.i\
:
reus wealth >iu-. he v.nJ.
\u mi
I*
thr truth M. our M
:
\
•
ealth.
iiur. but in. iv
What do
question r
and
in
thai
.i\
uc, be vnil.
thai
11.. I
.
hould
I
a
1
1
i
ii
\\c
I
nir
nli
mm
tn them and -ill men \n.l hence th< \n\ bid company, foi the] in talk about
hat
im a
.1
hni
1,.
1
iend n hen in
ii
.i
r
.11
la is
mon
I
thai
\\
ihr s.ikr dI usr llld profit
i
\...j
this
t..
ion
poemi
ii
thru children, besides that natural
tor
at a
l
I
r\rn
i
resemblin
t>w n,
thcii
.in.!
love
till
ion oi
t
REPUBLK
I
luvc inherited thru
I
2
Certainly not.
When a debt
Simonides said that the repayment of justice, he did not mean to include
was
that case
3
Certainly not; for he thinks that a friend
ought always
to
do good
to a friend
and never
evil.
You mean gold which
two ment of ine him
the
that the return of a deposit of
is
to the injury of the receiver,
parties are friends, a
debt
—that
is
is
if
not the repay-
what you would imag-
to say?
Yes.
And owe
to
are enemies also to receive
them
;
what we
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
298
To
be sure, he laid, thej arc eo receive
what
wc QWC them, ami an enemy, as take it, outs to an enemy thai which is due or proper to him that if to say, evil. Simomdcs. then, after the manner of poets, I
And what similar use or power of acquisition has justice in time of peace In contracts, Socrates, justice is of use. :
—
would seem
meant to say that justice is the giving to each man what is proper to him, and this he termed a dcht. That must have Inrcn his meaning, he said. By heaven! I replied; and il wc asked him what due or proper thing is given DV medicine, and to whom, what answer do you think that he would make to US? lie would surely reply that medicine gr.es drugs and meat and drink to human bodies. And what due or proper thing is given by cookery, and to what/ that
which
justice gives,
and
to
whom.' It. Socrates, we are to be guided at all by the analogy of the preceding instances, then justice is
to
which gives good
the art
to friends
and
I
think
and
best able to
is
enemies
in
do good
what
harm
;
Then
man
in
what
in playing the
In a
money
result
the just
harp the harp-player
is
certainly
man?
partnership.
Polemarchus, but surely not in the use of money; for you do not want a just man to be your counsellor in the purchase or sale ol a horse; a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that, would he not ; Certainly.
Then what
But when is
pilot
is
to buy a ship, the would be better?
ship-
that joint use of silver or gold
which the just man is to be preferred? When you want a deposit to be kept safely.
You mean when money
a voyage, amid the perils
sort of actions or
is
the just
with a view
man most
enemy and good
chus, there
able to
do
in
a
man
is
well,
That is
is
not wanted, but
lie
mak-
is
to say, justice
is
useful
when money
useless?
That
to his friend?
war against the one and
is
the inference.
And when you want
to
keep
a
pruning-hook
then justice is useful to the individual and to the state; but when you want to use it, then the art of the vine-dresser? safe,
my
dear Polemar-
no need of a phvsician?
NC.
Clearly.
And
he
who
is
not on a voyage has no need
of a pilot?
And when you want
to keep a shield or a them, you would say that justice is useful; but when you want to use them, then the art of the soldier or of the musi-
lyre,
No.
Then
time of peace justice will be of no
in
use?
and not
to use
cian?
am
very Ear from thinking so.
Certainly.
And
[333] You. think that justice may be of use peace as well as in war:
useful
Yes.
they are useful?
Like
husbandry
for
the
acquisition
of
corn?
so of all the other things
when
That
Then
Yes.
Or
is
than the harp-player, as
a better partner than the just
in
ing alliances with the other.
shoes
sort of partnership
a better partner
Precisely.
what
to his
of
Quite the reverse.
allowed to
In going to
1
game
skilful player.
the builder
pilot.
in
or the skilful pla\cr a
better partner at a
And in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful or better partner than
to his friends
time of sickness?
of the sea?
in
The
wright or the True.
so.
The physician. Or when they are on
And
and
And when you want
evil to his
The
man
the just
is
usetul
draughts ?
evil
meaning then?
his
is
And who
to
But
more
enemies.
That
partnerships?
its.
filing to lood. is
mean
by contracts you
aly.
have spoken darkly of the na-
to
ture of justice; tor he really
And what
And
like
justice
is
when
the inference.
justice
is
not good for much. But let Is not he who
us consider this further point;
shoemaking for the acquisition of is what you mean?
— that
Yes.
is
—
they are useless, and useless
can best strike a blow in a boxing match or in any kind of fighting best able to ward off a
blow?
f
:
i
1
1
k
1
i
r
t
r.
,K
i
i
I
who
\ii.l \\c
from
.in.,
is
most
.«
d
skilful in prevent
I
hai in to
uir
I
\iul l«rst
human
«.i
it
\\r
is
thr
vu.u.I ol
l»rst
steal
ii»
who n em
,
but,
ilir
i»i
it
that win, h wi
i.ini|i
.i
march upon
.1
ili.it
them; and hr lus
hr ought to benefit
able
rutin
in
ihr meat
and Ik
:t.lllllv.
who
tun hr
1
is
Ih.it,
good
Thai
is
Then
after
he
.i
thief.
m.m
implied .ill
And
tins
is
iking oi at
Autolycua,
t>i
the-
who
her oi Odysseus,
l>
ft
;
/
;
hr
th.it
m»t good, only an
Ik- and is same ma) be s.ml. Von would argue thai thr good friends and the bad our enca
to
r
yy5/ and
i.
.ire
our
Vet,
Ami
so,
you and
agreed that justice
is
an
harm
oi
enemies*'
in
and Simonides
art oi tlu-tt; to
however "tor the good
tised
the
tomes:
I
W prat
and Eor was what you
oi friends
— that
were saying? No, certainly not that, though do not now know what I Jul say; but still stand hy the latter words. Well, there is another question: By Eriends and enemies do we mean those who are so really, or only in seeming Surely, he said, a man may he expected to love those whom he thinks good, and to hate those whom he thinks evil. Vc\ but do not persons often err about good and evil: many who are not good seem to I
I
be
and conversely That is true. Then to them the good
will be
enemies and
And good
in that case they will be right in
to the evil
and
evil to the
doing
good?
But the good are
just
and would not do an
injustice?
Then according
to
your argument
it
is
just
who do no wrong?
Nay, Socrates; the doctrine is immoral. Then I suppose that we ought to do good the just and harm to the unjust? like that better.
at
just
are evil? Yes, thai appears to
Hut ought the
me
to
the truth.
Ik-
just to injure
any one
at all
3
Undoubtedly he ought to injure thosewho arc both wicked and his enemies.
When
horses
.ire
injured, arc they
improved
or deteriorated?
The
latter.
Deteriorated, that ities
is
to say, in the
good qual-
of horses, not of dogs?
Yes. of horses.
dogs arc deteriorated
of dogs,
man
in the
good qual-
and not of horses?
Of course. And will not men who is
are injured be deteri-
the proper virtue of
:
And that human virtue is justice? To be sure. Then men who are injured are of made
True.
I
is
Certainly.
Clearly.
to injure those
it
orated in that which
True.
did
todogood to our ir lends and harm to our enemies, we should lurther It is just to do good to our triends when they good and harm to our enemies when they
ities
the evil will be their friends?
instead oi laying sirn;
that
first,
And
2
so,
And
That is the result. But can the musician by unmusical
to
necessity
unjust? his art
make men
:
Certainly not.
Or the horseman by horsemen?
his art
make them bad
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
MO
folly, Socrates,
Impossible.
by justice make men unor speaking generally, can the good by
And just,
can the
just
make them bad? Assuredly not. more than heat can produce cold
virtue
Am
:
Or drought moisture (
?
cannot.
It
Hearty not.
Nor can
harm any one?
the just
is
the good?
rtainly.
Then is
else is
man, but of the opposite,
the un)USt?
1
think that what you say
I
quite true.
is
Sen rates.
Then
a
it
man
says that justice consists in
the repayment of debts,
debt which a sa\ this
man owes
and
not wise; for
is
Ixrcn clearly
good is the and evil enemies to
that
to his friends,
which he owes
the debt
to his
it is
not true,
—
if,
as has
shown, the injuring of another
can be in no case just. agree with you, said Polemarchus. Then you and I are prepared to take up arms against any one who attributes such a saying to Simonides or Bias or Pittacus. or any other I
man or am quite
wise I
seer.'
ready to do battle
at
your
side,
he
we are seeking for justice, a thing more precious than many pieces of gold, do you say that we weakly yielding to one another and not doing our utmost to get at the truth? Nay, my good friend, we are most willing and anxious are
do so, but the fact is that we cannot. And if you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry with us.
to
said.
[336] Shall
I
tell
you whose
I
believe the
saying to be?
'Whose? I
do you knock under to one another? I say that if you want really to know what justice is, you should not only but answer, and you should not seek honour to yourself from the refutation of an opponent, but have your own answer; for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer. And now will not have you say that justice is duty or advantage or profit or gain or interest, for this sort of nonsense will not do for me; I must have clearness and accuracy. was panic-stricken at his words, and could not look at him without trembling. Indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye upon him. I should have been struck dumb: but when saw his fury rising, I looked at him first, and was theretore able to reply to him. Thrasymachus, I said, with a quiver, don't be hard upon us. Polemarchus and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in the argument, but I can assure you that the error was not intentional. If we were seeking for a piece of gold, you would not imagine that we were "knocking under to one another," and so losing our chance of finding it. And why. when I
any one
to injure a friend or
not the act ol a just
who
has taken possession of you all?
sillybilhes,
I
the good
Impossible.
And
And why,
believe that Periander or Perdiccas or Xer-
Theban, or some other rich and mighty man, who had a great opinion of his own power, was the first to say that justice is "doing good to your friends and harm to xes or Ismenias the
your enemies." Most true, he Yes,
I
tice also
said;
[iff] How characteristic of Socrates! he rewith a bitter laugh that's your ironical have I not already told style! Did I not foresee you, that whatever he w as asked he would refuse to answer, and try irony or any other shuffle, in order that he might avoid answerplied,
—
—
r
ing?
You
said.
but
if
this
definition of jus-
breaks down, what other can be of-
fered
Se\cral times in the course of the discussion
Thrasymachus had made an attempt to get the argument into his own hands, and had been put down by the rest of the company, who ft anted to hear the end. But when Polemarchus and had done speaking and there was a pause, I
he could no longer hold his peace; and, gathering himself up, he came at us like a wild beast, seeking to devour us. We were quite panicroared out to the whole company:
are a philosopher, Thrasymachus, I reand well know that if you ask a person what numbers make up twelve, taking care to prohibit him whom you ask from answering plied,
twice
six,
or three times four, or six times two.
or four times three, "for this sort of nonsense
—
do for me" then obviously, if that your way of putting the question, no one can answer you. But suppose that he were to retort, "Thrasymachus, what do you mean? If one of these numbers which you interdict be the true answer to the question, am I falsely to say some other number which is not the right one? is that your meaning?" How would you answer him? will not
is
—
stricken at the sight of him.
He
so,
What
—
1
I
1
slikl
.iil
it
RKPUHLK
I
'
I
Ik
W
h\ ihoilld lln\
ii
iin-\
|h
i
s(
.u
m w
iii.l
l>.
replied;
I
hi> is
he thinks,
\\
you and
mj w hat bid him nK apj
dun
1
now
(
c
rt.unly.
AnJ
the different
forms oi governmem make
laws democratical, aristocratical, tyrannical, with a view to their several interests; and tl laws, which arc made hv them tor their own in
which the\ deliver to •hem and him who tra; they punish as a breaker ot the law and uniust. Anil that is what I mean when say that in all states there is the same principle of justice, which is the interest ot the government; a\v\ as the government must Ik* supposed to are the justice
terests.
their subjects,
.
I
I
power, I 339] the only reasonable conclusion is. that everywhere there is one principle of jus
which
tice,
Now
I
is
the interest ot the stronger.
understand you,
I
said;
you are right or not will try let me remark, that in defining I
and whether
to discover.
But
vou have yourself used the word "interest" which you forbade me to use. It is true, however, that in your definition the words "ot the stronger" arc added. A small addition, you must allow, he said. Great or small, never mind about that: we must first enquire whether what you are saying
the truth.
is
justice
is
Now we
interest of
some
to say "of the stronger"; I
am
justice
arc both agreed that sort,
but you go on
about
this addition
not so sure, and must therefore consider
further.
Proceed.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
302
and
will;
I is
first tell
)ust lor subjects to
me )o you admit that 1 obey their rulers
it
1
Hut arc the rulers ol states absolutely ble, or arc they sometimes liable to cir be sure,
lie
replied, they are liable to err.
be his interest to do;
they
make them
rightly, they
to their interest;
them agreeably
when
make
;
Ws laws which they
the
obeyed by their subjects
make must
— and that
is
be
what you
call justice?
toubtless.
Then
justice,
according to your argument,
not only obedience to the interest of the ;
stronger but the re\ersc
What
\ou arc saying? he asked. am only repeating what you are saying, I believe. Hut let us consider: Have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about is
that
1
own
their
interest in
also that to
what they command, and
obey them
is
Has not
justice?
that
been admitted? Yes.
Then you must
also
have acknowledged
jus-
not to be for the interest of the stronger,
tice
when
the
rulers
things to be done jury.
For
it,
as
you
to
command their own in-
is
the obedience
unintentionally
which are say, justice
which the subject renders to their commands, in that case, () wisest of men, is there any escape from the conclusion that the weaker are commanded to do, not what is for the interest, but what is tor the injury of the stronger? Nothing can be clearer, Socrates, said Polemarchus. Yes, said Cleitophon, interposing, if / jjo you are allowed to be his witness. Hut there is no need of any witness, said Polemarchus, for Thrasymachus himself ac-
knowledges mand what
that rulers is
may sometimes com-
not for their
own
Never mind,
interest,
and
them is justice. Thrasymachus said
—
lor
is
is
I
now
says that
replied,
if
he
us accept his statement. Tell
physician or arithmetician or grammarian has made a mistake, but this is only a way of speaking; for the fact
is
that neither the
grammarian
nor any other person of skill ever makes a mistake in so far as he is what his name implies; they none of them err unless their skill tails them, and then they cease to be skilled artists. No artist or sage or ruler errs at the time when he is what his name implies; though he is commonly said to err, and I adopt the common mode of speaking. But to be perfectly accurate, since you are such a lover of accuracy we should say that the ruler, in so far as he is a ruler, is unerring, [341] and, being unerring, always commands that which is for his own interest;
his
and the subject
commands; and
and now
is
required to execute
therefore, as
repeat, justice
is
I
said at
first
the interest of the
stronger. I
pear to you to argue like an informer
really ap:
Certainly, he replied.
And do you
both these propositions, he further acknowledged that the stronger may command ting
weaker who
let
about the sick is a physician in that he is mistaken? or that he who errs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician or grammarian at the time when he is making the mistake, in respect of the mistake? True, we say that the
just.
Yes, Qeitophon, but he also said that justice the interest ol the stronger, and, while admit-
the
Polemar-
Indeed, Thrasymachus, and do
Polemarchus that subjects to do what wascommanded by their
i't s.
his words, rejoined
me, Thrasymachus, I said, did you mean by justice what the stronger thought to be his interest, whether really so or not? Certainly not. he said. Do you suppose that I call him who is mistaken the stronger at the time when he is mistaken? Yes, I said, my impression was that you did so, when you admitted that the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken. You argue like an informer, Socrates. Do you mean, for example, that he who is mistaken they arc.
that for subjects to obey
rulers
this was what the weaker had was affirmed by him to be jus-
chus.
they are
mistaken, contrary to their interest; you admit
is
—
this
Those were not
When
Ami
and
tice.
True.
1
whence follows that asmuch as the interest
interest;
est of the stronger
Then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly, and sometimes not?
thai
own
the injury quite
But, said Cleitophon, he meant by the interwhat the stronger thought to
infalli-
:
To
is
of the stronger.
do.
I
not for his justice
arc his subjects to
do what
is
tions with
suppose that I ask these quesany design of injuring you in the
argument ; "suppose" is not the word but you will be found out, and by sheer force of argument you will never prevail.
Nay, he
I
know
it;
replied,
1
I
Imt
i.'
do
\
sjH-.ik
.11
.
KM
Ik-
.
m
rulei
tn
Oi tlir
t
ind
And do you
madman !
i»l
pl.»\ .it
oi
m
\\
I
ilh..
die Uriel
Mii-.cs.
.ill
Iir
the informal
youi hands
sou
it
Why, he
imagine,
,
in;
Bui jrou nevei
said, th.it
I
I
,nn mi. h
.i
rhrasymaehus?
and cheat
either b\
1
I
other. the\
h.i
!er
.
.
I
.
minute
.i
th.it
1
ids in your
you made the attempt
ihr
then Mih|f mi. if pine .ind l.niltlrss while rem. lining true d uninip w Kile 1)
a lion
ihavc
said,
thnn.
\n.|
s.ii.l
ot
ai to tt\
as well
might
fault
«••
require anothei iup|
•
l
lv ible, ne\er
ill
h
i
ti.iv
l>\
ue Mid detoniiils.
\
WJU
i;i\rn to
In-rii
non
bill
admitted
l>n ir. n'.r.l
.itt
i
lid
\n.!
ihutr
the
.ill
\\r \\
ipi
the unjust
i|iiali(ies
tributed by in before to the
iust.
which w
t
u
lh
c
sible;
1
1
lerc feeling perplexed
have
that
we
— My
began
to think o\er said,
no
are in a perplexity; for
Wt
image which we had
be-
what had preceded
wonder
1
lost sight of the
friend,
I
fore us.
What do you mean: that mean to ..;.
I
he sa:d. there
do
exist
natures
gifted with those opposite qualities.
And where do you find them? Many animals, replied, furnish examples I
them; our friend the dog is a very good one: you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle to their familiars and acquaintances, and of
know.
1
Then
there
is
Then we have found the desired natures; and now that we have found them, how are they to be reared and educated? Is not this an enquiry which may be expected to throw light on the greater enquiry which is our final end How do justiceand injustice grow up in States? for we do not want either to omit what is to the point or to draw out the argument to an inconvenient length. Adeimantus thought that the enquiry would be of great service to us. Then, I said, my dear friend, the task must not be given up, even Certainly not.
the reverse to strangers. Yes,
safely affirm. is
nothing impossible or out of
Come
who
tion of our heroes.
Would
not he
By
who
is
fitted to
be a guardian,
long.
and let us pass a leisure hour in and our story shall be the educa-
story-telling,
has a similar combination of qualities?
somewhat
then,
the order of nature in our finding a guardian
Certainly not.
if
means.
all
And what
shall be their
education?
Can we
besides the spirited nature, need to have the
find a better than the traditional sort?
qualities of a philosopher?
this has
do not apprehend your meaning. The trait of which I am speaking, jj6] /
and music
1
may
replied,
remarkable
What Why,
be also seen in the dog, and
I is
trait?
whenever he sees a stranger, is angry; when an acquaintance, he welcomes him, although the one has never done him any harm, nor the other any good. Did this never strike you as curious? The matter never struck me before; but I quite recognise the truth of your remark.
And
a dog,
surely this instinct of the
— your dog
Why? Why,
is
dog
is
very
a true philosopher.
because he distinguishes the face of a
—and
divisions, gymnastic for the body,
for the soul.
True.
we
begin education with music, and gymnastic afterwards? By all means. And when you speak of music, do you inShall
go on
in the animal.
charming
two
to
clude literature or not? I
do.
And
literature
may
be either true or false?
Yes.
[377] And the young should be trained in both kinds, and we begin with the false? I do not understand your meaning, he said. You know, I said, that we begin by telling children stories which, though not wholly des-
main fictitious; and them when they are not
titute of truth, are in the
and of an enemy only by the criterion of knowing and not knowing. And must not an
of an age to learn gymnastics.
animal be a lover of learning who determines what he likes and dislikes by the test of knowledge and ignorance?
Very true. That was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before gymnastics.
friend
these stories are told
Most assuredly.
Quite right, he
And
You know
not the love of learning the love of wisdom, which is philosophy? is
said.
also that the
most important part
beginning
is
the
of any work, especially in
I
I
l\\r in
.isr
,
..I
time
ilu-
.it
ind ir.idtU
in,
the
tin
v
.i
1.
is
1
in
curcleul) allow children
w
tales
persons, .m>l
casual
ulr.is foi
liu
to
the most
ll
m.i\
b
\ similar actions; neither will he rebuke any inclination
which ma\
arise in his
And
instead ol
and do the
shame
like.
or self-control, he will
mind
having any be always whin-
what ought argument has just proved to psooi we must abide until it is
1
not to be, as the
tell
sailors.
Most
true, he said.
then, the ruler catches
It,
Any
State
Most
believe.
Then persons of worth, even if only mortal men. must not be represented as overcome by laughter, and still less must such a representation of the gods be allowed. / ]8()J Still less of the gods, as you say, he Then we
shall not sufTer such an expression used about the gods as that of Homer
when he
-
certainly, he said,
if
our idea of the
In the next place our youth
must be temper-
ate
ever carried out.
is
3
Certainly.
and
self-control in sensual pleasures
of
Then we shall approve such language Diomede in Homer, Friend
,
sit still
and obey my word,
as that
1
and the verses which follow,
The Greeks marched breathing proucss? awe of their leaders?
how
describes
2
True.
replied.
to be
he be priest or ph\
Are not the chief elements of temperance, speaking generally, obedience to commanders
lolcnt reaction. I
r
3 ,
he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally subversive and destructive of
ought not 10 be. Wither ought our guardians to be given to laughter. For a tit of laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces a So
whethc
of the craftsmen,
ship or State.
\
anybody beside
himself lying in the State,
us; ami bv that disproved by a better. It
not to
the captain what is happening about and the rest ot the crew, and howthings arc going with himself or his fellow
not to
sieian or earpcntei
Yes. he said, that is most true. Vs. replied; but that surely is
gymnasium
the ship
to say
ing And lamenting on (light occasions.
1
patient or the pupil of a
speak the truth about his own bodily illnesses to the physician or to the trainer, or for a sailor
.... in silent Inextinguishable laughter arose among the blessed gods, when they saw Hephaestus bustling about
(
your views,
)n
On my me;
we must
n,
we were
views,
truth should be highly valued; saying, a
lie is
if,
useless to the gods,
cians; private individuals
men, then the use
have no business with
them. Clearly not, he said.
any one
have the privilege of lying, the rulers of the State should be the persons; and they, in their dealings either with enemies or with their own citizens, may be allowed to lie for the public good. But nobody else should meddle with anything of the kind; and although the rulers have this privilege, for a private
deemed 1
2
man a
at all is to
to lie to them in return more heinous fault than
Ibid, xvi. 433. Ibid, i. 599.
is
heavy with wine,
who
hast the eyes of a
dog and
the heart of a stag,"
as
and
of such medicines should be restricted to physi-
if
of this line,
if
useful only as a medicine to
Then
shall.
What
not admit them.
you like to father them on we must not admit them is certain.
that
and other sentiments of the same kind.
We
mansion*
the
to be
for the
and of the words which follow? [390] Would you say that these, or any similar impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address to their rulers, whether in verse or prose, are well or ill spoken ?
They are ill spoken. They may very possibly
afford some amusement, but they do not conduce to temperance.
And
men
—you
Odyssey,
xvii.
383
Iliad
412.
there ?
Yes. 3 *
5 8 7
harm to would agree with me
therefore they are likely to do
our young
,
iv.
Odyssey, Ibid,
iv.
Ibid,
i.
iii.
431.
225.
8.
ff.
nil r ihr
thai
s.i\
nothing
in nil
opinion
u
iteti
RKPUBLIl ••!
men
M
\. lullri luii:
mon
ii
than
hm
w
that
liirnl
hr
li».
I
t
•
hr
sentiments w hn h
is
tit
man
01
i
ondiM
to heai
iu
\ ha mankind two ifti uiswei ing to thi m Mil) iiiiliin tl\ to the v>ul .in.l IhkU ion
Ki< al,
hi
I
ami thr ochei the
ipirited
he-
t
cur
rUtion;
haVC
set
t
said, the vriHin
meaning
the
ol
unwill;
the
learn.
r about their hunting and coursing, gymnastic and equestrian contests? Foi these .ill follow the general principle, and has ing found ih.it, we shall have no difficulty in
Why, said, do you not see that men .ue unwillingly deprived ol good, and willing evil? Is not to have lost the truth .m evil, and to possess the truth .i u would
discovering tlK-m. dare say mat there will he no difficulty. Very uooil, said; then what is the next
conceive thin. |M>sc idected, and he who fails in ; the trial is to be rejected. That will be the wa\ !s,
And
and which they give lurthcr proof of the same
rhcrc should also be toils and pains
conflicts prescribed will be
made
to
lor
them,
in
light,
even be made probable, if it did. your words seem to hesitate on your I low lips'
You will not wonder, I replied, when you have heard.
he replied.
I
—
—
act n
m- .in admixtui 10m or itlver in them ire rai* d u> honour, and •Mir guardians or luxili u u lr M man ol brass m Iron guards the State, it will Ik- destroyed Sucn ii the tale; imposition must in>t
ii
1
1
1
1
«
i
ol
ink
i
.
pitiful
Ik-
i
.
I
1
1
i
.t
I
i
am Mm,
I
and
to be, in. in
civilize
*
I »
* t
1
1
rtain
i
have thr
will
Ik-,
more
h
and humanise them
in
thru relations
;
tion
.i
is
there in) poatibilit) ol
believe in
N
the preseni
may
sens
ol
made
Ik-
to believe
the difficulty, tor the
roch itv
i the two i»ir\, what is the titiili: SUv« we neither have noi ire permitted i \e conveyed to our gnardiai our at) be accounted neither large nor hut one and self sufficing.
new
1
order which v.c impose upon them. the other, said
of
1.
1
which we were
—
mean the 1 speaking before is lighter still rading the offspring oi the guardi.
hen interior. And oi elevating into the rank of guardians the offspring oi the lower
when ally,
naturally su|>erior.
'I
"he intention
the case of the citizens gener-
that,
in
each
individual
should be put to the
which nature intended him, one to one work, and then e\ery man would do his own business, and be one and not many; and so the whole city would be one and not many. he said; that
I,
is
not so difficult.
we
regulations which
are prescribing,
danger
quite believe
to the
So
him
whole
Damon
—he
and me. and
State,
tells
says that
when
of music change, the fundamental laws
modes
change with them. Adeimantus; and you may add my suffrage to Damon's and \our own. Then. I said, our guardians must lay the foundations of their fortress in music? Yes, he said: the lawlessness of which you
of the State always aid
speak too easily
r
The
of the poet; for any musical inno\a-
full of
is
hf to be prohibited.
>e\crc
And
may be praising, not new kind of song; and this
afraid that he
not to be praised, or conceived to be the
meaning tion
l>e
songs, but a
1
and
steals in.
replied, in the
at first sight
Why, yes, he
form of amusement:
appears harmless.
it
and there is no harm: ucre by little this spirit of licence, finding a home, imperceptibly penetrates into manners and customs; whence, issuing with greater force, it invades contracts between man it
not that
said,
little
od Adeimantus, are not. as might be supposed, a number of great principles, but trifles all, if care be taken, as the saying is, of a thing, however, which the one great thing I would rather call, not great, but sufficient for
and man, and from contracts goes on to laws and constitutions, in utter recklessness, ending at last, Socrates, by an overthrow of all rights.
our purpose.
and nurture; If our citizens are well educated, and grow into sensible men, they will easily see their way through all is well as other matters which omit;
That is my belief, he replied. Then, as I was saying, our youth should be trained from the first in a stricter system, for if amusements become lawless, and the youths themselves become lawless, [425] they can never grow up into well-conducted and vir-
such, for example, as marriage, [424] the possession of women and the procreation of chil-
tuous citizens. Very true, he
—
What may Education,
that be I
;
he asked.
said,
I
dren, which will that friends
all
have
follow the general principle
all
things in
common,
as the
proverb says.
That
will be the best
way
of settling them.
once started well, moves with accumulating force like a wheel. For good nurture and education implant good !
-aid. the State, if
constitutions,
and these good constitutions
ing root in a good education improve
tak-
more and
more, and this improvement aifects the breed
man
in
as in other animals.
Very possibly, he
Then above
to
all,
directed
sum
the point to which,
the attention of our rulers should be that music and gymnastic be pre-
—
made. They must do
them intact. And mankind most regard
tain
utmost to mainwhen any one says that their
The newest song which 1 1
/..
that true.'
And when
I
said.
said.
made a good beginning and by the help of music have gained the habit of good order, then this habit of order, they have
in play,
in a
manner how unlike the lawless play of the accompany them in all their actions
others! will
and be
a principle of
growth
to them,
and
if
there be any fallen places in the State will raise
them up again.
Wry
true,
he
said.
Thus educated, any
they will invent for themwhich their predecessors
lesser rules
have altogether neglected. is
served in their original form, and no innovation
Is
selves
said.
up: This
pri\ate as well as public.
the singers
hate?
What do you mean? mean such things
I
young
as
these:
—when
are to be silent before their elders:
the
how
show respect to them by standing and making them sit; what honour is due to parents; what garments or shoes are to be worn; the mode of dressing the hair; deportment and manners in general. You would agree with they are to
me
:
«
THE REPUBLH
I
v
ind idlu
\
wisdom
think, sm.ill But there iv bout inch mitten I
.ur .ins
trm Think, now, and say whether you agree with me or not. Suppose a carpenter to Ik- doing the "-
business ot
a
cobbler, or a cobblcrot
.1
carpenter;
and suppose them to exchange their implements or their duties, or the same person to be doing the work of both, or whatever Ik- the change; do you think that any great harm
would result Not much.
to the State
:
But when the cobbler or any other man nature designed to be a lifted
up by wealth
of his
whom
ha\ ing his heart
trailer,
or strength or the
number
followers, or any like advantage,
at-
tempts to force his way into the class of warriors, or a warrior into that of legislators and guardians, for which he is unfitted, and either other; or
law ordains about the true nature of dangers, or wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers, or whether this other which I am mentioning, and
which
is
a just
is
implements or the duties of the
to take the
ot necessity.
which of these four qualities by its presence contributes most to the excellence of the State, whether the agreement of rulers and subjects, or the preservation in the soldiers of the opinion which the If
that
Which
Then on
it.
man
a
th.it
.uiv
neither Like wh.il
.im right Of not:
I,
if]
ttainly.
Well then,
ia
tr.
the rulers
tx.t
those to
ordium.
1
»hr
wh.it w.is I
1
rice
in
in
petition
glow impatieni
diih
j
who
we missed Ikt. What do \ »n mean mean to lay thai in realit) t.-t i long time talking ol justice, and have nan we have I
-
I*
ch
•.
noth
whai the) have in tliru wa} with in pre looked
the distance; and therefore,
i
when one man
and warrior agree with
and
this
all
me
in one, in
is
then
trader, legislator, I
think you will
saying that this interchange
meddling of one with another
is
the
ruin of the State.
Most
true.
Seeing then, I said, that there are three distinct classes, any meddling of one with another, or the change of one into another, is the greatest harm to the State, and may be
DlALOGU
350 :stly
termed evil-doing:
And the greatest degree of e\ -doing to one's own city would be termed by you injustice? il
Mainly.
This then
is
injustice;
and
oil
the other
hand
the trader, the auxiliary, and the guardian each do their own business, that is justice, ami will make the city just.
when
ree
We
on
if,
trial,
said, be overpositive as yet;
1
conception of justice be
this
individual as well as in the Stale, there will be no longer any room tor doubt; if it Ik* not verified, we must have a fresh enquiry. First let us complete the old in
the
we began,
investigation, 9 Inch
under the impression
you remem-
as
that,
if
we could
previously examine justice on the larger scale, there would be less difficulty in discerning her in the individual. That larger example ap-
we conknowing
peared to be the State, and accordingly
structed as good a one as we could, well that in the good State justice would be found. Let the discovery which we made be
now applied to the we shall be satisfied the individual,
in
individual ;
or,
we
if
—
if
they agree,
there be a difference
will
And have another
Stale
come back
trial
to the
of the theory.
1 435] The friction of the two when rubbed together mav possibly strike a light in which justice will shine forth, and the vision which is
then revealed we will fix in our souls. That will be in regular course; let us do as
you
proceeded to ask:
When two things,
a great-
by the same name, are they like or unlike in so far as they are called the
and
less, are called
same.'
Like, he replied.
The
just
man
then,
if
we
regard the idea of
justice only, will be like the just State?
He will. And a State was thought by us to be just when the three classes in the State severally did their own business; and also thought to be temperate and valiant and wise by reason of certain
same
other affections and
qualities
of these
classes?
True, he
And
An
3
easy question! Nay. rather, Socrates, the
proverb holds that hard Very true. said; and
is
the good.
do not think method which we are employing is at 1
I
that the all
ade-
quate to the accurate solution of this question; the true method is another and a longer one.
we may
arrive at a solution not below the previous enquiry. May we not be satisfied with that 3 he said under the circumstances. I am quite content. I too, I replied, shall be extremely well satis-
level of the
—
fied.
Then he
pursuing the speculation,
faint not in
said.
Must we not acknowledge,
I
said, that
in
each of us there are the same principles and
which there arc in the State; and that from the individual they pass into the State 3 how else can they come there 3 Takethe quality would be ridiculous of passion or spirit it to imagine that this quality, when found in States, is not derived from the individuals who habits
—
—
are supposed to possess
it,
e. g.
the Thracians,
Scvthians, and in general the northern nations;
and the same may be edge, which
is
said of the love of
knowl-
the special characteristic of our
part of the world, [436] or of the love of money, which may, with equal truth, be attrib-
uted to the Phoenicians and Egyptians. Exactly so, he said.
There
is
no
difficulty in
understanding
this.
None whatever.
say.
I
er
—
soul has these three principles or not
Still
with you.
will not.
verified
ber,
more then. O my friend, we ha\e upon an easy question whether the
ice
alighted
Pre.
but
OF PLATO
said.
we mav assume same three principles in his own soul which are found in the State; and he may be rightly described in the same terms, because he is affected in the same manner so ol the individual;
that he has the
3
Certainly, he said.
But the question is not quite so easy when proceed to ask whether these principles are
we
three or one; whether, that is to say, we learn with one part of our nature, are angry with another, and with a third part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites; or whether the whole soul comes into play in each sort of action to determine that is the difficulty. Yes, he said; there lies the difficulty. Then let us now try and determine whether
—
they are the same or different.
How
can we? he asked.
The same thing clearly cannot act or be acted upon in the same part or in relation to the same thing at the same time, in contrary ways: and therefore whenever this contradiction occurs in things apparently the same, we know that they are really not the same, but different. I
replied as follows:
Good. For example,
I
said,
can the same thing be
1
I
id
motion
III
llir
al
s
line
11
REP
l
Uinr
h
II
I
V
I
1
the
111
same |
llll|Hiss;',>
Still,
trims,
ol
:
ultrj.l\ let
said,
I
us have
mi we should hcrcattci
list
tall
thai
thai
i
I
.1
1
w wants anything
moment
tut
ti>
Ii
i
mode
ol
i|
should object, and should rathei s.i\ thai p.m i»t lum is in motion while anothei
\
(
and
true.
\
Ami mppoac ther,
and
to
tlu-
draw
objectoj to refine
tur-
si ill
the nice distinction that not
I
I
I
the circumferenoc goes round.
desire
it.
while
revolving, the axis inclines either to the right or
forwards or backwards, then view can they be at rest.
left,
point oi
That
is
the correct
mode
ot
in
no
describing them,
he replied.
Then Bone
us to believe that the same riling the same time, [4^ / in the same part or in
relation to the
upon
same thing, can
act or be acted
in contrarv
ways. Certainly not, according to
examine
desire; should
thi
rtainly.
Admitting
this to
Ik-
us suppose a p.trtu
let
irur of desire generally,
ul.ir
|
out Oi these we will srln hunger M\^\ \\. as they arc termed, which arc the most obvit
oi
them
Let us
The
;
(Ac
that
1
lass,
object oi one
is
he said.
mod, and
ol
the
drink? Yes.
And
here comes the point: is not thirst the which the soul has oi drink, and \
t)Ul
length the d
.it
R
I
r
In-
UD
l.lll
of
him;
«
m>ii.
w
ill
iplr-v
i
h
in>
!.
W
il
is
oh
.•
ova
r.l
,:
bctioni
in
thai ingei
is,
though
.in
»t
man) oth Inn a in. ins
«\
.1
which
I
is
desires violently
like the struggle ot
out
i.
n
the
.ilso
auxili
1
different
any one else?
Certainly not. Sup|x>sc that a
man
spirit
simOSl
•
easil)
p.
young
in
-
s.M.n
.is
them
|
hildren
equally
to another, the nobler he
he to fed indignant
n
at
is
the less able
roy suffering, such
.1^
I
True, he said.
when he thinks that he is the sufferer wrong, then he boils and chates, rod is on the side of what he believes to be justice; and because he sutlers hunger or cold or other pain he is only the more determined to persevere and conquer. His noble spirit will not be But
or the
quelled until he either slays or
is
in. iv
loiner,
is,
ot
uth
ti
enough*
:
w
h.it
is
further
«
you
once more appeal to the words of h h.i\e been .ilre.idv quoted by us,
whu
(mate
his breast,
for in this verSC
and thus rrbukrd
his
'.
rea-
The
illustration is perfect, he replied; and our State, as we were saying, the auxiliaries were to be dogs, and to hear the voice of the rulers, who are their shepherds. I perceive, I said, that you quite understand me; there is, however, a further point which I wish you to consider. in
:
I
power which
loiner h.is clearly SU|
about the Ixrt' worse to be dillerent lrom the unreasoning anger which is rebuked by it. Very true, he said. And so. alter much tossing, we have r land, and are fairly agreed that the s.unc printhe
ciples
re.isns
which exist in the Si and that they are three
in
in
individualj
the
numl>cr.
Exactly,
Must we not then infer that the individual is in the same way, and in Virtue ol the same quality which makes the State wisc\ wise
:
slain; or until
he hears the voice of the shepherd, that son, bidding his dog bark no more.
l.itr-
-i
hunger, or col J, or any other pain which the these Injured person may inflict upon him ems to be just, and, as say, his anger reEuses to he excited by them.
What point You remember
we
the
of
Iirrr.r.
brute animals, which
in ;
Full
i
ind you
//(•
done
th.it
l!
.is
on, .ind most ol thrui
I
th inks he haf
i
to It difl
Bui 'hit
sninr ot
si«!
which has already from
passion,
it
I**
t be put into the
Are
form
r.ik
mI'Ic
begin
>,
• I
oi
this
ion w
in.:
the
',
.it
on*
State
r I
replied,
.ill
oi
CI
\
ni.ittrr
the
laid.
conceive, fond ol fine cones and
l
ours and forms and
who
l the nine il ,-i mi. \nd iu.i\ not thr iu.m\ w hu h .irr doubles be dotibles, that in. ol one thing.
1
1 1
•
tmbi
1
knowledge, the
..•
nn iiiU
M ho listened
t
il
halves
.in.l
«'t
Ami
and
they .ur termed, will net Ik- denoted by these .nn more than by hc much esteemed by those of the opte faction; not that the greatest and most lasting uiiury
but by her of
whom
'
done
to her
by her opponents,
professing followers, the same
you suppose the accuser to
the greater
and the agre
is
own
number
best are
sav. that
them are arrant rogues, useless; in which opinion I of
Yes.
Ami
the reason
why
the
good are
useless has
now been explained' True.
Then
shall
we proceed
ruption ol the majority
is
to
show
that the cor-
also unavoidable,
and
not to be laid to the charge of philosophy any more than the other: that this
By
is
means.
all
And
us ask and answer in turn, first going back to the description of the gentle and noble nature. [490] Truth, as you will rememlet
whom
ber,
was
and
in all things; tailing in this,
postor,
his leader,
and had no part or
he tollowed always he was an imlot in
true philoso-
phy. Yes, that was said. Well, and is not this one quality, to mention no others, greatly at variance with present notions of
him?
Certainly, he said.
And have we
not a right to say in his defence,
that the true lover of
—
knowledge
is
always
striv-
ing after being that is his nature; he will not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is
;
S.n to him, that, in
to
rs.
Precisely so, he said.
irec
their plot tor getting the ship out ol the cap-
.ot
thc\
and
with the stores; thus, eating and drinking, they proceed 00 their \o\age in such a manner as might be expelled ol them. Him
make
mankind are of a different stamp; ma\ be justK compared to the mutinous sailors, and the true helmsmen to those who are called by them good-for-nothings and Starernors 01
—
an appearance only, but will go on the keen edge will not be blunted, nor the force of his desire abate until he have attained the knowledge of the true nature of every essence by a sympathetic and kindred power in the soul, and by that power drawing near and mingling and becoming incorporate with very being, having begotten mind and truth, he will have knowledge and will live and grow truly, and then, and not till then, will he cease from his travail. Nothing, he said, can be more just than such a description of him. And will the love of a lie be any part of a philosopher's nature? Will he not utterly hate a lie?
I
I
I
H MM
I
K
I
I'l
I
i;
I
\
i
I
of thingi
will.
\nJ w hen ii nth lUtDCd M] evil
in
the
>
the
«'l
u
aptain,
I
1
1
ffeci
i
hand which
tic
I
tiii.lt
-a
i
nid
.
Inii
ihould like
I
i
p the
Impossible. ct and health ol mind will beoi the com pany, and temperance ^ill follov uc, he replied*
I
;ri
is
will n longi
their
n set in array
i
.ui\
kmmhi
\\Ii\
he philosopher'i virtu
I
wordj and look
.it
t.uts, the
who
personi
tome oi them manifi uscU-ss. and the greatei numbei utterly de prated; we were then led to enquire into the unds oi these- accusations, and hate nom ai .uc thus described are
the point
asking
rived
.»t
joritj
bad, which question
i>t
oi
us bach to the examination
why
arc the
ma
necessity brought
and definition
oi
Exactly.
Ami we
have next
do
consider thecorruptions
whv
the philosophic nature,
so
—
many
.ire
sorewescapc spoiling lam speakmg oi those who were said to be useless but not wicked and, [jgi J when we have done with them, we will speak of the imitators of philoso led and
—
manner
phv, what
of
men
are they
who
aspire
which is above them and of which thev arc unworthy, and then, by their manifold inconsistencies, bring upon philosophy, and upon all philosophers, that universal reprobation or which we speak. alter a protession
What
are these corruptions? he said.
will see it I can explain them to you. Every one will admit that a nature having in perfecI
tion all the qualities
philosopher, seen
is
which we required in a which is seldom
a rare plant
among men.
causes?
In the hrst place there are their their courage, temperance,
and the
own
virtues,
rest of
them,
every one of which praiseworthy qualities (and this is a most singular circumstance) destroys
and is
distracts
from philosophy the soul which
the possessor of them.
That
Then
is
very singular, he replied.
there are
all
the ordinary goods of
life
—beauty, wealth, strength, rank, and great connections the State — you understand the in
III
»u
iti
to
I
>
1
i
.
\Ci\ true,
There
ii
reason
more injury than 11. 1st (
is
in
when under
natures,
the-
supposing thai thr
finest
alien condition
be ause
the con*
Adeimantus,
that the
inferior,
greater.
eriamly.
we
ni.i\
not say,
most gifted minds, when the) are ill edu< ated, bo ome pre eminently bad? Do not great crimes and the spirit ot pure evil spring out ot a fulness o! nature ruined by education rather than from any inferiority, when as weak, naturi scarcclv capable o! any very great good or very ;
great evil
There think that you are right. [492] And our philosopher follows the same I
analogy
— he
er nurture,
into
all
is
like a plant
must
which, having prop-
grow and mature sown and planted in an
necessarily
virtue, but,
if
soil, becomes the most noxious of all weeds, unless he be preserved by some divine power. Do you really think, as people so often sa\, that our youth are corrupted by Sophists. or that private teachers of the art corrupt them in any degree worth speaking of? Are not the
alien
who say these things the greatest of all And do they not educate to perfection young and old, men and women alike, and fashion them after their own hearts? When is this accomplished? he said. When they meet together, and the world sits down at an assembly, or in a court of law, or a public
Rare indeed. And what numberless and powerful causes tend to destroy these rare natures!
What
":. i;lt\
Whv, s.ii.l, u r know thai .1" w hethci -a animal, when the) fail Do meet with propci nutriment od
oi
nrm
rxjpular
he he carried awa\ bv the
I
not have the notion*
which he is speaking, but calls honourable and that dishonourable, or good or evil, or just or unjust, all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great brute. he pronounces to be that in which the beast delights and evil to be that which he dislikes; and he can give no other account of them
or passions ot
man's heart, as i: *p Within him any private training enable him to stand
oi
this
i
and ewl which the public in general have— he will do as thc\ do, and as thc\ arc, SUCO will he
>t that the iust and noble are the necessary, having never himself, seen, and having no power of explaining to others the nature of either, or the diifercnce between them, which is immense. By heaven, would not such an one be a rare educator? Indeed he would. And in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment of the temjKrs and tastes of the motley multitude, whether in paint;
rates; necessity will
And cessity,
\et.
said, there
I
which has not
is
l>ccn
a
compel him. still
greater ne-
mentioned.
What iv The gentle ;
EofCC oi attainder or confiscation or death, which, as yOU are aware, these new Sophist! and educators, who arc the public, apply
words are powerless. and in right good earnest. what opinion oi any other Sophist, or
when
their
>;
Now come
can be expected to o\er-
;>ri\ate person,
.
m
such an unequal contest? he replied. Milred, said, even to make the attempt oi tolly, there neither is, nor has
c.
1
been, nor
is
of character
what
duce whatever they
in
is
more than human, as the proverb would not have \uu I
ignorant that, in the present evil state of governments, whatever is saved and comes to good is saved bv the power ol ( Jod, [493] as we may trul\ I
quite assent, he replied. let me crave your assent also to a fur-
Then
ther observation.
What Why,
whom deem
are vou going to say? that all those
the
many
call
mercenary individuals,
Sophists and
whom
to be their adversaries, do, in fact,
they teach
nothing but the opinion of the many, that is to Say, the opinions of their assemblies; and this is
might compare them to a man who should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong beast who is fed by him he would learn how to approach and handle him, also at what times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse. and what is the meaning ot his several cries, and by what sounds, when another utters them, he is soothed or intunated; ami vou may suppose further, that when, by continually attending upon him, he has become perfect in all this.hecallshisknowledge wisdom, and makes of it a system or art, which he proceeds to teach, although he has no real notion ot what he means by the principles their
when he is not obliged, the so-called Diomedc will oblige him to pro-
which has had no other training
not included: lor
if
his judges
necessity of
—
sa\s.
man consorts with the many, and exhibits to them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has done the State, making them
a
ever likely to be, any different type
virtue but that which :s supplied by public opinion 1 speak, my friend, of human virtue
only;
ing or music, or, finally, in politics, differ from whom I have been describing? For when
him
wisdom.
I
—
praise.
are utterly ludicrous
firmation of their
And
yet the reasons
which they give
own
in con-
notions about the hon-
ourable and good. Did you ever hear any of them which were not?
No, nor
You
am
I
likely to hear.
recognise the truth of
Then
what
I
have been
me
ask you to consider further whether the world will ever be induced to believe in the existence of absolute beauty rather saying?
let
than of the many beautiful, [494] or of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind? Certainly not.
Then
the world cannot possibly be a philos-
opher? Impossible.
And fall
therefore philosophers must inevitably under the censure of the world?
They must.
And
of individuals
who consort with
the
and seek to please them? That is evident. Then, do you see any way in which the
mob
philos-
opher can be preserved in his calling to the end? and remember what we were saying of him, that he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence these were admitted bv us to be the true philosopher's gifts.
—
Yes.
Will not such an one from his early child-
hood be
in all things first
among
all,
especially
I
irnts
his hod-'
like
.ire
R
II
I
it
I
I
I
us mental
ours
I
1
as he gets ol.lv
mn
theii
foi
i
\
r
persons
th.it
Ver
hut also
be iffirn
1
have.
would be
!*-
.
d
ipend the greatei pari oi their time- with one .mother in the hea\enlv .itc
i
on them .lie just; there Can be no doubt th.it every one oi them will take office as ttero necessity, .mil not alter the fashion t our pics .i
than night
my
i,
And i
i
I.
the true dai " hi
c
i
11
I
tion will gain most.
Yes, that will be the best way.
how,
if
And
I
think,
you have very well described ever, such a constitution might come in-
Socrates,
that
to being.
Enough then
and of the no difficulty
of the perfect State,
man who
bears
in seeing
how we
its
image
— there
shall describe
is
him.
There is no difficulty, he replied; and I agree with you in thinking that nothing more need be said.
ing also at politics and ruling lor the public good, not as though they were performing some heroic action, but simply as a matter of duty;
BOOK
VIII
and when they have brought up in each generation others like themselves and left them in their place to be governors of the State, then
[543] And so. (ilaucon, we have arrived at the conclusion that in the perfect State wives and children are to be in common; and that all edu-
they will depart to the Islands of the Blest and dwell there; and the city will give them public
cation
memorials and
and the bravest warriors are
sacrifices
and honour them,
the Pythian oracle consent, as demigods, but not, as in any case blessed and divine.
You
are a sculptor, Socrates,
statues of
our governors
if if
and have made
faultless in beauty.
and the pursuits of war and peace are common, and the best philosophers
also to be
to be their kings? That, replied Glaucon, has been acknowledged.
Yes, I said; and we have further acknowledged that the governors, when appointed
DIALOG UES OF PLATO themselves, will take their soldier* and place thnn in houses such as \vc were describing,
common
and contain nothing and al>out their propremember what we agrccd remember that no one was to have any oi the ordinary possession! of mankind; they were to l>c warrior athletes ami guardians, rewhich
are
to all,
private, or individual;
;
1
ceiving from the other citizens, in lieu .
whole
nt, only their maintenance,
i
and they
themselves and
care ol
t.tkc
to
ot
the
democracy, which naturally follows oligarchy, although very different: and lastly comes tyranny, great and tamous. which ditlers from them all, and is the tourth and worst disorder of a State. I do not know, do your of any other constitution which can be said to have a dis-
There arc lordships and prinarc bought and sold, and some other intermediate tonus ot go\crnmcnt. But these arc nondescripts and may be found tinct character.
ami now that aided,
which we digressed,
let
that
this division of
us find the point at
we may
return into
path.
'.I
you imyou had finished the d( icription of the State: you said that such a ami that the mar. was good State v.
There
no
is
1
lellencsand
Yes. he replied,
laid;
1
among
Squall)
Slate.
True,
which
cipalities
difficulty in returning;
now,
plied, then as
that
:
who answered
it, although, / $jj] as now morcexcellent things to relate
to
U hail
and man. And you said further, was the true iorm. then the others 'lie lalse lorms, vou said, as remember, that there were tour principal Ones, and that their defects, and the delects of the individuals corresponding to them, were worth examining. When we had seen all the individuals, and finally agreed as to who was the best ami who was the worst of them, we were to consider whether the best was not also the happiest, and the worst the most asked you what were the four forms miserable. oi government ot which you spoke, and then Polemarchus and Adeimantus put in their word; ami you began again, and have found your way to the point at which we have now lx>th of Suite
this
I
I
;
grow out Then it the
they
human
of
then. 1
the dispositions ot individual
be
I
will,
I
what were four constitutions of which you were speakshall particularly
1
the
wish
to hear
in-.
'That question, said, is easily answered: the tour governments of which I spoke, so far I
as the) ot
have
distinct
names,
are, first, those
Crete and Sparta, which are generally ap-
plauded; what is termed oligarchy comes next; this is not equally approved, and is a form of government which teems with evils: thirdly,
live.
will also
ii\
I
we
to aristocracy, and whom and good. [5J5] we have
who answers
lim
rightly call just
already described.
We
have.
Then
let
now
us
proceed to describe the inbeing the contentious and answer to the Spartan polity:
ferior sort of natures,
ambitious,
who
also the oligarchical, democratical. nical.
and
tyran-
Let us place the most just by the side of
and when we see them wc compare the relative happiness
the most unjust,
him who leads a life of pure pure injustice. The enquiry will then be completed. And we shall know whether we ought to pursue injustice, as Thrasymachus advises, or in accordance with the conclusions justice or
argument
to prefer justice.
Shall
we
we must do
you
say.
follow our old plan, which
we
Certainly, he replied,
said.
minds
Certainly.
of the
can,
characters.
constitutions of States arc
or unhappiness of
il
main
1
Your recollection, I said, is most exact. 'Hun, like a wrestler, he replied, you must put yourself again in the same position; and let me ask the same questions, aw^\ do vou give me the- same answer which you were about to .
barbarians.
forms of government which exist among them. )o you know, I said, that governments \ar\ as the dispositions ot men vary, and that there must be as many of the one as there are ol the other For we cannot suppose that States are made ot "oak and rock," and not out ot the human natures which are in them, and which in a figure turn the scale and draw other things alter them.1 Yes, he said, the States are as the men are;
shall be able to
me
among
certainly hear of
curious
arrived.
give
we
adopted with
as
view to clearness, of taking the State hrst and then proceeding to the individual, and begin with the government of honour? I know of no name for such a government other than t imocracy, or perhaps timarchy. We will compare with this the like character a
—
in the individual; and, after that, consider oli-
garchical
man; and then again we will turn to democracy and the democrat-
our attention
/
1
MM REPUBLK man; ind
k.i! i
ir\
we
lastly,
tvill
go ind view the
tyranny, ind once more take
.'i
ind
the iyrant*i soul,
t
r \
srrrve
t.«
h-'k into
.1
11
1
VIII
not! added (4) w hen I
lati
1
w.i\
li.H
mattei w
ill
of
I
and
iin;
urr
honoui vernmenl ol tip
lent ol
)
ai ises
hut
•
out
overning power, government united, howevci imall, cannot be
the ii
mo> way, then,
In wli.u
will
our
city
mi
•
?
1
it
.1
e to he vein, mak low would they address qs?
V'er
this
last
And
plants that
animals that
and
which
is
.1
yours will not
tility
(
tl
).
than the prr
ludes the fractioi
pn
fa
k |uares
t
and
:
I
.1
ol
ii
r.u
constitution such .is tor ever, hut will in time he
this
.1
is
the
dissolution:
— In
grow in the earth, as well as in move on the earth's surface, fer-
sterility of soul
and body occur when
oi
1
which
birth
is
comprehended
in a
number
by involution and evolution [or squared and cubed] obtaining three intervals and four terms of like and unlike, waxing and waning numbers, make all the terms commensurable and agreeable to one hrst increments
iquarc
dtamet
bii
••'
h
1
50
five
50=
|
thi
ol
MOW
this nuiii-
.1
when your guardians
int
ai
I
r
the law
ol
and mute bride and bridegroom out
ol
births,
ot
season, the children will not he goodly
fortunate.
And though
only the best
he appointed hv their
unworthy
>>r
them
ol
rs.
still
to hold their fathers
1
places, .ind when they come into power as guardians, they will soon he found to fail in taking care- ot us, the Muses. Iirst by u: valuing music; which neglect will soon extend
gymnastic: and hence thcyoung
to
men
of your
State will he less cultivated. In the succeeding
generation rulers will be appointed lost
the guardian
power
who
have
of testing the metal
of your dilTerent races, which, like Hesiod's,
And
human
is
j
geometru al 6gure n h h control over the good and evil ol births.
are ot gold
1
ir.
ional
which hundred ubes
represents
completed, which in short-lived existences pass over a short space, and in long-lived ones over a long space. But to the knowledge of human fecundity .md sterility all the wisdom and education oi your rulers will not attain; the laws which regulate them will not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense, but will escape them, and they will bring children into the world when they ought not. Now that which is of divine birth has a period which is contained in a perfect number, but the period in
tions
in.
the circumferences of the circles of each are
of
.1.
inn:.
ich of thci
one
\
•
they will be city
'
I
will
?
hardly be shaken; hut, everything which has beginning
has also an end, even solved.
earnesl
cm
thus constituted th.it
manner:— A
in
hui
•
diai
w
iliaries
seeing
rational tr
be moved,
li.it manner will the two J.isscs ol tux and rulers disagree among themselves th one .mother Shall we, after the man* nej ol lomer, pra) the Muses to tell us "how discord first arose?*' Shall we imagine them in solemn mockery, to play and jest With us .is we were children, and to address us m lofty
and
11
iniiidrr d
iquarc the side
true, he said.
I
h
1
equal
!e is a mixture of good and evil. Why. there is a mixture, I said; but one thing, and one thing only, is predominantly seen it of contention and ambition; and these
due
to the prevalence of the passionate or
Assuredly, he said. is the origin and such the character of lie. which has been described in outline
Such
more
was not reenough to show the type of the most perfectly just and most perfectly unjust; and to go through all the States and all the characters of men, omitting none of them, would be an interminable labour. Very true, he replied. Now what man answers to this form of government how did he come into bein what is he like.' only; the
perfect execution
quired, for a sketch
is
—
I
True, Hut in the fear of admitting philosophers to power, because they are no longer to be had simple and earnest, but are made up of mixed
ot
they arc miserly because they have no
spirited element.
has been made,
some
is
And
are
aristocra
Ver\ true.
Such
That
\
think, said Adeimantus, that in the spirit
of contention
which characterises him. he
unlike our friend Glaucon. Perhaps. I said, he may be like
him
is
not
in that
one point; but there are other respects in which he is very different. In what respects ; He should have more of self-assertion and be
and yet a friend of culture; [549] and he should be a good listener, but no speaker. Such a person is apt to be rough with slaves, unlike the educated man, who is too proud for that; and he will also be courteous to freemen. and remarkably obedient to authority; he is a lover of power and a lover of honour; claiming to be a ruler, not because he is eloquent, or on any ground of that sort, but because he is a soldier and has performed feats of arms; he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the less cultivated,
chase.
Yes, that is the type of character which answers to timocracy. Such an one will despise riches only when he
.
and more Mtnu h d i\ .ii
1
m,
ihr
1 »
IOUI ii.itiue
iv
minded towardi
w
\\r
I
I
l
I
\|
e at war with himself; he will be two men. and not one: but. m general, his better desires will l>c round to prevail monly has to
.
ova
Yet, often.
exist in
sjk-ikI
And
still they remain in the city; there they ready to sting and fully armed, and some ot them owe money, some ha\e forfeited their citizenship; a third (.lass arc in both predicaments; and they hate and conspire against those
who have got their pro]
his inferior ones.
body
True. these reasons llich An one will be more ;>lc; \ct the true vir-
That ( ):i
.
unanimous and harmonious soul iy and nc.cr come near him.
i
1
mid
sh
surelv,
the miser
an ignoble competitor
will be
•
indi\idually
in a State lor
any
:hcr object ot honourable end his money in the
awakening and inviting them to
so afraid
contest
help and join
in the
is
he
ot
Struggle; in true oligarchi-
fashion he rights with a small part only ot ad the result commonly is that
cal
CS the
prize and sa\ cs his
money,
cal State
;
There can be no doubt. comes democracy; of •
this the
originand
nature have still to be considered by us: And then we will enquire into the ways of the democratic man, and bring him up for judgment.
That, he laid, is our method. Well. saiil. and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy arise? Is it not on this
men
of business,
sting
their
— that
is,
— into
money
their
one else who is not on his guard against them, and recover the parent sum many times over multiplied into a family of children; and so they
make drone and pauper
to
abound
in
the Stale. certain.
is
he
'1
them
said, there arc plenty ot
[556/ Yes. he
— that
up
evil blazes
not extinguish
own
it,
like a tire;
and
the
either by restrict, ng a
man's
property, or by another remedy:
What other? One which is
the next best, and has the advantage ot compelling the citizens to look to their characters: Let there be a general rule that every one shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk, and there will be less of this scandalous money-making, and the evils of which we were speaking will be greatly
—
lessened in the State.
Yes, they will be greatly lessened.
Wh.it then?
At present the governors, induced by the motives which I have named, treat their sublets badly: while they and their adherents, especially the young men of the governing class, are habituated to lead a life of luxury and idleness both of body and mind: they do nothing, and
The
are
I
wise?—The good to
true.
is
,e
ry true.
ser
iost every-
are eager lor revolution.
the other hand, the
use of his
we am longer doubt, then, that the miand money-maker answers to the oligarchi-
and
Stooping as they walk, and pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined, insert
I
And
/ 55 5 /
will
else,
become
at
which such
aims
is
which
is
a State
as rich as possible, a desire
ible?
being aware that their power law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth because they gam by their ruin; they take interest from them and buy up their estates And thus increase their own wealth and importance: rulers,
upon
rests
To
their wealth, refuse to curtail by
incapable of resisting either pleasure or
pain.
Very
true.
They themselves ey,
and are
care only for
as indifferent as the
be sure.
Yes, quite as indifferent.
on
garded.
or fellow-sailors; aye
And
is
tolerably dear.
in oligarchic
from the general spread ot carelessness and extravagance, men d family ha\e often been reduced to ary?
to the
cultivation of virtue.
There can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit of moderation cannot exist together in citizens ot the same State to anv considerable extent; one or the other will be disre-
That
making monpauper
Such
is
the state of affairs
which
prevails
among them. And often rulers and their subjects may come in one another's way, whether pilgrimage or a march, as fellow-soldiers and they may observe the behaviour of each other in the very moment of a
danger
—
for
where danger
is.
there
is
no
that the poor will be despised by the rich
very likely the wiry sunburnt poor
placed in battle
at
fear
—and
man may be who
the side of a wealthy one
'
i
II
i
unci
has
.[Hilt his
complexion
puffing ami tii
tu.
ich
Kii
11
i
lusion
i
one has
only rich because no \
lc
tli.»t
when
I
men like the com
lid,
Ik tlrr
w hu h to
in
bin
in
tin quit
thai
tins
is
.»
ttiofl 1
in
in
the
i
ommotion may
ti
tame way wherevei there
IMSS in the State their
is
isew ii
md
allies,
falls lit k, sod is ai war with and may be at times distracted, even when there is do external cause.
then the State
hers
Yes,
mi
Ami
then democracy comes into being aftconquered their opponents,
the poor have
er,
I
t
Clearly, he said.
and is not freedom and frankness a man do what he likes ;
In the first place, are they not tree;
—
the city full of
may '
say -\nd
Tis said
so,
he replied.
And where freedom
is,
individual
the
is
his
in.id.-
'
|
,iiii;
&
Ins
lc will
nut
l>'* which the) pri,ri\r I" l>e void »«t .ill accomplishment! and fail purtuiti and nuc words, which make thcii abode in thr minds ol men who are dcai to the gods, and are
At
\oiiu.;
VIII mi.
KHil,
livt
'•
none
them
< Rn tti them w ill lie rccju
AihI the .
i
the
ith
lc\
accord,
.aid -.mils
1
I
Ik
\\
ii
n
more drones,
low Jo you mean?
He
will rob the citizens ol their slaves; he then set them tree and enrol them in his guard. I'o be sure Ik- said; .nul he will be able to
will
What
theii
out
n putation
i
i
to
th(
u
1
maintain
will
oi
son and from evei \ land. ^ ea, he said, there .nc lUu will he not desire to gel them on the
them
mon
th
t
mrd being drawn towardi thr painful and ihmk thr pain which th
iiilcf
thr
pleasure
is
in
t!
thr
compariaoo «»i what in painful, comparison ol uli.it in pleasant; tcntaiions, when used l»s the
t
•mi and
and not
Far purer, he replied, is the being of that is concerned with the invariable. And does the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge in the same degree as of
which
essence? Yes, of
And
knowledge
of truth in the
in the same degree. same degree 5
Yes.
And, conversely, will also
have
that
less of
which has
less of truth
essence?
Necessarily.
Then, in general, those kinds of things which are in the service of the body have less of truth and essence than those which are in
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
424 the service of the soul
3
envious and ambitious, or violent and conand discontented, if he be seeking to attain honour and victory and the satisfaction of his anger without reason or is
tentious, or angry
less.
nor the body
h.is
itself less
and
of truth
essence than the tool?
3
sense
with more more real existence, is more really than that which is filled with less real
What
is
filled
actually has a lilled
HCC and (
)f
is
less real
3
if
there he a pleasure in being tilled with
which is according to nature, that which is more really filled with more real being will more really and truly enjoy true pit whereas that which participates in less real being will he less truly and surclv satisfied, and will participate in an illusory and less real 3
questionably.
Those then who know not wisdom and virtue, and are always busy with gluttony and sensuality. gO down and up again as lar as the mean; and in this region they move at random throughout life, but they never pass into the true upper world; thither they neither look, nor do they e\er find their way, neither are they truly lilled with true being, nor do they taste of pure and abiding pleasure. Like cattle, with their eyes always looking down and their heads stooping to the earth, that is, to the dining table, they fatten and feed and breed, mu\, in their excessive love of these delights, they kick and butt at one another with horns and hoofs which are made of iron; and they kill one another by reason of their insatiable lust.
For they
not
substantial,
which they
fill
fill
themselves with that which is and the part of themselves is
also unsubstantial
and
Exactly.
But when either of the two other principles prevails,
you describe
life ol the many like an oracle. Their pleasures are mixed with pains how can they be otherwise 3 For they are mere shadows and pictures of the true, and are coloured by contrast, which exaggerates both light mu\ shade, and so they implant in the minds of
—
tools insane desires ot themselves;
and they are
fought about as Steskhorus says that the Greeks ought about the shadow of Helen at Troy in ignorance of the truth. I
ot
that
not
the
must
sort
inevitably
happen.
And must
fails in
attaining
its
own
pleasure,
own? True.
And the greater the interval which separates them from philosophy and reason, the more strange and illusive will be the pleasure. 3
Yes.
And at
is
not that farthest from reason which
the greatest distance
is
from law and order 3
Clearly.
in-
the
Something
it
and compels the rest to pursue after a pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their
And
Verily, Socrates, said Glaucon,
like
happen with the
spirited or passionate element of the soul p. i-
they seek
under the guidance and in the company oi reason and knowledge, and pursue after and win the pleasures which wisdom shows them, will also have the truest pleasures in the highest degree which is attainable to them, inasmuch as they follow truth; and they will have the pleasures which are natural to them, if that which is best for each one is also most natural to him.3 Yes, certainly; the best is the most natural. And when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle, and there is no division, the several parts are just, and do each of them their own business, [587] and enjoy severally the best and truest pleasures of which they are capable.3
continent.
not the
money and honour, when
their pleasures
that
pleasure
spirited
lovers of
course.
And
he said, the same will happen with the element also. Then may we not confidently assert that the
And
real existence.
\\.\n
who
3
Will
carries his pas-
sion into action, be in the like case,
whether he
as
we
the lustful and tyrannical desires are, saw, at the greatest distance.3
Yes.
And
the royal and orderly desires are near-
est?
Yes.
Then
the tyrant
wii-1 live at
the greatest dis-
tance from true or natural pleasure, and the
king
at the least?
Certainly.
But antly,
if so, the tyrant will live most unpleasand the king most pleasantly?
Inevitably.
Would you know the measure of the interval which separates them? Will you tell me? There appear to be three pleasures, one genuine and two spurious: now the transgression
I
1
I
R
I
I'
I
111
I
I
poini beyond the in the tyrant reaches oui; he hai run away trom the region nl la*
oi
I
I
the
.1
which brought us
Is
and taken up Ins abode with ind w hu h an
.m.l reason,
injustu
1!
hit!
1
tain \\a\c pleasures
the
measure
!
I
h>u do
can onl)
his inferiority
oi
bi
quality
JTOll inr.i
.issiimr,
n
s.iul. ih.»t
1
the tyrant
oligarch; the
the-
is
in
demo*
the third
rai
was
on
little
is
have there
it
truth in wh.n
is-
h.is
v.
ith
!
his
1
1
like
.in
image
thrice
of the
pre
wedded loan image ol pleasure whii h removed as to truth From the- pleasure
nl, like thi
He will. since
we count
\ es,
he
is
.is
tures
third
is
by
the space oi
is
removed trom true pleas number which is three
.i
Manifestly.
plane figure. Certainly.
the
is
power ami make
raise the
plane a solid, there ted
or
more
difl
are said to have been SUi h unions.
main
ot he. ids ot all is
r
and
multi a
md
I
able to generate
.1
1
ring wild,
.
at will,
The shadow then ot tyrantiie.il pleasure determined by the number oi length will b
you
two
tn :;r«>w into one.
Then do you now model the or: of tudinous, many beaded monster, having which he
times thre
if
others in which
iui
and then
us.
r
t
the t\r.ini
And
S^ vll.i
1
truth, and can doall things because he light-
U touches on part
.111
1
small part ol them, and that
image. For example:
A
painter will
paint a cobbler, carpenter, or any other artist,
though he knows nothing I
artist,
he
may
oi their arts;
and, 1! deceive children or
simple persons, when he shows them his picture ol a carpenter Erom a distance, and they ancy that they are looking at a real carpenter.
And whenever any one informs us that he has found a man who knows all the arts, and things else that anybody knows, and every
single thing with a higher degree ot accuracy
—
than any other man whoever tells us this, I think that we can only imagine him to be a simple creature who is likely to have been deceived by some wizard or actor whom he met, and whom he thought all-know ing, because he himselt was unable to analyse the nature of knowledge and ignorance and imitation.
Most
true.
And
so,
when we
hear persons saying that
and Homer, who is at their head, know all the arts and all things human, virtue as well as vice, and divine things too, for that the good poet cannot compose well unless he knows his subject, and that he who has not this knowledge can never be a poet, we ought to consider whether here also there may not be a similar illusion. Perhaps they may have come across imitators and been deceived by them;
the tragedians,
•' 1
m
it ion,
i" the
he
iih,
man
said,
should by
n«'u
make
suppose that
the
v, and could >ut ni\ km. v.
the
I
i
I
•
works
1
ben about the imitatoi would likr w hat about he- patnl t.> know whethei he ma) be thought to imitate tli.K which original!) exist! in natun 01 onl) I
I
!
-
we
1.
;ht to
know
respecting mili-
tary tactics, politics, education, chiefest
and noblest subjects
which are the and
of his poems,
WC may fairly ask him about them. "Friend Homer," then we say to him, "if you are only in remove from truth in what you say and not in the third not an image maker or imitator and if you are able to discern what pursuits make men better or worse in private or public life, tell us what State was ever better governed by your help 3 The good order of Lacedaemon is due to Lycurgus, and many other cities great and small have been the second
of virtue,
—
—
similarly benefited by others; but
who
says that
you have been a good legislator to them and have done them any good? Italy and Sicily boast of Charondas, and there is Solon who is renowned among us; but what city has anything to say about your" Is there any city which he might name 3 think not. said Glaucon; not even the Homerids themselves pretend that he was a legisI
lator.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
450
[boo] Well, hut is there anv war on record which was carried on successfully by him, or aided h\ his counsels, when he was al: (
)r is
there an\ invention of his, applicable to human life, such as Thales the
the arts or to
Milesian or Anacharsis the Scythian, and other OUl men have conceived, which is attributed to
There
is
him? absolutely nothing of the kind. never did any public service, :
privately a
he
with him. an
guide or teacheroi an)
who loved to ami who handed down to
In his lifetime friends
I
lomerk waj
b\ Pythagoras
ot life,
f
1
lad
associate posterity
such as was established
who was
so greatly beloved tor
md
whose followers are to this day mute celebrated tor the order which was named after him? Nothing of the kind is recorded of him. For rcophylus, the companion of Slirely, Socrates, [omer, that child ot tlesh, whose name always makes us la Ugh, might be more justly ridiculed lor his stupidity, if, as is said, I lomer was greatly neglected by him and others in his own day when he was alive sdom,
(
I
;
es. replied, that is the tradition. But can you imagine, ( rlaucon, that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator—can you imagine, I say, that he would not have had many followers, and been honoured and loved by them? Protagoras ot Abdera. and Prodicus of Ceos, and a host of others, have only to whisper to their contempo1
raries:
I
"You
will never be able to
manage
ei-
own
house or your own State until \ou appoint us to be your ministers of educaand this ingenious device of theirs has such an effect in making men love them that their companions all but carry them about on ther your
And
their shoulders.
conceivable that the lomer, or again of Hesiod, is it
like.
poet
[6oi] but the truth they never reach ? The is like a painter who, as we have already
observed, will
speaks very well
been as unwilling to part with them as with gold, and have compelled them to stay at home with them? ( >r. it the master would not stay, then the disciples would have followed him about everywhere, until they had got education
enough? its. Socrates, that.
Then must we
I
think,
not infer that
is
quite true.
all
these poetical
individuals, beginning with Homer, are only imitators. th< copj images of virtue and the J
is
the sweet influence
which were never really and now the bloom of youth has passed away from them : are like faces
beautiful, but only blooming;
Exactly.
Here is another point: The imitator or maker of the image knows nothing of true existence: he knows appearances only. Am I not ris^ht Yes.
Then
let
us have a clear understanding, and
not be satisfied with half an explanation.
Proceed.
Of
the painter
and he
we
say that he will
pamt
reins,
will paint a bit?
Yes.
And
the
worker
in leather
and brass
will
make them? Certainly.
But does the painter know the right form of and reins 3 Nay, hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them: only the horseman who knows how to use them he
knows
thev not have
— such
Yes, he said.
They
make mankind
Would
likeness of a cobbler
prose.
the bit
:
a
which melody and rhythm by nature have. And think that you must have observed again I and again what a poor appearance the tales of poets make when stripped of the colours which music puts upon them, and recited in simple
contemporaries ot 1 would have allowed either of them to go about as rhapsodists, it they had really been able to virtuous
make
though he understands nothing of cobbling; and his picture is good enough for those who know no more than he does, and judge only by colours and hgures. Quite so. In like manner the poet with his words and phrases may be said to lay on the colours of the ral arts, himself understanding their nature only enough to imitate them: and other people, who are as ignorant as he is, and judge only from his words, imagine that if he speaks of cobbling, or of military tactics, or of anything else, in metre and harmony and rhythm, he
—
Most
their right form. true.
And may we What
not say the same of
all
things?
2
That there are three arts which are concerned with all things: one which uses, another which makes, a third which imitates them 3 Yes.
And
the excellence or beauty or truth of every
structure,
action of
animate or inanimate, and of even is relative to the use for which
man,
1
1
111!
I'll
|:l
1
What
the irtist Imn intended ih
ii.iiiur ot
431
I
01
d
r
i|ti.tlities
I
w hu
to llir
make which i
i»>
ol
I
his flutes
.
therefore speaks* ithau
thorit) about the goodness and
while the other, confiding he in told In him?
in
badness o! flutes, him, w ill do n hat
the water,
>
and this he will gain from him who knows. In talking to him and being compelled to hear what he has to whereas the user will have know lev. tain to I correct belief;
True. Bui will the imitator have either? Will heknow- from use whether or no his drawing is correct or beautiful or will he have right opinion from being compelled to associate w ith .in:
who knows and
gives
him
instructions
about what be should draw?
o
the illusion sboui
Neither.
hewill no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge about the goodness or badness of his imitations?
suppose not. imitative artist will be in a brilliant state
of intelligence about his
much
Nay, very
own
creations?
the reverse.
he will go on imitating without a thing good or bad, and Day be expected therefore to imitate onlv that which appears to be good to the ignorant multitude? still
knowing what makes
liable,
is
I
ii|>on us like ui.igu
t
«
I
*
i
«.
I»
I
.
.
I
And the .iris ot u.isurmg .md numbering and weighing on c to the resCUC »kr
lu\
he
II
tl
and we are
ready to acknowledge that Homer is the greatest of poets and first of tragedy writers; but we must remain firm in our conviction that hymns to the gods and praises of famous men are the only poetrv which ought to be admitted into
our State. For
if
you go beyond
this
and allow
DIALOG
434
to enter, either in epic or
muse
the honeyed
OF PLATO
I
m and the reason ot mankind, which by
deemed
m
rulers '1
content ha\c c\cr been and pain will be the
common
best, but pleasure
bat
is
inosi true, he said.
we nave
since
all
reverted to the sub-
our defence sen e to show the reasonableness ol our former judgment in lending awa) out ot our State an art having the tendencies which we have described: lor reason constrained us. Hut that she may not impute to us anv harshness or want oi politeness, let us tell her that there is an ancient quaroctrv,
|
rel
this
let
between philosophy and poetry;
there are
ot
which
main proofs, such as the saying bound howling at her lord," or
'ping
tight} in the vain talk ol tools."
mob
sages circumventing Zeus,"
ot
who
"subtle thinkers
mutation, that
ii
she will only prove her shall
—
I
dare say, Glaucon, that you
much charmed by
her as I am, especially lomer? Yes. Indeed, am greatly charmed. Shall propose, then, that she be allowed to return trom exile, but upon this condition only
when
she appears in
I
I
I
— that she make
a
defence of herself in lyrical
some other metre?
or
on her them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to States and to human life, and we will listen in a kindly spirit; for if this poets the permission to speak in prose let
can be proved I
mean,
it
which
is
within him. should
her seductions and
:ist
on
l>e
his
we
there
is
be the gainers a use in poetry as well as a
shall surely
delight
we shall be the gainers. her defence fails, then, my dear friend, like other persons who are enamoured of someCertainly, he said,
Ii
thing, but puts restraint
upon themselves when
they think their desires are opposed to their inteiesiv, so too must we after the manner of lovers give her up,
guard
make our words
his
law. .
Yes,
he said.
I
my
said,
I
quite agree with you. dear ( ilaucon. ior great
is
the
whether a what will any
issue at stake, greater than appears,
tue
is
to be
good or bad. And
;
Yes, he said;
argument, have been.
And
as
I
I
have been convinced by the one else would
believe that any
no mention has been made of the and rewards which await virtue. What. are there any greater still : If there are, they must be of an inconceivable greatness. Why, I said, what was ever great in a short time? The whole period ot three score years and ten is surely but a little thing in comparison yet
greatest prizes
with eternity? Say rather "nothing," he replied. And should an immortal being seriously think of this little space rather than of the the whole, certainly. But why do you ask Are you not aware, I said, that the soul or man is immortal and imperishable? He looked at me in astonishment, and said: No, by heaven: And are you really prepared to
Of
And we may further grant to those of her defenders who are lovers of poetry and yet not :
and he who
listens to her, tearing 'or the safety of the city
whole?
Certainly.
behalf
not to be regarded
man
be we arc \ery conscious delighted to receive her ot her charms; but we may not on that account betray the truth.
is
one be profited if under the influence of honour or money or power, aye, or under the excitement of poetry, he neglect justice and vir-
and "the and the
we
described
seriously as attaining to the truth;
of
are beggars after all";
well ordered State
title to exist in a
wc have
such as
of
and there are innumerable other signs of ancient enmity l>etween them. Notwithstanding this, let us assure our sweet triend and the sister arts oi
we may not
fall away into the childwhich captivates the many. At events we arc well aware that poetry being
strains: that
ish love ot her
our Slate.
And now
unable to make good her defence, this arguot ours shall be a charm to us, which we will repeat to ourselves while we listen to her is
ment
though not without
a strugule.
We too are inspired bv that love of poetry which the education oi noble States has implanted in us, [6oS j and theretore we would have her ap-
pear at her best and truest; but so long as she
:
maintain this? Yes, is
no
I
said,
I
ought to be, and you too proving it.
—there
difficulty in
I see a great difficulty; but I should like to hear you state this argument of which you
make
so light.
Listen then. I
am
attending.
There is a thing which you other which you call evil?
call
good and an-
Yes, he replied.
Would you
agree with me in thinking that and destroying element is evil, and the saving and improving element the
the corrupting
good ? [6o 9 ] Yes.
1
II
I
\i.ti
r\n
iditnl th.it
\
hthulmia
.
R
I
!
in
i
he-
e\
il
nt. as the
wh
ii
fifth,
w
hi
if
Tim. Certainly, and we
will
do
all
that
we
can; having been handsomely entertained by
you yesterda y, those of us who remain should be only too glad to return your hospitality.
Tim. Certainly. And what did we
you remember what were the points required you to speak of which Tim. We remember some of them, and you will be here to remind us of anything which we irgotten: or rather, if we are not troubling you, will you briefly recapitulate the whole, and then the particulars will be more firmly fixed in our memories?
Soc. And being thus trained they were not to consider gold or silver or anything else to be their own private property; they were to be like
my
hired troops, receiving pay for keeping guard
how conyesterday's discourse was the State stituted and of what citizens composed it would
from those who were protected by them the pay was to be no more than would suffice for men of simple life; and they were to spend in
I
)o
'
I
To
be sure
I
will; the chief
theme of
—
seem likely to be most perfect. Tim. Yes. Socrates; and what you said of was very much to our mind. 1
we
fenders of the State.:
Anil
when we had given
to each
one that
particular art
which
was suited to his nature, we spoke of those who were intended to be our warriors, and said that they were to be guardians oi the city against attacks
—
common, and
fromw
to live together in the continual
which was
ithin as well as
from without 442
to be their sole
pursuit.
Tim. That was
whom we
employment .md
3
were proper for them? Tim. Very true.
also said.
Soc. Neither did
Fin:.
say of their education
Were they not to be trained in gymnastic, and music, and all other sorts of knowledge which
practice of virtue,
not begin by separating the husand the artisans from the class of de-
)id
bandmen
it
Soc.
we
torget the
women;
of
declared, that their natures should
be assimilated and brought into those of the men, and that
harmony with
common
pursuits
should be assigned to them both in time of war and in their ordinary life. Tim. That, again, was as you say. Soc. And what about the procreation of chil-
TIMA1 ili>
n?Oi
l.ii
to
rathei
«
ai in
thr pro)
»i
•
and
I
hil
common, to tlir intern thai no know hit own child, but thr\
in
to be in
ihould evei to imagine thai the) were
w
thin
1..
and
to be brothers eldci
those ol
a
5 \
WJU
.is
»>nc hunil)
ill
.
listers,
those
and the proposal
who were c4
in
mem-
ii
s.iY.
tad do you alto remember how, with a
.
u v
as far !
thai the
.is
u
c
could the beat
chid magistrates, male
and female, should contrive
secretly,
by the use
ertain lots. so toarrange the nuptial meeting,
bad oi either sex and the ^hh\ oi either might pair with their like; ami theft WBI to be m> quarrelling on this account, tor they would imagine that the union was a men ;t. and was to be attributed to the lot? remember. thai the
sr\
.
5
.
I
Aiul
children ed,/
ot"
youremember how we said thai the good parents were to
ro/andthechildrenoi the
In-
the
educat-
hail teeretlycha*
persed among the interior citizens; ami while thev were all growing up the rulers were to be
on the look-out, and
to
bring up from below in
who were worthy, and those among themselves who were unworthy were to take the places ot those who came op? their turn those
Tim. True. Then have I now given you all the heads ot our yesterday's discussion : Or is there anything more, my dear Timaeus, which has been Soc.
,
omitted? Tim. Nothing, Socrates; it was just as you have said. Soc. I should like, before proceeding further, to tell you how I feel about the State which we have described. I might compare myself to a person who. on beholding beautiful animals either created by the painter's art, or, better still, alive but at rest, is seized with a desire of seeing them in motion or engaged in gle or eontiict to
which
their
ii"
arc
some strug-
forms appear
suit-
thrni
,
thr
th.it
.
and
I
;
thai
nr\ond it
Ivrrn
litr in
while th.U
broughi up;
education he finds hard tocarrj out
in action,
and
m
haroV
stil!
thin thr
in Ian-
Sophi nty ot brave wordsand fair conceits, but I am afraid th.u being onrj wanderers rrotn one u\ to anI
i
I
i
other,
and
h.r.
ei
had babttationsol their
own, thc\ may fail in theirconception c4 philosophen and statesmen, and may no< know w hat they .ire they do and s.i\ m tinv i
fighting or holding paiie) with their cnerrriea,
And
thus people-
who
remaining
\om
o!
are fitted
i
la-.s
In-
ate thr on U
Of
nature and ed
and Timaeus, 1 20 J ol Locris in Italy, a city which lias admirable laws>and who is himself in wealth and rank the equal oi of his fellow citizens; he has held the most important and honourable offices in his own state. tion to t.ike part at onCC both 10 politic*
philosophy.
and, as
I
I
lere
is
believe, has scaled the heights of all
philosophy; and here is Critias, whom e Athenian knows to be no novice in the matters of which we are speaking; and as to I lermocI am assured by many witnesses that his genius and education quality him to take part in any speculation of the kind. And therefore saw that you wanted me to yesterday when describe the formation of the State, I readily assented, being very well aware, that, il you on-
rates,
I
would, none were better qualified to cam when you had engaged our city in a suitable war, you of all ly
the discussion further, and that
men
living could best exhibit her playing a
ting part.
When
I
had completed
return imposed this other task
my
task,
fitI
in
upon you. You
conferred together and agreed to entertain me to-day, as I had entertained you, with a feast ot
|
is my feeling about the State which we have been describing. There are conflicts which all cities undergo, and I should like to hear some one tell of our own city carrying on a struggle against her neighbours, and how she went out to war in a becoming manner, and when at war showed by the greatness of her
ed: this
and the magnanimity of her words in dealing with other cities a result worthy of her training and education. Now I, Critias and Heractions
discourse.
man
Here am
I
in festive array,
and no
can be more ready for the promised ban-
quet.
Her.
And we
too, Socrates, as
wanting
Timaeus
says,
enthusiasm; and there is no excuse for not complying with your request. As soon as we arrived yesterday at the guest-chamber of Critias, with whom we are staying, or rather on our way thither, we talked the matter over, and he told us an ancient trawill not be
in
DIALOQ UE3 OF PLATO
444 dition,
which
I
w
ish, Critias, that
\ou would
rc-
may
help us to judge whether it will satisfy his requirements or not. will, if Timacus, who is our other ;. Socrates, so that he
jnrat to
most famous, but, through the lapse ot time and the destruction of the actors, it has not come
down
how and from whom
partner, approves. I quite approve. .:.
Then
listen. Socrates, to a talc
which,
though strange, iscertainlj true, having been attested, by Solon, who was the wisest oi the le was a relative and a dear triend oi m\ great-grandfather* Dropides, as he him* many passages o( his poems; ami he 1
.
i
mv
grandfather,
who
remembered and repeated it to us. There were oi old, he said, great and marvellous actions of the Athenian city, j 21 ] which ha\e passed mlivioo t' rough lapse oi time and the destruction oi mankind, and one in particular, greater than hearse.
It
all
we will now remonument of our hymn ot praise true and
the rest. This
will be a fitting
gratitude to you. and a worths oi the goddess, on this her day ol
lesti-
raL So*
Wry
.
good.
And what
this ancient fa-
is
action ol the Athenians,
mous
which
Critias
declared, on the authority oi Solon, to be not a
mere legend, but an actual
iaci
:
..'. I will tell an old-world story which I heard Erom an aged man; iorCritias,at the time '
oi telling
«i.-iil»i thai when !iu turn comes a little while hence, he will make the vuiic request which you have mad< In «'i 'i
I
may provide himscll with
dcr, then, thai he
and not the
tame
that the
lx-
compelli
.mi, let
thinj
indulgence
is
.1
i"
>l
him understand
And now, friend Critiaa, \ull you the judgment ol the theatre, opinion thai the last performei wonderfully successful, and thai you will leal oi indulgent e bciore you w ill
w.is
.ikt-
Ins place.
rhe warning, S«k rates, which you have addressed to him, must ,i!m> take to myself* Bui remember, Critias, thai [aim bean nevej yet raised a trophy; and therefore you must go and attack the argument likeman. invoke Apollo and the Musts, and then let us bear you sound the praises and show Eorth the \ irtues oi your ancient citizens, I
.1
1
.
Friend
I
[ermocrates, you,
who
arc sta-
and have .mother in trout oi you, have not lost bean as yet; the gravity oi the situation will soon be revealed to you; meanwhile accept your exhoitationsandencouragements. But besides the gods and goddesses whom you have mentioned, would specially invoke Mnemosyne; tor all the important part ot my discourse is dependent on her favour, and it i
names which
said that the pr.
war mentioned most of
arc recorded prior to the time
Theseus, nich as
£y^£ -%. e
We
to
favour of you.
What may
that her he said. w ant you to tell me the name of your halfbrother, which I have forgotten; he was a mere I
when
last came hither from Clazomewas a long time ago; his father's name, if remember rightly, was Pyrilampes? Yes, he said, and the name of our brother, Antiphon; but why do you ask? Let mc introduce some countrymen of mine, said; they are lovers of philosophy, and have heard that Antiphon was intimate with a certain Pythodorus, a friend of Zeno, and remembers a conversation which took place between Socrates, Zeno, and Parmenides many years
child
*.
c
[ I2j] Accordingly we went to look for him; he was at home, and in the act of giving a bridle to a smith to be fitted. When he had done with the smith, his brothers told him the purpose of our visit; and he saluted me as an acquaintance whom he remembered from my former visit, and we asked him to repeat the dialogue. At first he was not very willing, and complained of the trouble, but at length he consented. He told us that Pythodorus had described to him the appearance of Parmenides and Zeno; they came to Athens, as he said, at the great Panathenaea; the former was, at the time of his visit, about 65 years old, very white with age, but well favoured. Zeno was nearly 40 years of age, tall and fair to look upon; in the days of his youth he was reported to have been beloved by Parmenides. He said that they lodged with Pythodorus in the Ceramicus, outside the wall, whither Socrates, then a very young man, came to see them, and many others with him; they wanted to hear the writings of Zeno, which had been brought to Athens for the first time on the occasion of their visit. These Zeno himself read to them in the absence of Parmenides, and had very nearly finished when Pythodorus entered, and with him Parmenides and Aristoteles who was afterwards one of the Thirty, and heard the little that remained of the dialogue. Pythodorus had heard
had come from our home at ClaAthens, and met Adcimantus and in the Agora. Welcome, Cephalus, said Adcimantus, taking me hy the hand; is there anything which we can do for you in Athens? Yes; that is why I am here; I wish to ask a [126]
sup
hare been narrated in his presence by Antiphon, the half-brother of Adeimantus
and Glaucon,
zomenae Glaucon
is
I
nae, but that I
I
ago, Pythodorus having often recited
it to him. Quite true. And could we hear it? I asked. Nothing easier, he replied; when he was a youth he made a careful study of the piece; at present his thoughts run in another direction; like his grandfather Antiphon he is devoted to horses. But, if that is what you want, let us go and look for him; he dwells at Melita, which is quite near, and he has only just left us to go
Zeno repeat them
When
home.
requested that the
486
before.
the recitation
was completed, Socrates
first thesis
of the
first
argu-
PAR Ml NIDI mcnt might be read ovei
kgain,
and
I
it
must
Imtli like-
Ik-
impoatible,
t»>r
tt\r, h..\\
ihi
been done* he said ^ hai ii youi k> you maintain thai it being
and unlike, and
is
thai tins
ii
th. u
in
von
have you any otnei pur c\v ept to disprove the being ol the man) and is not eachdh isionoi \rnir treatise intended to Furnish i acparate prooi oi this, there being .is many proofs oi the not being ol the ill many as you nave composed arguments? Isth.u your meaning, or have misunderstood you? No, said Zeno; you have oos ret dy un/ ij^ vi\
?
I
derstood
my
see.
make
telling us
something which is new. For you, in your poems, The All is one, and of this you adduce exUTJ cellent proofs; and he on the other band UVS There is no many; and on behalf of this he offain
believe that be
is
overwhelming evidence. Vou
affirm unity,
he denies plurality. And so you deceive the world into believing that you are saving different things
when
same. This
most of
is
really
vou are saying much the beyond the reach of
a strain of art
But although you in pursuing the track, you do not fully apprehend the true motive of the composition, which is not really such an artificial work as you imagine; for what you speak of was an accident; there was no pretence of a great purpose: nor any serious intention 5fes,
"in
Socrates, said Zeno.
of deceiving the world.
••>
r
•.Mini,
omit
i
Bui
tell
thru
me,
lurthrr think
th.it
itselt,
and anochei
w Im
j i
h
r.
.'l\c
t
numb*
things thai have
.ill
come
t«>
first
mi., being; but
.ill
the middle,
an)
1..
Ik
I
om
came into being first mutl be have come into being prioi to the •
the other things will be younger than the one, and the one older than other ihn: True, Wh.it would you say oi .mother question? Can the one have come into being contrary to o\\
n nature, or
i.s
impossible?
th.it
Impossible.
Ami
yet, surely, the
and ami end? parts;
it
one was shown
parts, then
.1
have beginning, middle to
ill
.1
and
atter the beginning, the others follow, unyou reach the end?
Certainly.
And
all
we
these others
shall affirm to
be
whole and of the one, which, as soon as the end is reached, has become whole and one? Yes; that is what we shall say. But the end comes last, and the one is of such parts of the
a nature as to come into being with the last; and, since the one cannot come into being except in accordance with its own nature, its nait should come into being atter the others, simultaneously with the end.
ture will require that
Clearly.
Then
the one
is
younger than the others and
the others older than the one.
That
also
is
clear in
my
judgment, beginning or any other
Well, and must not a part of the one or of anything, if it be a part and not parts, being a part, be also of necessity one?
nature,
it
w
itself ill
does noi
be neitru
thr
ontra
1
•
1
rtainly.
1
Alter lh;s
come. Bui
iii.iiiner
then dlC OfM
If
-\ni
when
others
the
one would be
otl
qui ition.
!
end, ea< h Kparate partit
to itsell
! *
Terpsion. No, I came some time ago: and I have been in the Agora looking for you, and
wondering
and the dialogue
set
1/
the country. Terpsion
SockATE^: Thi tODOftus; Theaetetus. Euclid and Terpsion
:
—
greatly like to rest.
Euc.
I
too shall be very glad of a rest, for
I
went with Theaetetus as far as Erineum. Let us go in, then, and, while we are reposing, the servant shall read to us. Ti rp. Very good. Euc. Here is the roll, Terpsion; I may observe that I have introduced Socrates, not as narrating to me, but as actually conversing with the persons whom he mentioned these were. Theodorus the geometrician (of Cyrene), and Theaetetus. I have omitted, for the sake of convenience, the interlocutory words "I said," "I remarked," which he used when he spoke of himself, and again, "he agreed," or "dis-
—
512
'
1
Mil
iu lid.
I
boy, fou
,
take
th
«»
knowledge is, h.is oi makinj
know no knowledge iu»r
ol thr lint
\
m\
othei
No kn lOM
or
man
a
asked wh.it icn< e give in answei the- name
tn
in.
v
01
All
icik r
is
is
is, "What is know "A knowledge oi tins
question plies,
-..
i
i.lu LlloUS;
!
«
»
not
ill
or that.*'
son
wh.ti
is
dor us
is
is
it
in a recent discussion.
Is
Theaeti rheodorus was writing out tor us something about roots, such as the ro< three or five, showing that they are incommensurable by the unit: he selected other examples up to seventeen there he stopped. Now as
Soc.
kn
And
—
are
curred to
innumerable roots, the notion us ot attempting to include them
oc-
.
Theact. to
I
think that
we
did; but
I
should like
have your opinion. Soc. Let
me
Theact.
We
hear.
divided
all
those which are
numbers
made up
into
two
of equal fac-
multiplying into ne another, which we compared to square figures and called squ ire tors
s otherwise should think not. [150) Theaet. S Certainly not; but midwives are respectTheaet,
Soc.
.
And Ao you
:
I
.
able
women who
It
is
anything from me; the
many
fine discoveries
to
m
let
own.
ha\ c a character to lose,
and
I
see
them, to be great fools. Aristeides, the son is one of them, [151] and there
of Lysimachus, are
many
others.
The
truants often return to
-
r 1
I
mr,
md
Uv. id
th.it
thru,
.ilu.i\%
t
he-
I
v
thfflB
00
dim
.isr,
I
1
m\
who
I
I
ind
receive them, re
.nr the
WllO \\r
v
\
I
aod da) the) are which ii eveo the women. So much foi
and
travail
I
I
I
I
I
I
Ami
will ask vmi.
it
1
Ilich
I
the
enemy
of
man
— that was not within the
range of their ideas; neither am I their enemy in all this, but it would be wrong for me to admit falsehood, or to stifle the truth. Once more, then, Theaetetus,
"What
I
repeat
—
my
old question,
ami do not say that is knowledge?" you cannot tell; but quit yourself like a man, and by the help of God you will be able to tell. Theaet. At any rate, Socrates, after such an exhortation I should be ashamed of not trying to do my best. Now he who knows perceives what he knows, and, as far as I can see at present, knowledge is perception. Soc. Bravely said, boy; that
is
the
way
in
which you should express your opinion. And now, let us examine together this conception of yours, and see whether it is a true birth or a mere wind-egg: You say that knowledge is
—
:
perception.
Theaet. Yes.
you have delivered yourself of a important doctrine about knowledge; [152] it is indeed the opinion of Protagoras, Soc. Well,
very
th.it
-md in tnr you .md
Mil h
.in
•
!
Hon
to talk
\
us try to understand him: thr blow ing, ami yd one ol us ma) !* cold •
.i\ them int*» marrying lome our, ^.m generally tell od and by the- gn who in likely to *lo them good. Many ol them have given away t«> Prodicus, and man) to other inspired tell you this long story, suspect, .is indeed Friend Theaetetua, because \ou teem to think yourself, that you are in la hour greal with aome conception. Come then to me, who am i widwife'i son and myself i midwife, and ^\o your best to answer the questions
>!7
I
in
n n» oJ
1
familial illowt, whii h
able tO ITOUJB Ittd tO ilUy Id thl COntOrt With mr, piNt like thr pangs
.ui
tull
\l
1
would COMOTt With
m\
it
1
is
always of existence,
knowledge
is
unerring.;
Theaet. Clearly. Soc. In the name of the Graces, what an almighty wise man Protagoras must have been! le spoke these things in a parable to the common herd, like you and me, but told the truth, I
own disciples. What do you mean, Socrates am about to speak of a high argument, 1
his Truth, in secret to his
1
Theaet. Soc.
I
which
in
all
things are said to be relative; you
anything by any name, such heavy or light, for the great there is no will be small and the heavy light single thing or quality, but out of motion and change and admixture all things are becoming relatively to one another, which "becoming"' is by us incorrecdy called being, but is really becoming, for nothing ever is, but all things are becoming. Summon all philosophers Protagoras, Heracleitus, Empedocles, and the rest of them, one alter another, and with the exception of Parmenides they will agree with you in this. In allusion to a book of Protagoras' which bore
cannot rightly
call
as great or small,
—
—
1
this title.
OF PLATO
DIALOGI
518
Summon
the great masters of either kind of
poetry—Epicharmus, and
Homer
of
the prince oi
Tragedy; when the
Comedy,
latter sings
!krn like an "la,
I
my
r
:,.i
in ipj
I
IIKcd, but
tlIK,.|l\
I
ie
Mill
Hill
w
ill
VS ill
I
lr,
thrir .or
Ik-
with
can
all lh.it
j
known
Ik-
i\ I
iiiinJ, .in.
lie-
I
rcgulai spai ing mat< h have had nits ukJ would have knocked th hc-r finely. Bui you and I. who hive do i.il .inns, only desire to ice w hal is he mutual relation oi these prirx iplrs wheth .ur consiitem with each othei 01 not. .1
thr Irrlmg of ::is 111 \\
it
QUI oi thr luperfluity oi thru wits.
Id
you u nr
lid thai
about
t
i
th.it
would be my
the
lnld oi
i
\mi inn;> linCC this is out led and there is plent) oi time, n hy ihould we m>t calmly and patiently review our own thou ad thoroughly examine and what those- appearance! in us really arc I
am .is
not mistaken, they will be described by follows:—-first, thai nothing can become either in
-.
number
while remaining equal to agree
plcMty
or magnitude,
itsell
— you
would
oil
\\\
l!l
ills
no
this
i
|
V
is
all
OUI
:
in sup;
difficult)
I
tlth, -Hid
ussion M
ilisv
hei in
dream; ind w \\m
.1
in
.»
doubt about the
easily raised, lint t tht re
is
3
ulu.lr
ma)
doubt whethet we ire iw ike 01 In i .is ouj time is equally dn ided sleeping md waking, in eithei the s»»ul eontendi that the thoughts minds .»t the time ire lern to
•Iv, that
•
the) ire unlike.
i
i
An!
\:ui
i
*
»
1
1
and during one hall
true; tin-
»
oi
oui lives
we
half, oi the other;
.
i. lies
tad WOUld
ilei
Soil IK'
and are equally confident
should.
I
ol
true.
at
ordingl) as he
(
(
/.
.,
\nd
who
\ml m. iv not the tame lv said oi ni. i.l ind other disorders-' tin difference is only
v\
th.it
the tunes are not equal.
ferent in each oi the
cri.unlv.
1
Ami
s
is
truth or falsehood to
1h-
deter
ridicu-
cm
you certainly determine by other means which ot these opinions is art,
do not think
I
that
I
is made by the They would say, as
argument, which
side of the
champions
oi appearance.
—
imagine Can that which is wholly other I than something, have the same quality as that from which it differs? and observe, Theaetetus.
word "other" means not "partially/' but "wholly other." Theart. Certainly, putting the question as you do, that which is wholly other canthat the
,
not cither potentially or in any other
way be
the same.
And must
Soc.
therefore be admitted to be
:
Theaet, True. Soc.
If,
then, anything happens to
like or unlike itself or another,
—
become
when itbecomes
we call it the same when unlike, other. The act. Certainly. Soc. Were we not saying that there are agents many and infinite, and patients many like
;
infinite?
Theaet. Yes. Soc.
And
me
ill.
I
agent,
'. .md th.it produce something dif-
.im th
\\ ill
two
a
also that different
The wine which
drink
when am to me? I
combinations
in
True
Theaet. .
1
and pleasant
For, as has been already
acknowledged,
the patient .\nd agent meet together and produce- sweetness and a perception oi sweet:. are
m
simultaneous motion, and the per-
ception which comes from the patient
can.
Listen, then, to a statement of the other
S
unlike
.
which
true?
and
Sot
Sot
But
is
health, appears sweet
lous.
.lin
h
well or
Theaet. Certainly.
mined by duration oi time? ./. '1'h.it would he in many ways s
hit
is
cou
)t
ness
5
1
wak
.Hi.l
mention Theaet. Sot rates,
he
ping
affirm
both. I'
inly.
V»,
the one, and, during the o
troth oi
unlike, th
il
makes
and the quality ot sv. DCS* which arises out of ami is moving about the wine, makes the wine both to be and to
the tongue percipient,
appear sweet to the healthy tongue. 'I head. Certainly; that has been already
ac-
knowledged. Soc. But
when
upon another
I
am
sick, the
.ind a different
wine
really acts
person?
Theaet. Yes. Soc.
The combination
of
the
draught
ot
wine, and the Socrates who is sick, produces quite another result: which is the sensatio bitterness in the tongue, and the motion and creation of bitterness in and about the v which becomes not bitterness but something bitter; as I myself become not perception but percipient?
Theaet. True. Soc.
There
is
no other object of which
I
shall
ever have the same perception, / 160J for another object would give another perception,
.md would make the percipient other and different: nor can that object which affects me, meeting another subject, produce the same, or
DIALOG
ES
produce an-
similar, for that too will
become
l
other result from another subject, and become different.
Theaet. True. Neither can
Sot
by myself, have this sen-
I
.
sation,
nor the object by
Theaet.
itself, this
I
1
to
—
no one.
The .id. Certainly
Then
Soc.
not.
the inference
is,
we
that
[the agent
and patient) are or become in relation to one another; there is a law which binds us one to the other, but not to any other existence, nor each of us to himself; and therefore we can only be bound to one another; so that whether a person says that a thing is or becomes, he must say that it is or becomes to or of or in relation to something else; but he must not say or allow any one else to say that anything is or becomes absolutely: such is our conclusion. Theaet. Very true, Socrates. Soc. 1. nen, if that which acts upon me has and no other relation to me and to no other,
—
I
am
the percipient of
it?
T heart. Of course. Soc.
Then my
perception
is
my own myself am
ing inseparable from
Protagoras says, to is
and what Theaet. Soc.
nc\ er
t
suppose
I
rips in I
true to me, be-
being; and, as
judge of what
not to me.
is
Wow then, if
ing, can
ceive
I
of
I
knowing
that
which
I
per-
:
You cannot. Then you were quite
Theaet. Soc.
right in affirming
knowledge is only perception; and the meaning turns out to be the same, whether with lomer and leracleitus, and all that company, you say that all is motion and flux, or with the great sage Protagoras, that man is the measure
that
1
1
ot
all
things; or with Theaetetus, that, given
these premises, perception
is
not right, Theaetetus. and
is
knowledge.
Am
I
newhave delivered you? not this your
born child, of which I What say you? Theaet. cannot but agree, Socrates. I
Soc.
Then
this
is
the hearth
whether he is worth rearing, or is only a wind-egg and a sham. Is he to be reared in any case, and not exposed' or will you bear to see him reacted, and not get into a passion it take away your hrst-born Theod. Theaetetus will not be angry, for he is very good-natured. Hut tell me, Socrates, in heaven's name, is this, alter all, not the truth : S(h You, Theodorus. arc a lover ot theories, and now you innocently fancy that am a full ot them, and cm easily pull one out which will overthrow its predecessor. But you do not see that in reality none of these theories come from me; they all come from him who talks with me. only know just enough to extract them Irom the wisdom ot another, and to rcsec
.
1
I
ceive
them
in a spirit ot
tairncss.
And now
1
nothing myself, but shall endeavour to elicit something from our young friend. Theod. Do as you say, Socrates; you are quite shall say
right. I tell you, Theodorus, what amazes your acquaintance Protagoras 1 Theod. What is it ? Soc. I am charmed with his doctrine, that what appears is to each one, but I wonder that he did not begin his book on Truth with a declaration that a pig or a dog-faced baboon, or some other yet stranger monster which has sensation, is the measure of all things; then he might have shown a magnificent contempt for our opinion of him by informing us at the outset that while we were reverencing him like a God for his wisdom he was no better than a tadpole, not to speak of his fellow-men would not this have produced an overpowering effect ; For if truth is only sensation, and no man can discern another's feelings better than he, or has any superior right to determine whether his opinion is true or false, but each, as we have several times repeated, is to himself the sole judge, and everything that he judges is true and right, why, my friend, should Protagoras
Soc. Shall
me
in
—
so.
never err, and if my mind the conception of being or becom-
fail
we must run round
with him, and
I
When perceive must become percipisomething there can be po such thing as perceiving and perceiving nothing; the object, whether it become sweet, bitter, or ot any other quality, must have relation to a percipient; nothing cm become sweet which is sweet Soc.
ent of
born, [i(ji]
:
quality.
'ertainly not.
(
OF PLATO
the child,
however he may
turn out, which you and
I
brought into the world.
And now
have with
difficulty
that he
is
be preferred to the place of wisdom and instruc-
and deserve to be well paid, and we poor ignoramuses have to go to him, if each one is the measure of his own wisdom? Must he not be talking ad captandum in all this? I say nothing of the ridiculous predicament in which my own midwifery and the whole art of dialectic is placed; for the attempt to supervise or tion,
refute the notions or opinions of others would be a tedious and enormous piece of folly, [162] if to each man his own are right; and this must be the case if Protagoras' Truth is the real truth,
-
.
juv!
i
philosopher
he-
nmu
merely
not
m
himsell b
thr \lu
ol
\l
III
1
is
1
I
.
I
must look
\\r
th.it
lh
un til you had come to an understanding about the sum to be paid tor your release. Well, you .isk, and how will Protagoras reinforce his posi lorn,
I
tion? Shall x 1
answer tor him? By .til means. repeat
.ill
those things which
we
have been urging on his behalf, / r66 ] and then he will dose with us in disdain, and say: The worthy Socrates asked a little boy, whether the Same man could remember and not know the same thing, and the boy said No, because he was frightened, and could not see what was COmklg, and then Socrates made fun ol poor me. The truth is. O slatternly v that when you ask questions about any assertion ot' mine, and the person asked is found tripping, should have answered, if he has answered as then I am refuted, but if he answers something else, then he is refuted and not I. For do you really suppose that any one would admit the memory which a man has of an impression which has passed away to be the same with that which he experienced at the time? Assuredly not. Or would he hesitate to acknowledge
—
I
same man may know and not know the same thing? Or, if he is atraid of making this admission, would he ever grant that one who has become unlike is the same as before he became unlike? Or would he admit that a man is one at all, and not rather many and infinite as the changes which take place in him? I speak
that the
by the card in order to avoid entanglements of words. But, my good sir, he will say, come
O
to the
argument in if you
either show,
a
more generous
spirit;
and
can, that our sensations are
I
h
i
i
me Mini ma)
I*-
thot
.
t
the
H
bard ind
lighi
and iweet,
t
TheaeL It cannot. [ow about sounds and colours: placeyou would admit that they both
thai these, tin
is.
hut
mind.
b\
hei o\l n.
:
univeraali in
all
•
th.it
I
in the
them same with
cither of
.iml the
is
not
heodoru is
him
Ami a
betides being beautiful, you have doiv kindness in releasing
m
discussion,
and
I
In herself
wanted
Theaet,
I
\u
.in
I
should
Soc.
unlike,
mv own ith
am quite clear. And to which
opinion,
me,
class
would you
this, ol all
our
say, to that class
know
•
others through the
w.is
th.it
being or ess< iue; tor : the most universal Theaet.
I
•
.
is
thai the loul
you are clear
it
some things
different
itself?
llir
ontcmj
thin
n-rs the beautiful
re-
not:
which the
ot herself.
And would you
say this also ot
Liki
same and Other?
Theaet. Yes.
lertainly.
\iul that
is
soul aspires to
that
From the other,
ugly,
exist?
Yes.
I
notion
..ni\
fer
1
Ami
m\
bodilj org. ins. lor
arse not.
you have any thought about both ol them, this common perception cannot come to you, either through the one or the other organ? It
.'.
i .
-
not lUSpeCl the simple truth to
who
he
thai
lx-
le.irls
(
us. either in the
ind not being.
i
Mas WC
S
whi. h
nothin
someth
i
I
om
no
thinking that
we remove the question knowing or nol knowing,
thai
S
ol
:
Then
i
thinks
I
ii
I
eluded. n
who
1
opinion unknovt n,thei
dei this alternative,
out
is
Hun'.
t.iKr
do opinion which ii nol comprehended un and 10 false opinion
Ix-
h
1
isir.uis.
V
S
x
hi
.in
,
thinks, think
Soc. I see, Thcaetetus, that your fear has disappeared, and that you are beginning to despise
me.
T heart. What makes Soc.
You
think,
if
I
you say so?
am
not mistaken, that
from censure, and that I shall never ask whether there can be a swift which is slow, or a heavy which is light, or any other self-contradictory thing, which your "truly false"
is
safe
works, not according to its own nature, but according to that of its opposite. But I will not insist upon this, for I do not wish needlessly to discourage you. And so you are satisfied that false opinion is heterodoxy, or the thought of
something Theact. Soc. the
else? I
It
is
mind
to
am. possible then upon your view for conceive of one thing as another?
Theact. True.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
538
Soc. But must not the mind, or thinking power, which misplaces them, have a concep; tion either of both objects or of one ot thcm The Jet. Certainly.
Soc.
I
the soul
holds with herself in considering of anything. scarcely understand; [190] 1 speak oi what but the soul when thinking appears to me to 1
talking
JUS!
— asking
questions of herself
and answering them, affirming and denying.
And when
she has arrived
gradually or bj
1
decision, either
1
say, then, that to
is
at
torm an opin-
to speak,
is
Theaet. Sot
U
I
agree.
Then when any one
.
.mother, he
thing
is
is
thinks of one thing
saying to himself that one
is
to
certainly base, or the
—
have you ever attempted to convince yourself that one thing is another? Nay, not even in sleep, did you ever 111
1
list
1
just; or, best of all
venture to say to yourself that odd
is
even, or
an\ thing ot the kind?
Theaet. Never.
And do you
suppose that any other man, them, ever seriously tried to persuade himself that an ox is a horse, or that two are one? Theaet. Certainly not. Soc. But il thinking is talking to oneself, no one speaking and thinking of two objects, and apprehending them both in his soul, will say and think that the one is the other of them, and must add, that even you, lover of dispute as you are, had better let the word "other" alone [i.e., not insist that "one" and "other" are the 3 same]. I mean to say, that no one thinks the noble to be base, or anything of the kind. Soc.
either in his senses or out of
I
up the word "other," Socrates; and I agree to what you say. Soc. If a man has both of them in his thoughts, he cannot think that the one of them Theaet.
is
I
Soc
.
at all.
Then no one who
has either both or
mind can think that the one is the other. And therefore, he who maintains that lalse opinion is heien doxy is talking nonsense; lor neither in this, any more than in the previous way. can lalse opinion exist in us. Theaet. No. Soc. But if. Theaetetus, this is not admitted, we shall be driven into many absurdities. Theaet.
What
will give
the other? 1
Both words in Greek arc called erepov. menides, \.\~: Euthydemus, 301.
cf.
l\v-
arc they?
you
until I have endeavmatter irom every point of view. / igi j For I should be ashamed of us it we were driven in our perplexity to admit the absurd consequences ot which I speak. But
Soc.
oured
if
we
I
will not
tell
to consider the
find the solution,
and
get
away from
them, we may regard them only as the dithcuito us.
do you ever remember saying
yourself that the noble
thoughts
ties of others,
another?
Theaet. Yes. Soc. But
True; lor we should have to suppose apprehends that which is not in his
that he
called
and opinion is a word spoken, mean, to oneself and in silence, not aloud to another: What think you?
ion
or
at a
sudden impulse, and has
agreed, and does not doubt, this
her opinion.
—
a
the other.'
is
only one ot the two objects in his
Theaet.
last
one
he has one of them only in the other, can he think that
'Theaet.
Theaet. Very good. Soc. And do you mean by conceiving, the same which I mean?
What is that? mean the conversation which
if
mind and not
his
Either together or in succession.'
.
DC
Theaet. True. Soc. Neither,
On
and the
ridicule will not attach
the other hand,
ii
we
utterly fail,
I
we must
be humble, and allow the argument to trample us under foot, as the sea-sick passenger is trampled upon by the
suppose that
and to do anything to us. Listen, then, while I tell you how I hope to hnd a way out of our difficulty. Theaet. Let me hear. Soc. I think that we were wrong in denying that a man could think what he knew to be what he did not know; and that there is a wa\ in which such a deception is possible. Theaet. You mean to say. as I suspected at sailor,
may know Socrates, and at a some one who is unknown to me, mistake for him then the decep-
the time, that
distance see
and
whom
I
I
—
tion will occur?
Soc. But has not that position been relinquished by us, because involving the absurdity that we should know and not know the things
which we know? Theaet. True.
make the assertion in another form, which may or may not have a favourable issue; but as we are in a great strait, every argument should be turned over and tested. Tell me, then, whether I am right in saying that you may learn a thing which at one time you did not know.Theaet. Certainly you may. Soc. Let us
III
1
\l
II
I
I
the
would have you imagine, then, mind «>t man i blot k «>i
I
whu
li
different
in
IS
harder, moister, and having
mme
our thin mother, ind mediate qua!
porit) in intei
thai
01
M tin M
t
in
know
the Muses,
and embei anything w
ol
hi
e what he knows, ami sometimes to wen- wrong be what he does not know. S
.
We
before
in
denying the \rul
how would you amend
1
a
the
list
which must be excluded. one can think one thing to be another
of the impossible eases (
1
No
)
not perceive either of them, but
has the memorial or seal oi both of them in his mind; nor can any mistaking of one thing for
another occur, when he only knows one. and does not know, and has no impression of the other: nor can he think that one thing which he does not know is another thing which he
know, or that what he does not know is what he knows; nor( 2) that one thing which he perceives is another thing which he perceives, or that something which he perceives is something which he does not perceive; or that something which he does not perceive is something else which he does not perceive; or that something which he does not perceive is something which he perceives; nor again 3) can he think that something which he knows and perceives, and of which he has the impression coinciding with sense, is something else which he knows and perceives, and of which he has the S
h hr .1
tlmi^
l»
In
11
Im
;
not
•
I
iin,
a
ll
.ii:
suppose
in l»r
1
tli.it
know and
thing which he dors nut
mothei thing whu h
know;
not
m-t
ktmw and whk h he
thing
utterly 1. ilst-
main, arc
tin-
l»c
or thai 1 thing whii h he
dors not dues
;
i:
and absolutely exclude the
opinion.
The
onlj
possibilii
any,
whk
following.
Thcact. W'h.u are tl u tell me, may perhaps understand yOU better; but .it pr< am unable to iollow von. Soc. A person m.iv think that some things
not
(
impression coinciding with sense;
—
this
I
which he knows, or which he perceives and does not know, are some- other things which he knows and perceives; or that some things which he knows and perceives, .ire other tli which he knows and perceives. Thcact. understand you less than ever now. I
last
—
me once more, then: I, knowing Theodorus. and remembering in my own mind what sort of person he is, and also what sort ot person Theaetetus is. at one time see them, and at another time do not sec them, and sometouch them, and at another time not, times or at one time I may hear them or pen them in some other way, and at another timeremember them, not perceive them, but still and know them in my own mind. Thcact. Very true. Soc. Then, tirst of all, I want you to underSoc.
possibility of this.
Former statement? Sor. should begin by making
when he does
th.tt a
I
good. s
i:
think
•
thai
we have Ken, or he. ml, or thought in oui \\ n minds, we hold thc of nature? Theaet. Certainly; he who so manifests his
or water.
I
this
thought, Soc.
dumb
is
And is
laid to explain bin:
every one
who
is
not born
de.it'
able sooner or later to manifest
or
what
he thinks of anything; and it so. all those who have a right opinion about anything will also have right explanation; nor will right opinion be
anywhere found
to exist apart
from knowl-
edge.
ters.
Theaet. Certainly not;
h
ipinion
1
si^ht
l\r
must not. Well, and what is the meaning
syllables
:
in lint
|
t
kimwlc
oi
lint
.1111
whu 'n remember,
n
i
,
\l
I
we may
if
trust the
argument.
Theaet. True. Soc. Let us not, therefore, hastily charge
him
Soc. Well, but will you not be equally in-
who gave
when you rememown experience in learning to read? Theaet. What experience Soc. Whv, that in learning you were kept
intended to say. that when a person was asked what was the nature of anything, / 2oy / he should be able to answer his questioner
clined to disagree with him.
ber your
2
trying to distinguish the separate letters both
by the eye and by the ear, in order that, when you heard them spoken or saw them written. you might not be confused by their position. Theaet. Very true. Soc. And is the education of the harp-player complete unless he can tell what string answers to a particular note; the notes, as every one would allow, are the elements or letters of music :
Theaet. Exactly.
Then, if we argue from the letters and syllables which we know to other simples and Soc.
thisaccount of knowledge with uttering an unmeaning word; for perhaps he only
I
ing the elements of the thing. Theaet. As for example, Socrates Soc. As, for example,
:on
Now,
is
made up
neither you nor
; .
when Hesiod of a
.
.
says that
hundred planks.
could describe all of them individually; but if any one asked what is a waggon, we should be content to answer, that a waggon consists of wheels, axle, body, rims, yoke. Theaet. Certainly.
And
I
our opponent will probably laugh he would if we professed to be grammarians and to give a grammatical acSoc.
at us, just as
DIALOG
548
I
1
count of the name of Theactctus. and yet could only tell the syllables and not the letters of your Dame—that would l>c true opinion, and not
know
knowledge,
r
as
has been already
remarked, U OOt attained until, combined with true opinion, there is an enu meration ot the it of which anything is composed
same general way, we might
the
In
Soe.
he ah... have true opinion about a waggon; but wh.. can describe its essence by an enumeration of the hundred planks, adds rational explana-
and instead
opinion has art and knowledge of the nature oi a w gon, in that he attains to the whole through the
tion to true opinion,
ot
S
OF PLATO order of the letters and can write them out cor.. he has right opinion? 'The act. Clearly.
Soc. But although
opinion, he will Theaet. Yes.
The act. And do you not agree
view,
in that
we admit
that he has right
be without knowledge?
Soe. Ami \et he will have explanations, as well as right opinion, for he knew the order of
when he wrote; and
the letters
this
we admit
to be explanation.
Theaet. True.
my friend, there is such a thing opinion united with definition or explanation, which does not as yet attain to the Soc.
Then,
as right
exactness of knowledge.
Theaet.
elements.
still
Soc.
It
would seem
And what we
definition of
so.
fancied to be a perfect
knowledge
is
a
dream
only. Hut
!
you do, my friend; but f want to know first, whether you admit the resolution oi all things into their elements to be a rational I:
them, and the consideration of or larger combinations of be irrational— is this your VICW?
explanation
them them
in
to
ot
syllables
Theaet. Precisely. Well, and do you conceive that a .
who
man
one time affirms and at another time denies that element o! something, or thinks that the same thing is has knowledge
composed
an\ element
ot
different
ot
at
elements at different
times'
Theaet, Assuredly not.
And do you
Soc.
and
in th.;t of
not
remember
that in
your
others this often occurred in
the process of learning to read?
You mean
Theaet.
and misspelt the
To
Theaet.
and
am
1
who
that
I
I
mistook the
writes
letters
perfectly
remember,
very far from supposing that they
are in this condition have
Soc.
When
a
person
name
the
at
knowledge.
the time of learning
of Theaetetus,
[208] and
thinks that he ought to write and does write 77;
and
name
of
but, again,
c;
meaning
to write the
Thcodorus, thinks that he ought to
—
write and does write T and e can we suppose that he knows the first syllables of your two
nan. t.
a
We
one has not v 1
.
And
have already admitted that such knowledge.
vet attained
in like
manner be may enumerate
without knowing them the second and third and fourth syllables ot youx name?
And
in that case,
better not say so as yet, for
were there not three explanations of knowledge, one of which must, as we said, be adopted by him who maintains knowledge to be true opinion combined with rational explanation? And very likely there may be found some one who will not prefer this but the third. Theaet. You are quite right; there is still one remaining. The first was the image or expression of the
mind
in speech; the second,
has just been mentioned,
is
a
way
which
of reaching
whole by an enumeration of the elements. But what is the third definition? Soc. There is, further, the popular notion of telling the mark or sign of difference which
the
distinguishes the thing in question
from
all
Theaet. Can you give me any example of such a definition? Soc. As, for example, in the case of the sun, think that you would be contented with I the statement that the sun is the brightest of the heavenly bodies which revolve about the earth.
Theaet. Certainly. Soc. just
when he knows
the
—
Understand why: the reason is, as I was saying, that if you get at the difference
now
and distinguishing
characteristic of each thing, persons affirm, you will get at the definition or explanation of it; but while you lay hold only of thecommon and not of the characteristic notion, you will only have the definition of those things to which this common quality belongs. Theaet. I understand you, and your account
then, as
many
of definition
is
Soc. But he,
77;.
Soc.
we had
others.
syllables?
be sure;
perhaps
in
my judgment
who having
correct.
right opinion about
anything, can find out the difference which dis-
I'llKAETETUS uiihei oi
m
1 1
1
ii
from othei thing! w ill k \\r had onl) m ire maintaining et; thai ii w hal «
U before
^
^
ertheless, \
u\\ .
hnd
I
.
ion
i
thin
>
if,
iu\srll ^iiilr
w Km h
i
.11
"ii
and
i
.Ii
pi
I
When not
^
w
little
lull
I
shut,
•
ontradk
i
afta
fashion.
.1
introduced the word
I
t
1
what
said be
I
did
"is,"
I
I"
m "i
lung ipeak
heme
oi iu>t
.is
one
I
noi
.ill;
;
:
1
erlamly. th.u. strictl) speaking,
Quite true.
dm
:
\
.is
always,
do not look
to
I
am
unequal
Str.
Make
to the
a noble effort, as
let
either existence or unity or plurality.
Str. is
him
(
:
Certainly not
And you mean
Then Yes. And the
ininv
1
in?
by true that which really
not true
is
that
which
Thcact. Exactly. A resemblance, then,
Str.
as
you say, not true? Thcact. Nay, but it
You mean
Thcact. Yes;
is
is
is
not real!)
the op-
it is
in reality only
Then what we
:
in a cer-
to say, not in a true
call
An
an image
really unreal.
be got out of his hole.
his reciprocation of opposites. the
Thcact. Most true.
to be
.mother true thing, but
Say no more of ourselves; but until we find some one or other who can speak of notbeing without number, we must acknowledge that the Sophist is a clever rogue who will not
art of
the like-
posite of the true?
Str.
say to
in
:.
Str.
thus discomfited. Str.
in
und
:
Str.
we
.1
only a resemblance.
would be a strange boldness in me which would attempt the task when I see you
if
tho
1
The jet.
It
And
.is
Str. And do you mean this something some other true thing, or what d
t not being .is indc scribable and unspeakable and unutterable, in using each oi these words in the singular, did not refer to not being .is one I
•»!
and inn mi
ii.
hr will lay th.it hr ict. Wh.it can
V es,
\iul yet
he will
.
you
i
\inl in using the singular verb, did
S
hi
'«'
«»i
unutterable, unspeakable, ind
us in rad
•
do noi
•
cqi
sti. mi.
* horn the) one there were three principles, and thai uvc
had been< hildren,
eai h his t.w n
it( .1
laid thai
mythui
n>
o
u .11 Ixiw owe time n oi them; and then again there w ai peat e, and \uir married and begai children, and hro them up; and another ipoke ol two pi in< iples, moist and a dry, oi hoi and a cold, and made them marts and cohabit. The Menus, however, in otn pan of the world, saj thai all things are many in name, but in nature one; this is their mythus, which goes back to Xe nophanes, and is even older. Then there are it
|»crp
.
h
determine the numbei ind
to
I
I
1
.i
•>
Ionian, and in
who have the
two
more
arrived
ai
principles
recent times Sicilian
m
the conclusion that to unite is
safer,
and
to say
thai be-
one and many, and that these are held together by enmity and friendship, ever parting, ever meeting, as the severer Muses assert, while the gentler ones do not insist on the perpetual Strife m^\ peace, / 2jjJ but admit a relaxation and alternation of them; peace and unity sometimes prevailing under the sway of Aphrodite, and then again plurality and war, b\ reason of a principle oi strife. Whether any of them spoke the truth in all this is hard to determine; besides, antiquity and famous men should have reverence, and not be liable to accusations so serious. Yet one thing may be said of them withing
is
out orTence
What thing? That they went on their several ways disdaining to notice people like ourselves; they did not care whether they took us with them, or left us behind them. Theact. How do you mean? Thc\nt.
Sir,
Str.
I
mean
it.
to say, that
when
they talk of one,
two, or more elements, which are or have beoorneor arc becoming, or again of heat mingling with cold, assuming in some other part of their
—
works separations and mixtures, tell mc.Theaetetus, do you understand what they mean by these expressions- When I was a younger man. I used to fancy that I understood quite well what was meant by the term "not-being." which is our present subject of dispute; and now you see
h
ei
bettei
I
•
i
sprain and leadei
i
t
i"
tl
I
lv
we
think thai
mean
pie
in
iiii.si
st
Ir.ir
ii
the w ord "\u\
l»\
allow
*
lose ai ui\ hi
the right method,
I
.
will
Ik-
to
i
all
into our pretence the dualistii philosophei to inter n
who
and cold
affirm thai hot
principles arc the universe,
which you apply \on
inc. in
them word
'are*? 'are'?
thai there
to
both of
when \ou I
s.i\
Upon your is
th.it
low are we
or
an) othi
•
what is tins term them, and wfc to
both .ind »-.. understand the
vievi
a third principle o
two— three in all. and not two you cannot s.iv thai one Ol die two principles is being, and yet attribute being equally to both of them; for, if vou did, whichever ol the two is identified with being, will comprehend the other; and so they will be one and not
the other irly
two."
The
Jet.
Very
true.
But perhaps you mean to give the 1 of "being" to both of them together Theact. Quite like
name
[244: Str. "Then, friends." we shall reply to them, "the answer is plainly that the two will be resolved into one." Theact. Most true.
still
Str.
to
"Since then,
tell
us
we
are in a difficulty, please
what you mean, when you speak
being; for there can be no doubt that you
of al-
ways trom the first understood your own meaning, whereas we once thought that we understood you, but
now we
are in a great strait.
Please to begin by explaining this matter to us,
we understand misunderstand There will be no impropriety in our demanding an answer to this question, either of the and
you.
let
us no longer fancy that
when we
entirely
dualists or of the pluralists?
I
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
566
T
heart. Certainly not.
—
must wc not endeavour to as.ill from them what they mean l>> "being"?
ness ol the certain
means.
Thi
Then
Str*
One.
about the assertory of the one-
And what
Str.
them answer this question: is "Yea," thq will reply.
let
;
-nc
\.
True.
net.
And
n something which you
there
call
And
being the same as one, and do you applv tWO names to the s.unc thing VVin/r/.What will be their answer. Stranger.p It is dear, Theaeletus, that he who asis
'
serts the unity oi
this or
answering
Wh)
'The jet.
being Will find a difficulty in am other question.
Theaet.
ol two names, and to affirm nothing but unity, is surely ridicu-
is
(
Ami
Str.
name
is
To
1
ertainl)
.
equally irrational to admit that a
low so?
name from
the thing,
yet
he
who
identifies the
name with it
is
the
hesays that it is the name ol something, even then the name will only be the name oi a name, and ot nothing else. nothing, or
it
Theart.
True. Str. And the one will turn out to be only one one, and being absolute unity, will represent
Theart. Certainly. Ami would
The Jet. s.l\
they say that the whole
same with To be sure they would, and they
way
is,
or the
is
it?
ac-
so.
Str.li being lif^e
bemg
is
is
one and a whole,
is
a
true; lor being,
be the same as one, and the
all is
theretorc
Str.
And
yet
if
being be not
through
a yvhole,
thing ol its own nature.' Thejet. Certainly.
Upon
this view, again, being,
defect ot being, will
haying
a
become not-being?
True.
And, again, the all becomes more than one, for being and the yvhole will each have their separate nature.
Theaet. Yes. Str.
Hut
if
the yvhole does not exist at
all, all
the previous difficulties remain the same,
and
there will be the further difficulty, that besides
haying no being, being can never have come into being.
so?
Because that yvhich comes into being always comes into being as a yvhole, so that he yvho does not give yvhole a place among beings, cannot speak either of essence or generation as
a
whole, as Parmcnides sings,
unto the fullness of j well-rounded
Theaet. Yes, that certainly appears to be true. Again; hoyv can that yvhich is not a
Str.
yvhole have any quantity? For that
then being has a centre and extremes, and, having these, must also have parts.
points, each of
—
.
True.
which has
the attribute of unity in
and
a
all
whole,
Theaet. Certainly.
parts
the parts,
may
may have
and
be one?
in this
must
which
is
of
necessarily be the yvhole
of that quantity.
Theaet. Exactly. Str.
And
him who
there will be innumerable other
them causing
says that being
The
is
infinite trouble to
either one or two.
which are dayvning one objection connects with another, and they are ahvays involving what has preceded in a greater and worse perTheaet.
/2J-5/ Str. Yet that
all
more
T heart. Yes.
a certain quantity
being
shall
not a whole at all'
existing. is
tpki
he jet.
Or
ot unity.'
hard alternate c to oiler. haying in a certain sense the attribute ot one, is \ct proyed not to
Most
Evenly balanced from the- centre- on every side, And must needs he neither greater nor less in jny uj\ Wither on this side nor on that
y\.i\
that
Str.
other than the one that tually
Thejet. That
Str.
T heart. Why
mere name. Str.
that being
-i\
Theart.
the thing will be compelled to say that ol
v
we say
has the attribute
it
Str.
Theaet. Yes.
And
we
Str.
distinguish the
implies duality. Str.
because
ha\ ing the attribute oi unity, and there be such a thing as an absolute whole, being lacks some-
anything?
Thcjct. Str.
1
many-
oi
than one.
so?
To admit
Str.
that there
Tt cry
Hut this indivisible, il made up w ill contradict reason. Thcjct. understand.
parts,
I
Sir.
a
Thejet. Certainly.
Str, Shall
Yes."
ot
solutely indivisible.
Str.
"ben;.
name
Str. Hut that oi which this is tahe condition cannot be absolute unity? The jet. Why not? Str. Because, according to right reason, that which is truly one must be affirmed to be ab-
upon us prove
plexity.
difficulties
this; for
.
II llic
il
ind not
i
1 1
I
I
ind proceed ciscl)
;
.tn J
ll.lHl!
till
prehend
|
n> viev«
we
those
who
ihall find is the
ipe >k
reiuh
.iirim,
l
t
grasp
in
these- they la)
hold,
and
«>!>
maintain, thai the things only which can he touched oi handled have being sc w ho
nst. ehhet as
th.ii
s.i\
the
whole
many tonus: and those who assert uni
nnk) or
them.
at
in
-.
is
who WOuld
moveable and immoveable
ing in his in
.
in h
I
s
definition oi
then,
When
v •
then,
.
t'air
notion
a
M.is,
now
have gained
.i
be
ol \
l
methinks
dial
we
the enquiry into the nature
oi
arc
.
here, indeed
lor th.it
which
both
these-
W'h.u do you mean? my r-.end, do you not sec thai nothing can exceed oof ignorance, and yet we fancy th.it we are saying something good? tet. I certainly thought that we were; and do not at all understand how we never found out our desperate case. .-.
i
is
iu-
i
is
c
I
ui
k
is
mast
o
p!..
lasses. Is this possible: ly
Theaet,
!t them other than being, and no non existent; and therefore oi .ill ol them, in like manner, we ma) trul) n.i\ that the) .ire not; and again, inasmuch .»n they partake ot being, tint the) are and are existent.
Str.
tir
e it
luii in
l>
\
innoi admit thai the her
\\\
ochei
n\ us to be one among many classes diffused over all of the
:
il
Theaet. True.
Ami .'.
.
1
Mr
1(>\\
1
speech are possible, for to think or to say what is falsehood, which thus arises in the is not
—
region ol thought and in speech.
Theaet. That
there
is
falsehood surely there
l>
\
be able to assert dil
consequcn
-ill
hive
ihould tin-
I
region the Sophist, as
his escape, and,
when
we
said,
he had got there,
denied the very possibility of falsehood: no one, he argued, either conceived or uttered falsehood, inasmuch as not-being did not in any way partake of being. Theaet. True. Str. And now, not-being has been shown to partake of being, and therefore he will not continue fighting in this direction, but he will probably say that some ideas partake of notbeing, and some not, and that language and opinion are of the non-partaking class: and he will still fight to the death against the existence of the image-making and phantastic art, in which we have placed him, because, as he will say, opinion and language do not partake of not-being, and unless this participation exists, there can be no such thing as falsehood. And,
in order that we may have clearer grounds for determining, whether not-being has a;: cern with them, or whether they arc both al-
ways
true,
and neither of them eve* take.
Theaet. True. Str.
Then, now,
let
us speak ot names, as be-
fore
we were speaking
that
is
of ideas
and
letters; for
the direction in which the answer
ma)
be expected.
Theaet. And what is the question at issue about names? Sir. The question at issue is whether all names may be connected with one another, or none, or only some of them.
Theaet. Clearly the Str.
I
last
understand you
is
true.
to say that
words which
sequence may be connected, but that words which have no meaning when in sequence cannot be connected 1 Theaet. What are you say:: Sir. What I thought that you intended when you gave your assent; for there are two sorts of
have a meaning when
in
DIALOGUES OF PLATO hich are givco by the
tntii
T heart. What \
'
icy -
ci
them
is
a subicct.
called nouns,
and the
oth-
them. That W inch denotes action wc
And must be of Theaet. Certainly.
!>c
call
True.
set
A
succession of nouns only is not a sentence, any more than of verbs without nouns.
do nor understand you, when you gave your assent you had something else in your mind. Hut what I i
that
intended to say was, thai
nouns or
verbs
oi
Theaet.
is
a
mere succession of
What do you mean?
words like "walks," "runs," words which denote action, however many oi them \ ou string together, do not make discoui low can they? .n that
or any other
1
>r,
again,
when you
say "lion," "stag,"
"horse, or any other words
which denote agents neither in this wa\ ot Stringing words together do you attain to discourse; lor there is no
—
expr< ssion of action or inaction, or of the existoi
existence or non-existence indicated by
mingled with nouns; then the words fit, and the smallest combination of them forms language, and is the simplest and least form ot discourse. 2 Tlu lin 1 ask. What do you mean Str. When any one says "A man learns," should you not call this the simplest and least
the sounds, until verbs are
:
sentence-
oi a
now
arrives at the point of
an intimation about something which is, or is becoming, or has become, or will be. And he not onl) names, but he does something, by connecting verbs with nouns; and therefore we s.iv that he discourses, and to this connection of
words we give the name
ot discourse.
263]
my
will, to the best of
1
Str.
"Theaetetus
sits"
power.
— not
a very
long
sentence.
Theaet. Not \erv.
who
whom
Of
Str.
the subject
is
Of me;
Theaet.
Or
does the sentence speak, and 3 that is what you have to tell.
am
I
the subject.
again Theaet. What sentence 2 Str. "Theaetetus, with whom ing,
this sentence,
I
am now speak-
flyin
is
T/naet. That also
a sentence
is
which
will be
admitted by every one to speak of me, and to apply to me. Str. We agreed that every sentence must necessarily have a certain quality. Theaet. Yes.
And what two sentences? Str.
The
Theaet.
is
the quality of each of these
one, as
I
imagine,
is
false,
and
the other true. Str.
The
true says
what
is
true about you?
Theaet. Yes.
And
Str.
what
the false says
is
other than
true?
Theaet. Yes.
And
Str.
therefore speaks of things
they were
if
which
2
as there are
Str.
And
says that thingsarerealofyou
are not; for, as
we were
each thing or person, there
much
that
is
which
saying, in regard to is
much
that
is
and
not.
Theaet. Quite true. The second of the two sentences which
Str.
you was first of all an example of the form consistent with our definition. Theaet. Yes, this was implied in our recent
related to
Theaet. True.
And
/
Theaet. True.
he
gi\ ing
Str.
are about.
SO.
the sentence speaks.
are not as
Theaet. Yes. Str. Yes, for
mind what we
will repeat a sentence to you in which and an action are combined, by the help noun and a verb: and you shall tell me of
Str.
not discourse.
us
let
must do
I
Theaet.
Quite true.
shortest
some things which
one another, and other things which do not
fit fit,
some vocal signs which do, and others which do not. combine and form disso there are
course.
Theaet. Quite true. There is another small matter. .
Wc
a certain quality.
a thing
whom
noun.
ot
And now
Str.
which is an articulate on those w ho do the actions, we call a other,
iht-
.
ence
Str.
Theaet.
rb.
Str.
Theaet. True. Str.
verbs.
mark
is it'
sentence must and cannot help having
admission. Str.
And,
subject
in the
second place,
it
related to a
2
Theaet. Yes. Str.
else?
Who
must be you, and can be nobody
-
III 7"A.
Ollld
IS
it
|
no -.mini.
l
il
mi;
I
it
.ill
i!
let
I
true
'Mill-
1
n othet ir,
l>r
no lubjei t, for, II ll.lS nO IUbje
! therefore
S
I
lui
I
\
'
agination are now proved to exist inoui mindi K>th .in true and false.
.ind
more w
lien
il
I
led thai
I
. | |
'.
You
•
5
know
know
will
\
better
hat thej are,
'
\*>u first
il
and
in
be
h
ii.
thin
.1
what thr\
From one another.
me
Give
would w
the
knowledge which you
not
\
be
h
I
this exception, that
condition
I
s
is
audible
is
called
we have
th.it
there
exists
m
What
!
we know
it.
the affirmation or denial takes
and in the mind only, have you any other name by which to call it but opinion? Theaet. There can be no other name. s Vnd when opinion is presented, not simply, but in some form of sense, would you not it
imagination
3
And
seeing that language
him
his true nature.
in
true
and
and that thought is the conversation of the soul with herself, and opinion is the end of thinking, and imagination or phantasy is the union of sense and opinion, the inference is that some of them, since they are akin to language. should have an element of falsehood as well as
Theaet. \
3
—
complished. set.
I
his
I
ithibit
and
r
spirits.
\
that
.
uisi-
tive.
And
was flitt subdh merchandise, and
the Sophist
hunt-
the acquisitive class, in the ing, contests,
Tin
I
I
rue.
But now that the imitative irt closed him, it is clear that we must begin by Str.
dividing the art of creation; for imitation kind of creation of images, however, as we
—
ami not of
af-
real things.
Quite true.
Do
Then
his
ill
divided by us into creative
in. illy
firm,
you perceive, then, that false opinion and speech have been discovered sooner than we expected? For just now we seemed to be undertaking a task which would never be ac-
Str.
1
mi may remember
Theaet. Certainly. Str.
1
then to kindred dialectical
Str. is
false,
of truth
stripped
properties.
Theaet. Yes.
Theaet. Cert linly. Str.
we have
[26$] an difference or peculiar. Then w
place in silence
call
us, tin n, n
et
Common
.
When
i
making
dividing any class, al a t to the right, holding list to that which holds the Sophist, until
exist
s
Affirmation. Theaet. Yes. 1 2()j
th.it
the di\ lsions oi the likeness
!
we know
already admitt the Sophist w.is lurking
77,.
sj
..
.
Theaet.
ol
'rut*.
\:\!
h
and
mind an an
the
i
h!r.
preceded,
Quite true. But the stream of thought which flows the- lips
false opinioi
,.
Sir. An.)
through
and
im"
to gain.
thought and speech the same, w hat is ailed thought the unuttered conversation ol the soul with s
with is
me
ish
In the hrst place, there are
two kinds of
creation.
Them t. What are they One of them is human and :
Str.
the other di-
vine.
perceive. let
us not be discouraged about the
I do not follow. Every power, as you
Theaet. Str.
may remember our
DIALOG UES OF PLATO basing originally, which causes things to exist, was dcimcd b\ us as
not previously existing, creative.
Theart.
remember. Str. Looking, DOW, at the world and all the annuals and plants, at things which grow upon rth lrom seeds and roots, as well as at inanimate substances which arc formed within the earth, fusilc or non fusile, shall we say that the) come into existence— not having existed 1
— by the creation
pre\ iousl)
with
\
(
rod, or shall
ulgar opinion about
What
V 'hi act.
oi
we
them?
is it?
The opinion that nature brings them into being from some spontaneous and unintelligent cause.
)r
(
we
shall
ated b\ a divine reason
from
conies
(
say that they are cre-
and
Str. I suppose that we, and the other animals, and the elements out of which things are made are known by us to lire, water, and the like be each and all the creation and work ot Cod.
Theart. Str.
Theart. dare sa\ that, owing to my >outh, ma) oltcn waver in my view, but now when I look at you and see that you incline to refer them to ( rod, defer to your authority. Str. \'obl\ said, Theaetetus, and if I thought that you W< re one oi those who would hereafter change your mind, I would have gently argued with you, and forced you to assent; but as perceive that you will come of yourself and without any argument of mine, to that belief
these are also the creation of a
I
1
say, attracts you,
work
the
of time. Let
me
I
will not fore-
suppose, then,
which are said to be made by nature workot divineart,and that things which
that things
are the
made by man out man art. And so there
are
ot these are
work
of hu-
two kinds of making one human and the other
and production, the
are
which is produced when the light in bright and smooth objects meets on their suriace with an external light, and creates a perception the opposite of our ordinary sight.
1heart.
make
two
a sort of
are
awake
mean
I
is concerned. Theaet. Now I begin to understand, and am ready to acknowledge that there are two kinds of production, and each of them twofold; in the lateral division there is both a divine and a hu-
tion
man ties
production; in the vertical there are
and
Theart.
a lateral one.
have done so. Then, now, there are in all four parts or segments two of them have reference to us and are human, and two of them have reference to the gods and are divine. 1
Str.
True.
Ami, again,
supposed
to be
number
in the division in the
us not forget that of the imita-
one part was
to
have been likeness-
which was
other way, one part
in each subdivision is the making of the things themselves, but the two remaining parts may be called the making ot likenesses; and so the productive art is again divided into two parts. Theaet. Tell me the divisions once more.
this
appeared
now, without
to be the case;
hesitation,
we
and shall
the different kinds as two.
Theaet. True.
[267]
Str.
Then, now,
let
us again divide the
phantastic art.
Theaet. \\ nere shall
we make
the division?
one kind which is produced by an instrument, and another in which the creator of the appearance is himself the instrument. Theaet. What do you mean? Str. When any one makes himself appear like another in his figure or his voice, imitation Str.
made
let
And
therefore
Str.
art.
And
Theaet. Yes.
of production or in-
made
reali-
a creation of a kind of similitudes.
making, and the other phantastic, if it could be shown that falsehood is a reality and belongs to
you should
to say that
a vertical division
2
Theaet. Quite true. Str. And other products of human creation are also twotold and go in pairs; there is the thing, with which the art of making the thing is concerned, and the image, with which imita-
the class of real being.
I
Str.
vention, as you ha\ e already
Str.
and another by the art of drawing, which dream created by man for those who
ing, is
shall we say of human art? make one house by the art of build-
not
tive class the
which we have already. low do you mean?
1 2(>()J
Yes; and the images as well as the work of a divine hand.
And what
Str.
Do we
Str.
Theaet. True. Then, now, subdivide each of the
Theaet.
skill.
Str. spring up of themselves in sleep or by day, such as a shadowwhen darkness arises in a hre, or the reflection
divine.
sections
wonderful
What are they? The appearances which
Theaet.
1
which, as you
there are images of them, which are
creation are equally the
tod?
I
stall
True.
And
not them, but which correspond to them; and
knowledge which
a
—
—
is
the
There
name
is
for this part of the phantastic art.
!
.
II
.1
is
I
S
me
et
I
u
.
do as you one and leave the othei
to the
foi
n
the
U|
tlt.it
tus,
named
tins th(
.iii.I
othci
he
then, be
this,
i
some who imitate, knowing and some who do noi know.
line arc
I
hat the) imitate,
A nil whai
whu
hiiii.i'
an be no greater. not the son oi imitation here
I
Was
know you and
oi
or oi virtue in genera]
tertained by them, by expressing
word and deed
Theaet. Yes, that
is
very
\ml do they always
thought
just,
:
when
it,
.is
i.ir
Theaet.
The
Such
an imitator
common.
er, as
who
he
they are not?
Or
is
among
is
find a suitable clearly
name
for each of
not an easy task; for
was some contusion which prevented them from attempt-
no great abundance
the sake of distinctness,
the imitation
is the m.iker oi the longer he the statesman or the p
Theaet. Str.
The
latter.
And what
shall
wc
the other
call
: I
I
;
The
philosopher he cannot b is ignorant: but since imitator of the wise he will have a name which
upon our view he
1
formed by an adaptation ot the won: shall we name him? am pretty sure that cannot be mistaken in terming him the true and very Sophist. Str. Shall we bind up his name as we did before, making a chain from one end of his geneis
I
I
ing to divide genera into species; wherefore there
Is
What
the ancients there
of ideas,
who
And who
Theaet.
very opposite.
Theaet. True. is
me
the philosopher or the Sophist
should be described as to be distinguished from the othis ignorant is distinguished from
Can we
-It.
consideration, then, th< t" be two; there is the dissembler,
•
not
:
Str.
An v.
orator?
him who knows.
them? This
furthi
harangues a multitude in public in a long spcci h, and the dissembler, who m pn\ ai in short speeches compels the person conversing with him to contradict himself. Thai!. What you s.iy is most 'rue.
their attempt
a one. then,
—
Theaet.
speeches?
fail in
we
shall
lass as h.i\ in
.is
:
the very opposite true?
Str.
i
to
the figure or
s.iv oi
Arc we aware that many, having no know! edge oi cither, but only a sort oi opinion, do their best to show that this opinion is really en-
to be
-
n
not well
the) can, in
\nd
which
Naturally. oi justice
miiij'
the othci as the di
youi figure?
\ml what would \ou
.
h
i
we spoke just now the imitation oi those who know? For he who would inmate you would
s
lilt
thr
from knowledg
form
M
h you
tatoi
surely
that
oi
lineoi distinction can there possibly
be greatej than thai which divides ignorance
s
mi
:
hear,
which
I
of
will
alogy to the othcr : Theaet. By all means.
names. Yet, for
make
bold to
call
coexists with opinion, the
—
imitation of appearance that which coexists with science, a scientific or learned imitation. Theaet. C Granted. Str. The former is our present concern, for the Sophist was classed with imitators indeed, but not among those who have knowledge.
Theaet. Very true. Str. Let us, then, examine our imitator of ap-
Str. art as
He, then, who traces the pedigree of his who, belonging to the conscious
follows
—
or dissembling section of the art of causi:
contradiction,
is
an imitator of appearance, and
is
separated from the class of phant^stic which
is
a
branch of image-making into that further
division of creation, the juggling of words, a
creation
human, and
not divine
— any one who
affirms the real Sophist to be of this blood
lineage will say the very truth.
Theaet. Undoubtedlv.
and
STATESMAN 01
The
Vol
The
Tin Dialogue: Thbodorus; Socrates;
Ml
K So
\c-.
\ others ha\ ing similar authority
True. But what would you say. if he came back sooner than he had intended, and. owing to an unexpected change of the winds or other celestial influences, something else happened to be y. >oc.
Str.
— would he not venture
better for
them
gest this
new remedy, although
to sug-
not contem-
think that they ought to go more roughly to work, and to prescribe generally the regimen
2 Would he observing the original law. neither himself giving any new commandments, nor the patient daring to do otherwise than was prescribed, under the idea that this course only was healthy and medicinal, all others noxious and heterodox ; Viewed in the light of science and true art. would not all such enactments be
which
utterlv ridiculous
:
plated in his former prescription
persist in
V. Sot
v.
1
.
2 bat do you rcicr.
he training-masters donot issueminute rules for individuals, or gi\c every individual what is exactly suited to his constitution: they 1
will benefit the majority.
1
y. Soc. Utterly. pi equal amounts them all; they send them forth together, and let them rest together from their running, wrestling, or whatever the form of oi
exerusc
to
bodik ever, ist may V. Sue. True. Str.
who
lator
be.
And now
observe that the
legis-
has to preside over the herd, and to
enforce justice in their dealings with one another, will not be able, in enacting tor the general
good, to provide exactly what
is
suitable
tch particular case.
cannot be expected to do so. ie will lay down laws in a general form lor the majority, roughly meeting the cases of individuals; and some of them he will deliver in writing, and others will be unwritten; and these last will be traditional customs of the V. Sot
.
1
le
I
country. V. Soc.
Ie will
I
how
can he
sit
at
every man's side all through his life, prescribing lor him the exact particulars of his duty?
Who,
Socrates, would be equal to such a task 3 one who really had the royal science, if he had been able to do this, would have imposed
No
upon himself the restriction of a written law. Y.S f. Sol should infer from what has now said.
Str.
going
( )r
rather,
my good
friend,
from what
is
to be said.
y. Soc. Anil
what
is
that?
us put to ourselves
taSe case of a phyabout to go into a far country, and is expecting to be a long time pom his patients— thinking that his inet
sician, or trainer,
who
is
remembered unless they down, he w ill leave notes of them
structions will not be
are written lor the ik
who
gave laws, written or un-
what was good or bad,
Str.
if
he
honourable or dishonourable, the tribes of
men who
just or unjust, to
flock together in their
several cities, and are governed in accordance with them; if, I say, the wise legislator were suddenly to come again, [296] or another like to him, is he to be prohibited from changing them.1 would not this prohibition be in reality
—
quite as ridiculous as the other
:
y. Soc. Certainly. Str. Do you know a plausible saying common people which is in point
of the
what you mean
at the
:
Y. Soc.
I
do not
moment. Str. They
recall
if any one knows how the may be improved, he must first persuade his own State of the improvement, and then he may legislate, but not otherwise. Y. Soc. And are they not right.
say that
ancient laws
:
be right.
Str. Yes, quite right; for
been
And
written, determining
mpils or patients.
dare say. But supposing that he does use some gentle violence for their good, what is this violence to be called ? Or rather, before you answer, let me ask the same question in reference to our previous instances. Y. Soc. What do you mean.' Str. Suppose that a skilful physician has a patient, of whatever sex or age. whom he comStr.
I
pels against his will to do something for his good which is contrary to the written rules; what is this compulsion to be called? Would you ever dream of calling it a violation of the : art, or a breach of the laws of health. Nothing
could be more unjust than for the patient to whom such violence is applied, to charge the physician who practises the violence with wanting skill or aggravating his disease. Y. Soc. Most true. Str. In the political art error is not called dis-
i
1
\
!
1
I
n uc w hen iw md ustom, is ompell ind bctiei and noblei than he did befon tlir l.i si and moil absurd thing which he could )
S
(.>;nii-
.
I
i
t
v
.
about tuch \
\
iol(
il
01
nee inju
ipelled )
S
s
u e
i
.ii
the
handi
u.
should
we
say thai the
\
iolence,
in. in, is just,
Ma)
ii
.i
.
ll
\
(
nov I
the pilot,
over the interests not in
oi
t
and
the ship
rules, but
preserves
.i
Ins
tub by wat< hing continu-
down
laying
law fellow sailors, even bag Ins .in
the-
»>t
•
so, and in the sell
'
i
.in
Ins
same way, created
I
who
"is
>'.
Sot
one great ru distributing justice to the citizens with intelligence mu\ skill, are able to preserve them, .md, as t.ir as m.iy be, to make them better from being worse.
one
cm
deny what has been non-
Neither,
can anv one
\o\\ consider,
it
deny the other statement.
What was
:
it
for the better
and some
for the worse.
What do you mean?
cannot have understood your previous remark about imitaV. Soc.
I
tions.
And
mere suggestion which I highly important, even if we leave the question where it is, and do nor seek by the discussion of it to expose the error Str.
yet the
threw out
hastily
which prevails y. Soc.
is
is
in this matter.
What do you mean
The
which has
1
grasped by us not easy or familiar; but we may attempt to Str.
express
it
Wh.it
.
sort ot .in un.
Well, siuh
StT.
.is
tl:
will reflect th.it he suiiers strange things
whom
the
.it
them: the physician saw sany he wishes to s.ive. and any whom he
hands ol both
ot
wishes to maltreat
he maitreats
cutting or
same time requiring them to bring him payments, which ot tribute, o! which little or nothing is t\ upon the sick man. and the greater part is ion SUmed by him and his domestics: and the finale is that he receives money from the relai the sick man or trom some enerm of his. burning them, and
at
the
.
We said that
no great number of persons, whoever they may be, can attain political knowledge, or order a State wisely, but that the true government is to be found in a small body, or in an individual, and that other States are but imitations of this, as we said a little while ago,
some
1
r
.
So
said.
V. Soc,
i
.
worth many anofJu man similitude t these let us endeavour t>oc So percej Str. There remain, however, natures still more troublesome, because they are more nearh akin \
rs.
at last
I
.
to the king, and more difficult to discern: the examination of them may be compared to the process ol rehning gold. : Y. Soc. What is your meaning. Str. The workmen begin by sifting a v. earth and stones and the like; there remain in a confused mass the valuable elements akin to
gold,
—
which can only be separated by tire copand other precious metals: these are
per, silver, at last
gold
away by
refined
is left
is
evil;
in every re-
either
any great
when compared with
the others, because the offices are too minutely
subdivided and too many hold them. And this is the worst of all lawful governments,
the use of tests, until the
quite pure.
Y. Soc. Yes, that
of law will bisect V. Soc.
Str. And so our satyric drama has been played out: and the troop of Centaurs and Sat-
is
the
way
Str. In like manner, all alien and uncongenial matter has been separated from political science, and what is precious and of a kindred nature has been left: there remain the nobler arts of the general and the judge, and the higher sort of oratory which is an ally of the royal art, [304] and persuades men to do justice, and How can assists in guiding the helm of States: we best clear away all these, leaving him whom we seek alone and unalloyed : Y. Soc. That is obviously what has in some
—
way
attempted. attempt is all that is wanting, he shall certainly be brought to light; and I think to be
Str. If the
music may
therefore
that the illustration of
and the best oi .ill lawless ones. If they are all without the restraints of law, democracy is the form in which to live is best; if they are well ordered, then this is the last which you should choose, as royalty, the first form, is the best,
hibiting him. Please to answer
with the exception of the seventh, for that excels
them
all,
and
among men. V. Soc. You
is
among
are quite right,
choose that above
of
the exception ot the one
ma\ be
set
what God
is
and we should
all.
The members
Sir,
States
all
these States, with
which has knowledge,
aside as being not Statesmen but par-
tisans—upholders of the most monstrous idols, and themselves idols; and. being the greatest imitators and magicians, they are also the greatest ot
Sophists.
/.The name ot Sophist after many windings in the argument appears to have been most justly tixed upon the politicians, as they are termed.
which these
in
things are said to be done.
me
assist in ex-
a question.
What
question: such a thing as learning music or handicraft arts in general: Y. Soc.
Str.
There
is
Y. Soc. There Str.
And
is
is.
there any higher art or science,
having power to decide which of these arts are and are not to be learned; what do you Y. Soc. I should answer that there is. Str. And do we acknowledge this science to be different from the others:
—
Y. Soc. Yes. Str.
And ought
the other sciences to be su-
perior to this, or no single science to any oth-
Or ought this science to be the overseer and governor of all the others:
er.'
The latter. You mean to say that the science which judges whether we ought to learn or not, must Y. Soc.
Str.
be superior to the science
which teaches?
which
is
learned or
)
5
hdetl
i
Km
to the
U>
sign
in pei
in .il»lr
Ii
w
li.it
rhat power,
s
1
I
made Clio
multitu
i
pleasing caU- and not b>
.:
irn,
..
tl
w hrth
iiimr-.
not, inn
tca< h irly
i
be
I
pox'.
pei suasion
n) one,
i
i" re
«>t
1
-f
o\c In
MS
N
\
.uis oi speec
l||C
thofC W
r I.
now w
h |nd wh
.i.
t
ihr
the
,
portun
and persuasion.
Ii
Which,
it
am
I
mistaken, will
not
Ik-
polii \
.
n
r\
|
good.
seems
Rrw oric
be
to nsj
yet
ministering to
V. S(h
quickly distin different
.1
i
it.
Yes.
.
But what would you think of another
power
sort hi
science
oi
:
What science? The science which
Y. 5
y. Sot
has to do with mili
operatioiks against our
enemies
—
is
that to
V. Soc.
1
Vnd
how
low can generalship and military
be regarded as other than
i
.
is
to advise
make
the art
peace, the
V. Soc.
It
which
when we
we
same
is
arc to
able and
go
to
are to be consistent,
knows
5
Sir.
Sir.
No
The
and terrible can we imagine any truly royal
is
only ministerial,
political?
let
us consider the nature of
the righteous judge;
y. Soc. Very good.
them
common
all,
matti
trul)
.ill
describe nndrra
;n a
in-
nam
nature, most truly
y. So
.
I
red the
State/ shall
I
analyst
which weaving supplied' th.it \ou wi
the pattern
greatly wish
Then must describe the nature of the web, and show how the various threads are woven into one piece. Sir.
I
A
Str.
though y.
s
.(
:
appears
linly the
to
Ik-
To assume
that one part of virtue differs kind from another, is a position easily assailable by contentious disputants, who appeal to popular opinion. Y. Soc. I do not understand. Str. Let me put the matter in another way: I suppose that you would consider courage to be in
a part of virtue
own peculiar virtue only in this, that he is not perverted by gifts, or fears, or pity, or by
part of virtue:
ings of
—
which alneed attempt must be made.
task has to be accomplished,
difficult,
Does he do anything but decide the dealmen with one another to be just or unjust in accordance with the standard which he receives from the king and legislator showing Sir.
his
all
t
royal
Sir.
art of the general
Once more
i,and
Then, now that we ter
:
y. Soc. Exactly. Str.
lav*
call pol
various classes
great
other.
and therefore not
t
the
Y. Soc. Clearly.
how
whole art of war is, which is superior to it but the
the
•
of
y. Soc. Kx.u •:!-.
we must
And we must also suppose that it we are not to give up
the
we Would
[jot
our Former notion? V. Soc. True. Sir. And. considering
Y. Soc.
it
Sir,
say different.
this rules the other,
agn
acteristic of their
war, or to
as this or different?
I
acting the State, and
we may
a
.
and has charge to one.
be regarded as a science or not?
.
And
Sir.
.
Sir. t.iry
the) nave no autl themone anothei but cerned with some special m lion oi nave, .is the) ought to have, spa ial nam responding to their several a< tions. selves oi
•:
Y.
Soc
Sir.
I
should.
And you would
different 1
;
Certainly
think temperance to be from courage: and likewise to be a
Cf. 287-90, 303-5.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
606 True.
V. Soc. Str.
theory about them. ;
What
)c.
is it
two principles which thoroughly hate one another and arc antagonistic J
hat thejf arc
throughout V. Sot
I
.
Yes
great part oi nature.
a
lor all the parts
said to he friendly to
oi'
\
er this
one another.
Str.
these us carefully investigate wheth-
let
me how we
V. Soc. Tell
shall consider that
question. Str.
We must
extend our enquiry to
all
those
things which we consider beautiful and at the same time place in two opposite classes. V. Soc
.
Explain; what arc they?
Acutcness and quickness, whether in body or soul or in the movement oi sound, and the imitations oi them which painting and music supply, you must have praised yourself beStr.
now, or been present when others praised diem. V. Soc. Certainly.
And do you remember the
terms in which
do
Y. Soc. In
1
I
V..
to
you
in
my
You
rel
arise
The
Str.
fancy that this
is all
so easy: Well,
is
when
liness or courage.
ing their
Y.Soc.
How?
We
speak of an action as energetic and and manly, and vigorous too; and apply the name of which I speak as
brave, quick
when we
common
attribute of
all
these natures,
we
certainly praise them.
[joy] V'Soc. True. And do we not often praise the quiet
strain of action also?
To be sure. And do we not
V. Soc.
what we .
Soc.
then say the opposite of
said of the other? 1
low
iAo
you mean?
all
Y. Soc.
difference between the
two
classes
disorders the most hateful.
To what do you
refer?
To nothing short of the whole regulaof human life. For the orderly class are al-
Str.
tion
ways ready
to lead a peaceful life, quietly do-
own
business; this
is
their
manner
of
behaving with all men at home, and they are equally ready to find some way of keeping the peace with foreign States. And on account of this fondness of theirs for peace, which is often out of season vails,
Str.
^
— and
occasions of quar-
aflecting really important matters, be-
comes of
Str.
I
often a trivial concern; but in a state, anil
under which they tail. When we praise quickness and energy and acutcness, whether of mind or body or sound, we express our praise of the quality which we admire by one word, and that one word is manthe opposite classes oi action
the
to those of the opposite party
many quarrels and among them.
out of this
W. Why not?
Str.
which
Y. Soc. True.
us consider these notions with reference to
let
respect?
mentioned, and very likely of many others. According to their respective affinities to either class of actions they distribute praise and blame praise to the actions which are akin to their
mind. Str.
what
Str. In respect of all the qualities
own, blame
not.
wonder whether can explain words the thought which is passing
Str. in
I
hard-
termed violence or madness: too great slowness or gentleness is called cowardice or sluggishness; and we may observe, that for the most part these qualities, and the temperance and manliness of the opposite characters, are arrayed as enemies on opposite sides, and do not mingle with one another in their respective actions; and if we pursue the enquiry, we shall find that men who have these different qualities of mind differ from one another. is
—
thej are praised? V. Soc,
Soc How so? Too great sharpnessorquicknessor
V.
iorc
Str.
out of place, the names of either are into terms of censure.
Str.
ness
in sonic respect.
is
changed
not parts of virtue
kindred
indicative oi order.
Very true. Hut when, on the other hand, either of
!
OUI in*
ii
*
i
«ii
i»-it
in
m
\
i
« h
OJ
h ip|
II
t
\
mu nit
I
I
llic-
l
go
!>>
i" w
the mill!
•
|
Up enein in.
either
I
Soc.l
)
again,
iii'.
linn llieu
Utter!)
land 01 enslave ind lubjei is
t
it
ti.it
t
\.>u mr.ui.
Protarchus,
I.
s
plain
and hr u ho ami mi
tioni;
hu h
he principle which hai
l
li
v\
i;i
ill
-
cak S
iboill
difficulty, -ui>l M'liir
.1
i
am
u hen
b) nature
prison
.1
one and
wr had
&fl
.iU>-
many,
beti I
I
1
where
wc
shall
1
"me* into man) "m and even opposing them as .crr.it and imall, tight and heavy, and in ten thousand othei ways? Yotan hns. arc the common and j acknowledged paradoxes aboui the one .in>l many, which ma) vi\ tint everybody has by this tunc- agreed to dismiss .is childish and ob vious and iU-trinu-iU.il to the- true (.curse of thought; and no more Favour is shewn to thai ether puzzle, in which a person proves the members and part s oi anything to be divided, and then confessing thai they are .ill one. s.i\s 1
1
1
\
tiling
the single
;
I
laughingly here
is
.1
in disprool of his
miracle, the one
and the many
.ire
is
own words: Why, many and infinite,
only one.
Pro. Bui what, Socrates, are those other marvels
connected with
this subject
imply, have not yet become
which,
you
as
common and
ac-
knowledged? [15] Soc.
When, my
those cases, and
horn and perish,
which we were
when
unity
is
gi> ing, lor in
of this concrete
was saying, a universal conis. as no refutation is needed; hut when the assertion is made that man is one, or ox is one, or beauty one, or the good one, then the interest which attaches to these and similar unities and the attempt which is made to divide nature, there
I
m
b.ittlr,
•.•
varioui /'•
identified
thought, and thai run about together,
l>\
past, the)
word which is union ot them u ill n
ever)
in
and
uttered,
tl
beginning, but is. .is b< thought itself, which n
ishng
I
quality ol old.
Any young man, when
he hrst
i
delighted, and Eaiu m i thai he has Found a treasure ot wisdom; in the iirsi enthusubtleties,
siasm
is
ot his joy
he
thought unturned,
les
now
rolling
her no up the many
into the one, and kneading thei r, now unfolding and dividing them-, he puzzles himself first and above all, and then he prod puzzle his neighbours, whether the\ ar
or younger,
hoy, the one Joes not belong
to the class of things that are as in the instances
mil multifarioui
/
16
'
or ol
hisown
.\j,r
-that
makes
no difference; neither lather nor mother does he spare; no human being wh< from him. hardly even his dog. and a bai would have no char tping him. interpreter could only
lx-
found.
Pro. Considering. Socrates,
sent that
how many wc
individual unity, being always the same, and
and that all of us are young men. is there not a danger that we and Philebus may all set upon you, if you abuse us? We understand what you mean; but is there no charm by which wc may dispel all this contusion, no more excellent way of arriving at thetruth 3 If there is. we hope that you will guide us into that way, and wc will do our best to follow, for the enquiry in which we are engaged, Socrates, is not unim-
incapable either of generation or of destruction,
portant.
but retaining a permanent individuality, can be conceived either as dispersed and multiplied
as
them
gives birth to a controversy.
Of what
Pro.
Soc. In the
nature
first
3
place, as to
whether these
unities have a rcalexistence:and then
how
each
world of generation, or as still entire and yet divided from itself, which latter would seem to be the greatest impossibility of all, for how can one and the same thing be at the same time in one and in manyin the infinity of the
things
3
ficulties,
These, Protarchus, are the
and
this
is
the one
and many
real
to
dif-
which
are,
Soc.
The
Philebus
reverse of unimportant, nr. calls
you, and there neither
ever will be a better than
my own
is
nor
favourite
way, which has nevertheless already often deserted me and left me helpless in the hour of need. Pro. Tell us what that Soc.
but
is
One which may
is.
be easily pointed out,
by no means easy of application;
it is
the
DIALOG
612 parent oi Pro.
I
a
the discoveries in the arts.
all
what
us
oil
OF PLATO
L
it
Pro.
heaven, which,
Sot. ted
among men
as
grammar
hao
too ought in every enquiry to begin by laydown one idea ol that which is the subject
c
in-
we shall find in everyoi enquiry; thing. Having found it, we may next proceed this unity
to look lor
tWO,
il
there he two, or,
not. then
ll
ther number, subdividing three oi each ol these units, until at last the unity with which we began is seen not only to be one and i'i,
r
infinite, but also a definite
many and
the infinite
many
the
must not be Suffered
until the entire
number
to
number; approach
oi the species
intermediate between unity and infinity has been discovered then, and not till then, we may rest Erom division, and without iurther
—
troubling ourselves about the endless individuals may allow them to drop lntoinimity. This, as was saying, is the way ot considering and 1
learning and teaching one another, which the gods have handed down to us. / ij ] But the
wise men oi our time are either too quick or too slow in conceiving plurality in unity. lavI
one and many anyhow, and from unity pass at onceto infinity; the intermediate steps never occur to them. And this. repeat, is what makes the difference between the mere art oi disputation and true ing no method, they
make
their
I
think that partly understand you, Socrates, but should like to have a clearer notion oi what yen are saying. Pro.
I
I
I
may
!
were made Pro.
illustrate
my meaning
the alphabet, Protarchus,
ters ol
How
by the
let-
which you
to learn as a child.
do they ailord an
The sound which
2
passes through the oi all
men
is
yet not by knowing either that one or that sound is infinite are we
knowledge sounds is what
perfect in the art of speech, but the ot
the
makes
number and nature a
man
a
of
grammarian.
so
And
the
know ledge which makes
(
one
is
in
music
as well as in
?
Certainly.
And
and
there
a higher note and a lower equal pitch: may we affirm
is
a note oi
—
much'
would not be a real musician \ou knew; though if you did not know this you would know almost Soc. But you
it'
this
was
all
that
nothing oi music. Pro. Nothing. Soc. But when you have learned what sounds arc high and what low. and the number and nature of the intervals and their limits or proportions, and the systems compounded out of them, which our fathers discovered, and have handed down to us who are their descendants under the name of harmonies; and the affections corresponding to them in the movements oi the human body, which when measured by numbers ought, as they say, to be called rhythms and measures; and they tell us that the same principle should be applied to every one and many; -when, I say. you have learned all this, then, my dear friend, you are perfect; and you may be said to understand am other subject, when you have a similar grasp of it. But the infinity of kinds and the infinity of individuals which there is in each of them, when not classified, creates in every one of us a state of infinite ignorance; and he who never looks for number in anything, will not himself be looked for in
—
the
number
Phi.
is I
of
famous men.
think that what Socrates is now excellent, Philebus. think so too, but how do his words
fiSJ Pro.
I
bear upon us and upon the argument 1 Soc. Philebus is right in asking that question of us, Protarchus.
and you must answer him. you must let me make one little remark first about these matters: I was saying, that he who begins with any individual unity, should proceed from that, not to infinity, but to a definite number, and now say conversely, that he who has to begin with infinity should not jump to unity, but he should look Pro. Indeed he I
is,
will; but
about for some number representing a certain quantity, and thus out of all end in one. And now let us return for an illustration of our principle to the case of letters.
Pro* Very true. iSoc,
note,
.
same kind.
:
so
I
And is
Soi
Soc.
illustration
whether ot an individual or one M\d yet infinite. Pro. Very true.
lips
Sound
Pro.
saying
dialectic.
of the
is
Mow
Sound
conceive,
I
by the
Prometheus, and therewith a blaze oJ our betters light; and the ancients, who were and nearer the gods than we are, handed clown the tradition, that whatevei things arc said to he arc composed of cue and main, and have tic unite and infinite implanted in them: seeing, then, that lUcb is the order of the world. v.
musician
is.
Pro, a
man
Soc.
What do you mean: Some god or divine man, who
in the
I
I
Ic^md
g\ plt.Ul
mg
\
lust
distinguished
the
tli.it
Vlli!
IN
oUsCI
tO
hum in
Il
r.
I
ol ihnii,
i
•
iii.l
ilitwlr,
'
tins
infinity
t
numbi und, bin
scum
«>w ell
)
.
\\
ere not
these
like
,
to»> exiii
:
in
nd lastly he distinguished w hu li w c now .ill muti .
.1
third
1
.iiul
w ithoul sound, and
«.
i 1
ided these, and
%
I
ikr
and Mini vowels, into the individual sounds, and told the h and .ill oi number Dt them, an them the name ot letters; and observii -I leai n an) one oi them and none not learn diem .ill. and in consideration o( this common bond w huh in mannei united them, single .in. and this he he assigned to them .ill n
-
.1
.1
Vh:.
mc
ui
hut
I
grammar
the .ut oi
!
r
illustration, Protarch us, has a understanding the original statement,
the defect oi
teel
which
\v
him
I
jusi
Pol W lull and delighl and the
hie:
1
K reminding VCI
.
properls
\
I
I
low
;
Mated
.is
Soc.
And we
.\nr .1
1
home
the question
until
and you agreed, and placed our disposal. And now. as children s.iv.
9
given cannot be taken 03
has been fairly
IS1
us in this
v.
.In what v
[20] Phi. any
which the an answer is, how
mind and knowii .in.
settled:
maintain that they are each of
the precise question to
I
understanding and
I
ing questions
And
;
pursuit, are
allov
v
Ph,. True. Soc.
superior :
Phi. Certainly.
them one?
order thai
in 1
at
Did we not begin by enquiring into the comparative eligibilityoi pleasure and wisdom? Soc.
and
1
.
amine and ompare Is, whu h m your opina
this h.is to
Phi.
I'hii'
1
now
you going to .isk. Philebus, what Jo with the argument? \ cs, th.it is a question which Prolan bus and have been long asking. issuredly you h.ive already arri the answer to the question which, .is you s.i\. you have been so long asking? \
th
us in dct
.
li
\
and
.
«
l»i pain and noi t bad al the time when be is suffei pain, c\a\ though he be the ben •»! nun;
he
pleasure
1
if.
th
•
htm
be laid b) ii\
i
in
in
t«>
be only ii.uui il
.i
And
heralds, bin everlasting.
il
the Cretan legislatoi public,
.in
vie* to war;
in
;
\»>n
who
the m>ml things
.ill
hands
into the
in .11
1>\
nthri
that there
nl\ man who in free!) and genuinely good l>\ like to hcai
.itt.i*
I
llv
the
i
ii\
nir inspiration oi hit
own
inured
manufactured. Thei
not
iball
I
ikr to he.u \oti
s.i\
nature,
wh.iti
\(
t
and thai
I
dren'i
JfOU h.i\e to
hood he w ill w ith me thus
Stranj
s.
ei
;and
when you have heard
youi thoughts. me ipeak, remind you >>t tie which unitei you to u must have heard hire the story ol the pr»>p!u-t Epimenides, who was oi m\ fams.i\
•
•
,
bold))
what
..
in
ii
.1
the
ine came to Athens ten ycMrt before the dan war, in accordance with the response oi Oracle, and offered certain sacrifices which
the
God commanded. The Athenians were
\\
•.
th.it In-
time
laid
and
m
ot the
when
at
Persian invasion; and
would not come, would go
tor ten ve.irs they
th.it
th.it
dread
they came, they
.'.
again without accomplishing any ot their objects, and would sutler more evil than they in-
At that time mv forefathers formed ties :alit\ with you; thus ancient is the And my parents have had friendship which
flicted.
1
tor you.
Ath. listen;
and
I
You seem
am
to
also readv to
lie
quite ready to
perform
as
much
can oi an almost impossible task, which I will nevertheless attempt. At the outset of the discussion, let me define the nature and power as
I
is the way by which our iment must travel onwards to the God Dionysus.
ot
education; tor this
Clc. Let us proceed,
if
you
please.
Ath. Well, then, if I tell you what are my notions of education, will you consider whether they satisfy you
:
ing, or
some other
.
(
exercise, for
amusement, and
the teacher should endeavour to direct the chil-
I.e.
»
hild Ml his th
r o|
|OTl ol
.t
tan
'1
///;.
t
Certainly.
edui ation
hen
us not le.ivr the
let
ambiguous
m
when we sped,
or
•
defined At pn
ill
terms
oi
praise or
bl
about the bringing up oi eai h pei .ill one m. m educated and anothei uneducated, although the uneducated man may be lomei ret.nl \er\ well educated for the calling \\
i^
t
And
Ifh.
.
that
r
I
01
ill
and why we should
lu.u
really
Cle. "I should," will be the
Ath.
"And you would
stone in
to states.
answer of every
one.
which there
is
rather have a touchno risk and no great
Cle. True. Ath. Does not this kind of fear preserve us in many important ways? What is there which so
danger than the reverse?"
and safety in war.' For two things which give victory confidence before enemies, and fear of disgrace be-
Ath. "And in order to make use of the draught, you would lead them amid these imaginary terrors, and prove them, when the af-
fore friends.
fection of fear was working upon them, and compel them to be fearless, exhorting and admonishing them; and also honouring them.
surely gives victory
there are
Cle.
Ath.
There
—
are.
Then each
of us should be fearless
and
Cle. In that proposition every
one may
safely
agree.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
652
but dishonouring any one who will not be persuaded by you to be in all respect! such as you command him; and if he underwent the trial well and mantully, you would let him go unscathed; but if ill, you would inflict a punishment upon him? Or would you abstain lrom using the potion altogether, although you have " no reason for abstaining :
Cle.
He would
be certain, Stranger, to use
Meg. Certainly.
Now,
Ath.
be cultivated in the soul: first, the greatest courage; secondly, the greatest fear
Which you
Cle.
reverence,
Thank you
Ath.
as the habit of
amid
for reminding me. But now, courage and fearlessness is to be
trained
Ath. This would be a mode of testing and training which would be wonderfully easy in comparison with those now in use, and might
opposite quality
indeed to any number; and he would do well who provided himself with the potion only, rather than with any number of other things, whether he preferred to be by himself in solitude, and there contend with his fears, because he was ashamed to be seen by the eye of man
he was perfect; or trusting to the force of nature and habits, and believing that he had been already disciplined sufficiently, he did not hesitate to train himself in company with any number of others, and display his power in conquering the irresistible change efhis virtue being such, fected by the draught that he never in any instance fell into any great unseemliness, but was always himself, and left off before he arrived at the last cup, fearing that he, like all other men, might be overcome by the potion. Cle. Yes, Stranger, in that last case, too, he until
his
own
—
might equally show
his self-control.
Ath. Let us return to the lawgiver, and say to him: "Well, lawgiver, there is certainly no such fear-potion which man has either received from the Gods or himself discovered; for witchcraft has no place at our board. But is there any potion which might serve as a test of
—
/ 6-/97
overboldness and excessive and indiscreet boasting? Cle.
I
suppose that he will say, Yes is such a potion.
—mean-
ing that wine
Ath. site
Is
not the efTect of this quite the oppo-
of the effect of the other?
When
a
man
drinks wine he begins to be better pleased with
and the more he drinks the more he is brave hopes, and conceit of his power, and at last the string of his tongue is loosened, and fancying himself wise, he is brimming over with lawlessness, and has no more fear or respect, and is ready to do or say himself,
filled
full of
anything. Cle. I think that every one will admit the truth of your description.
said to be characteristic of not mistaken.
am
if I
the potion.
be applied to a single person, or to a few, or
we were two things which should
us remember, as
let
saying, that there are
fears, let us consider is
whether the
not also to be trained
among
opposites. Cle. That is probably the case. Ath. There are times and seasons at which we are by nature more than commonly valiant and bold; now we ought to train ourselves on
these occasions to be as free
from impudence and to be afraid
and shamelessness
as possible,
to say or suffer or
do anything that
is
base.
Cle. True.
Ath. Are not the moments in which
we
are
—
apt to be bold and shameless such as these 2 when we are under the influence of anger, love, pride, ignorance, avarice, cowardice? or
wealth, beauty, strength, and
ing workings of pleasure
all
when
the intoxicat-
madden
us?
What
is
better adapted than the festive use of wine, in
and in the second place man, if care be taken in the use of it? What is there cheaper, or more innocent? For do but consider which is the Would you rather test a man greater risk: of a morose and savage nature, which is the source of ten thousand acts of injustice, by the
first
place to
test,
to train the character of a
—
making bargains with him at a risk to yourself, [650] or by having him as a companion at the festival of Dionysus? Or would you, if you to apply a touchstone to a man who is prone to love, entrust your wife, or your sons, or daughters to him, perilling your dearest interests in order to have a view of the condition of his soul? I might mention numberless cases, in which the advantage would be manifest of getting to know a character in sport, and without paying dearly for experience. And I do not believe that either a Cretan, or any other man, will doubt that such a test is a fair test, and safer, cheaper, and speedier than any
wanted
other.
Cle.
That
Ath.
And
is
certainly true.
this
knowledge of the natures and
habits of men's souls will be of the greatest
use in that art which has the
them; and that
art, if I
politics.
Cle. Exactly so.
am
management
of
not mistaken,
is
.
LAW
BOOK
•
now w
!>
'
*
whethri
OI it
\\a\c
r
human
into
onl
the
in
rom W
thcit Iff
and mu< h
na i
1!
to be d •
t
01
I
opinion u
11
innot be quiet
in theii
1
n
in
theii
and cry
t
ii -it
the
against thai
I
tnnr
1
men
all
forwards,
sr.i
5
haeani remained ten \r.ns, and
md
settle.
them properly, and as they have done, and numerous deaths, murreceive
to
were the consequence. Tne exiles came again, under i new name, no longer Achaeans, but Dorians a name which they derived from Dorieus; tor it w.is he who gathders, exiles,
—
them together. The rest ol the story is told by you Lacedaemonians as part ol the history
ered
Thus,
digressing from the original subject of laws into music and drinking-bouts, the argument has, providentially, come back to .itter
point, and presents to us another hanFor we have reached the settlement of Lacedaemon; [68 3 J which, as you truly say, is in laws m\A in institutions the sister of Crete.
the
same
dle.
And we are all the better for the digression, bewe have gone through various govern-
cause
ments and settlements, and have been present foundation of a first, second, and third state, succeeding one another in infinite time. And now there appears on the horizon a fourth state or nation which was once in process of settlement and has continued settled to this day.
at the
If,
out of
well or
all this,
ill
we
settled,
are able to discern
what
and what laws are the
ii
I
•
Temenui w
phontes of]
m
edaemon.
\4
ily.
Ath.
made
as the
Messene,
ol
To
these kings
men
the
.ill
oath thai the) would
assist
ol th.it d.iy
them,
one subverted their kingdom. M( g. True. Ath. Bui an kingship be dest royed, any other form ol government ever *\>' ti by any but the rulers themselves? No u .1
(
In /.ens.
1
[ave
1
WC already
forgotten wh.it w.is
said a little while agi
—
Then
this subject
the longest day of the year
for the discussion. I
suppose that
2
Certainly.
we must
now
further confirm
;
discussion,
we
shall nut be
enquiring about an
empty theory, I684/ but about events which actually happened. The case was as follows: Three royal heroes made oath to three cities which were under a kingly government, and the cities to the kings, that both rulers and subjects should govern and be governed according to the laws which were common to all of them: the rulers promised that as time and the race went forward they would not make their rule more arbitrary; and the subjects said that, if the rulers observed these conditions, they would
—
this the fact?
Meg. Yes. Ath. And the three
some God. Stranger, would promise us that our new enquiry about legislation would be as good and full as the present, I would go a great way to hear such another, and would think that a day as long as this and we are was too short
not
never subvert or permit others to subvert those
If
now approaching
And may we
what was then mentioned For we have Come upon tacts which have brought us back to the same principle; so that, in resuming the
kingdoms; the kings were to assist kings and peoples when injured, and the peoples were to assist peoples and kings in like manner. Is not
vious discussion.
Meg.
thr
is
and what are the destruction of cities, and what changes would make a state happy. O Megillusand Cleinias.we may now begin again, unless we have some fault to find with the pre-
Ath.
legend
mtu
salva-
tion
Meg.
///;.
Ath.
mre. \th.
ai thr in\
Meg. No.
ol Sparta.
.
i
.if
rue.
I
during the !rn \e.us in wlmh the \ haeans were besieging Ilium, the- hornet ol the besiegers were railing into an evil plight. Their youth revolted; and when tin- soldiers returned to their own cities and Families, they \inl
ought
I
ided thru three il
daemon.
I
I
did not
llir
daemon and
r
.i>
I
r and thr re 11 \
us, the\ di\ \v
it
'
moment w Trii
ihtless
consider
states to
whom
these laws
were given, whether their kings or any others were the authors of them, had therefore the greatest security for the maintenance of their :
constitutions.
Meg. What security : Ath. That the other two states were always to come to the rescue against a rebellious third. Meg. True. Ath. Many persons sav that legislators ought
^.682.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
668 to
mass of the people is just as it one gymnastic masters or physi-
impose such laws
as the
will be ready to receive: but this
were
to
command
cians to treat or cure their pupils or patients in
an agreeable manner.
Meg. Exactly. Ath. Whereas the physician may often be too happy if he can restore health, and make the
body whole, without any very great
inflic-
tion of pain.
Meg. Certainly. Ath. There was sessed by the
men
also another
advantage pos-
of that day, which greatly
lightened the task of passing laws.
1
Meg. What advantage? Ath. The legislators of that day, when they equalized property, escaped the great accusation
which generally
arises in legislation,
if
a
person attempts to disturb the possession of land, or to abolish debts, because he sees that without this reform there can never be any real equality.
Now,
in general,
when
the legislator
attempts to make a new settlement of such matters, every one meets him with the cry, that
"he
is
—
not to disturb vested interests" declaris introducing
ing with imprecations that he
agrarian laws and cancelling of debts, until a man is at his wits' end; whereas no one could quarrel with the Dorians for distributing the land there was nothing to hinder them; and
—
as for debts, they
had none which were consid-
erable or of old standing.
Meg. Very
true.
Ath. But then,
my
good
friends,
why
did the
settlement and legislation of their country turn
out so badly?
[685] Meg. How do you mean; and why do you blame them? Ath. There were three kingdoms, and of these, two quickly corrupted their original constitution and laws, and the only one which remained was the Spartan. Meg. The question which you ask is not easily answered. Ath. And yet must be answered when we are enquiring about laws, this being our old man's sober game of play, whereby we beguile the way, as I was saying when we first set out on our journey.
2
Meg. Certainly; and we must this
find out
why
was.
What
laws are more worthy of our attention than those which have regulated such
Ath.
what settlements of or more famous? cities' or
'Cf.
v. 736.
2
Cf.
i.
states are greater
I know of none. Ath. Can we doubt that your ancestors intended these institutions not only for the protection ot Peloponnesus, but of all the Hellenes, in cave they WCTC attacked by the barbarian 1 For the inhabitants of the region about Ilium, when they pro\okcd by their insolence the Trojan war, relied upon the power of the Ai and the Empire of Ninus, which still existed and had a great prestige; the people of those da\s tearing the united Assyrian Empire just as we now tear the Great King. And the capture of Troy was a serious oiu them, because Troy was a portion of the Assyrian Empire. To meet the danger the single army was distributed between three cities by a fair dethe royal brothers, sons of Heracles vice, as it seemed, and a far better arrangement than the expedition against Troy. For, firstly, the people of that day had, as they thought, in the Heraclidae better leaders than the Pelopidae; in the next place, they considered that their army was superior in valour to that which went against Troy; for, although the latter conquered the Trojans, they were themselves conquered by the Heraclidae Achaeans by Dorians. May we not suppose that this was the intention with which the men of those days framed the constitutions of their
Meg.
—
—
states?
Meg. Quite
true.
[686] Ath. And would not men who had shared with one another many dangers, and were governed by a single race of royal brothers, and had taken the advice of oracles, and in particular of the Delphian Apollo, be likely to think that such states would be firmly and lastingly established?
Meg. Of course they would. Ath. Yet these institutions, of which such great expectations were entertained, seem to
have
rapidly vanished away: with the ex-
all
ception, as
them which
I
was
saying, of that small part of
existed in your land.
And
this third
never to this day ceased warring against the two others; whereas, if the original idea had been carried out, and they had agreed to be one, their power would have been invincible in war. Meg. No doubt. part has
Ath. But what was the ruin of this glorious confederacy? Here is a subject well worthy of consideration.
Meg.
Certainly, no one will ever find
more
striking instances of laws or governments be625.
ing the salvation or destruction of great and
— I.
.,
mc
than
\\cic
presented
\w S
/."':
l
.a
.1
hen now we •em to nave happil) ir.tl .nivl importani question* in
l:'-i
.
I
n
/.'/».
sa gr
Inrnd.
tli.it
.»
turn OUI alter
.ill
to be I
mistake,
and not aocording to nature, either in our own case or in any ottM l/eg. To what are you referring, and uh.it Jo \m\ mean? ••linking of mv own admiration of tlu- aforesaid Heracktd expedition, which w.is so noble, and might have had such woa> derful results tor the Hellenes,
it
only rightly
was iust laughing .it myself. Meg. Hut wen- you not right ami wise in speaking M you did. mu\ we in assenting to you? \:h. Perhaps; and yet I cannot help observing th.it any one who sees anything great or powerful, immediately has the feeling that
.
owner only knew how to use his great and noble |x>ssession, how happy would he be, and what great results would he achieve!" g. And would he not be justified? Reflect; in what point of view does this "It the
"•':.
appear
just: First, in reference to
the question in hand:
—
If
the then
command-
had known how to arrange their army properly, how would they have attained success? Would not this have been the way 2 They would have bound them all hrmly togetherand preserved them for ever, giving them freedom and dominion at pleasure, combined with the power of doing in the whole world, Hellenic and barbarian, whatever they and their deers
scendants desired.
What
other
aim would they
have had?
Meg. Very good. Ath. Suppose any one were
in the
same way
admiration at the sight of great wealth or family honour, or the like, he would praise them under the idea that through them he would attain either all or the greater and chief part ot what he desires. Meg. He would. Ath. Well, now, and does not the argument show that there is one common desire of all to express his
mankind? Meg. What
ih
is it?
l.l
And
///;.
r\ri\ tiinr
lu%
«»!
I
111
V.
h.i\
ing thii
life, in
tnd
d
:d roil
may
I
1
soul's dr-.nr.
.ill
things
HI
hii
t
1
rived
]
.
.
When
the son
is
young and
I
:
you me. in Ath. Yes; or when the
father, in the
of age or the heat of youth, having
right
and
justice,
•
no sense of
pra\s with tervour, under the
influence of feelings akin to those ot Theseus
when he
cursed the unfortunate HippolytUS,
do you imagine that the son, having a u right and justice, will join in his father's prayers?
Meg. I understand you to mean that a man should not desire or be in a hurry to have all things according to his wish, for his wish may be at variance with his reason. Hut ever and every individual ought to pray and strive for
wisdom. [688
I remember, and you will remember, what said at first, that a statesman and legislator ought to ordain laws with a view to wisdom; while you were arguing that the good lawgiver ought to order all with a
Ath. Yes; and I
•
And
were four virtues, but that upon your view one of them only was the aim of legislation; whereas you ought to regard all virtue, and especially that which comes first, and is the leader of all the I mean wisdom and mind and opinion, rest having affection and desire in their train. And now the argument returns to the same point, and I say once more, in jest if you like, or in earnest if you like, that the prayer of a fool is full of danger, being likely to end in the opposite of what he desires. And if you would rather receive my words in earnest, I am willing that you should; and you will find, I suspect, as I have said already, that not cowardice war.
—
to this
I
replied that there
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
670
was the cause of the ruin of the Dorian kings and of their whole design, nor ignorance of military matters, either on the part of the rulers or of their subjects; but their misfortunes were due to their general degeneracy, and especially to their ignorance of the most important human affairs. That was then, and is still, and always will be the case, as I will endeavour, if you will allow me, to make out and demonam able to you who are my strate as well as friends, in the course of the argument. compliments are Cle. Pray go on. Stranger; I
—
troublesome, but we will show, not in word but in deed, how greatly we prize your words, for we will give them our best attention; and that is
the
way
in
which
a
freeman best shows
his
approval or disapproval.
Meg. Excellent, Cleinias; let us do as you say. Cle. By all means, if Heaven wills. Go on. Ath. Well, then, proceeding in the same train of thought,
I
say that the greatest ignorance
was the ruin of the Dorian power, and that now, as then, ignorance is ruin. And if this be true, the legislator must endeavour to implant wisdom in states, and banish ignorance to the
Cle. Yes,
and affirm
That
is
ly
now
the greatest ignorance.
consider I
what
is
should like to
real-
know
whether you and Megillus would agree with me in what I am about to say; for my opinion is
Cle.
What?
be good and noble, and loves and embraces that which he knows to be unrighteous and evil.
This disagreement between the sense of pleasure and the judgment of reason in the soul is, in my opinion, the worst ignorance; and also the greatest, because affecting the great mass of
human
soul; for the principle
which
pleasure and pain in the individual
is
feels
like the
mass or populace in a state. And when the soul is opposed to knowledge, or opinion, or reason, which are her natural lords, that I call folly,
when the multitude refuses obey their rulers and the laws; or, again, in the individual, when fair reasonings have their habitation in the soul and yet do no good, but rather the reverse of good. All these cases I term the worst ignorance, whether in individuals or in states. You will understand, Stranger, that I am speaking of something which is very different from the ignorance of handicrafts-
just as in the state,
to
men.
who
does not
know
authority entrusted to him: he must be stigmatized as ignorant, even though he be versed in calculation and skilled in all sorts of accomplishments, and feats of mental dextents and the opposite are to be called wise, even although, in the words ot the proverb, they know neither how to read nor how to swim; and to them, as to men of sense, authority is to be committed. For, O my friends, how can there be the least shadow of wisdom when there is no har:
mony? There
is
none; but the noblest
ant:
harmonies may be truly said to be the greatest wisdom; and of this he is a partaker who lives according to reason; whereas he who is devoid of reason is the destroyer of his house est of
and the very opposite of he
a saviour of the state:
wisdom. Let was saying, be laid down by us. Cle. Let it be so laid down. Ath. I suppose that there must be rulers and is
this,
utterly ignorant of political
then, as
I
subjects in states?
[690] Ath. And what are the principles on which men rule and obey in cities, whether : great or small: and similarly in families What are they, and how many in number? Is there not one claim of authority which is always just that of fathers and mothers and in general of
—
progenitors to rule over their offspring?
Ath. That the greatest ignorance is when a man hates that which he nevertheless thinks to
the
that the citizen
Cle. Certainly.
evident.
[68g] Ath. Then
understand and agree.
us. then, in the first place declare
these things ought nc\er to have any kind of
utmost of his power. Cle.
my friend, we
Ath. Let
Cle.
There
is.
Ath. Next follows the principle that the noble should rule over the ignoble; and, thirdly, that the elder should rule and the younger obey r Cle. To be sure. Ath. And, fourthly, that slaves should be ruled, and their masters rule? Cle.
Of
course.
Ath. Fifthly,
if I
am
not mistaken, comes the
and the weaker be ruled? Cle. That is a rule not to be disobeyed. Ath. Yes, and a rule which prevails very widely among all creatures, and is according to
principle that the stronger shall rule,
nature, as the
Theban poet Pindar once
said;
and the greatest of all, is, that the wise should lead and command, and the ignorant follow and obey; and yet, O thou most wise Pindar, as I should reply to and the
sixth principle,
him, this surely is not contrary to nature, but according to nature, being the rule of law over willing subjects, and not a rule of compulsion. Cle.
Most
true.
\\v S
I
nr awarded
a sc\rnll\ kin.
is
and
b) lot,
deal
in
t*»ki n is
and
i ruler,
to
Eaili
whom
m
the lubja
and
Men
those
who
at
1
lightl)
.in
we
ia) playfull) to
any
undertake the making
l
tlu-
principles
iiuiiit.iinlu-.nl
must attend, And,
which
jrou
you
consider with un,
the kings o\ these our
Argos
how .unl
ot
seditions,
we
first,
to
will .iNk
.unl in whai re Measene violated
maxims, .unl ruined themselves .unl famous Hellenic power of the
Was h because they did not know wisely Hesiod spoke when he said that s half is often more than the whole? 1
u-ss. in
1
1
meaning was, that would lx* dangerous,and to he the sale and moderate course, then the modcrate or better was more than the immoderate or worse."
Ath. spirit to
than
true.
And may we he
more
fatal
when among
suppose
this
immoderate
when tound among kings is
that ignorance
will he a disorder especially prevalent
kings, because they lead a
among
proud and luxurious
life.
Ath. Is it not palpablethat the chief aimof the kings of that time was to get the better of the
and that they were not in harhad agreed to observe by word and oath? This want of harmony may have had the appearance of wisdom, but was really, as we assert, the greatest ignorance, and utterly overthrew the whole empire by dissonance and harsh discord. Clc. Yerv likely. Ath. Good; and what measures ought the established laws,
mony with
the principles which they
have then taken in order to avert ? Truly there is no great wisdom in knowing, and no great difficulty in telling, after the evil has happened; but to have foreseen the remedy at the time would have taken a much wiser head than ours. legislator to this
much
authority to 'he
1
to say, 111.111,
\.uis had joined the loldiers ol tndthii hands and netted the who) report, whethei well *»r ill founded, w.i% terri ill lellenes, and above .ill to the the Athenians, and thq dispatt bed embassies in .ill directions, hut no one was willing to come to their relief, with the exception oi tin a< edae tnonians; and they,eithei because the] w ere de tained b) the Messenian war, which was then on, i»r tor some other reason oJ whu h we .hc- not told, came day too late tor the battle or Marathon. After while, tlu- news arrived nt mighty preparations being made, and innumerable threats came From the king. Then, .is tunc went on, rumour reached us mat ).ir ins had died, and that his son. who was young and hot headed, 6*99 had come to tlu- throne and was persisting in his design. The Athenians were under the impression ih.it the whole expedition was directed against them, in consequence oi the battle oi Marathon; and hearthe bridge over the [ellespont, and the canal ot Athos, and the host ot ships, considering that there was no salvation tor them either by land or by sea, tor there was no one to help them, and remembering that in the first expe-
nor,
675
and a tthens thai
dition,
Ml
was the
that higher
which they had acquired by obedience to and which I have several
w ho have inhei ited tlu- irtu< ma) prop ol the ai da) \nd would with sou .in.: sidei w bethel m) wordi have not \
I
lation;
U
i«>i
the pleasure
ir
I
am
into
all
i.m\
:
freedom.
tor
pre\ ions
ir
thi
lark thai the
certain tense, the same;
people into UttCI
1
noi
talking, but
- \onng and have a good memory; let him Ik; qui learning, and oi i courageous and noble nai let him have thai quality which, at 1 lid before,
is
the inseparable
other paits
good
in
ol
\
irtue, /
m
companion
JioJ
it
there
is
all
the
to be
any
them."
suppose, Mcgillus, that this companion virtue of which the Stranger speaks, must be Cle.
I
temperance?
temperance in the vulgar which in the forced and exaggerated language ol some philosophers is called prudence, but that which is the natural gift of children and animals, of whom some live continently and others incontinently, but when isolated, was as we said, hardly worth reckoning in the catalogue of goods. 1 think that you must understand my meaning. .Ith. Yes, Cleinias,
sense; not that
1
Cle. Certainly.
Ath. Then our tyrant must have this as well as the other qualities, if the state is to acquire in the best manner and in the shortest time the form of government which is most conducive to happiness; for there neither is nor ever will be a better or speedier way of establishing a polity than by a tyranny. Cle. By what possible arguments. Stranger, can any man persuade himself of such a monstrous doctrine? Ath. There is surely no difficulty in seeing, Cleinias, what is in accordance with the order of nature? Cle. You would assume, as you say. a tyrant who was young, temperate, quick at learning,
having a good memory, courageous, of
a noble
nature? Ath. Yes; and you must add fortunate; and
true.
Ath. In each case the
Cle.
believe thai
1
What
would thru only
but u the
thin.
Clc.
fortune, hr
"wh.it are the conditions which you rcquii
s.mic principle applies equally to
-:.
(
tin
it
thru spo
o
be to the purpose, there can be no barm.
I
l>\
milv. tad ill the
I
Clc
something deptfeaatory
this
'
lends im>:
mankind than
oi
;n\ ipeculationi
the-
Were granted
tioned,
10,
M
rightl) !
pi.i\
hand, the conflux might !>e
l
our
marvellously tyrannical; and some times n appears to me to be oi .ill cities the mosi
Ephors
and who can reasonably deny
We
thai
monar< bi which is held for life, and issaid byall mankind, and imt b) ourselves only, to be the most an cient oi .ill monarchies; and, therefore, when asked on Midden, cannot precisely say which Eorm oi government the Spartan is. am in the same difficulty, Megillus; lor Jo not feel confident that the polity of Cnosus it
.m arista rac)
is
.1
have also
a
I
I
I
is
.m\
you
The
reason
have
re.ill\
we were
is,
my
polities,
excellent friends, that
but the states of which are merely aggre-
now speaking men dwelling in
just
gations of
cities
who
are the
and servants of a part of their own state, lyi^l and each of them is named after the dominant power; they are not polities at all. But it states are to be named atter their rulers, the true state ought to be called by the name of the God who rules over wise men. subjects
And who is this God? May still make use of fable to some exin the hope that I may be better able to
Cle.
Ath. tent,
I
answer your question: Cle. By all means.
shall I?
Ath. In the primeval world, and a long while came into being whose settlements we have described, there is said to have been in the time of Cronos a blessed rule and
before the cities
life, is
which the best-ordered of existing
of
a copy. Cle.
It
ed OVCTUS
tin-
,t God; wisr iii.indiHii think,
I
in Ik-
QO dOttbt
«>l
.n k
m them
em it)
ol their
the e xt r
long he OUghl lif.ri to to have uttered, .m unl>e< omui;' word
\n,
Utter, ol
to
111
thirdly, in Ins soul, in return
stowed upon him
tli.it.
rhen wh.it liir is agreeable to rod, and becoming in nil Eoilowera One only, expressed iim
s
I
.ill
\\\;
[iff
them; for of light and
fleeting
words the pen-
most severe; Nemesis, the mesi justice, is appointed to wan h over -ill matters. When the) are angry and want to at istv their feelings Ml word or drril, he should give Way to them; tor a t.ithrr who thinks th.it he has been wronged bv his son m.iv In- reaSOfl ably expected to be very angry At their death,
alty
is
.
the most moderate funeral
is
best, neithei
Ceeding the customary expense, nor yet tailing short ot the honour which has been usually shown by the former generation to their parents. And let a man not torget to pay the yearly tribute ot respect to the dead,
honouring them
by omitting nothing that conduces to a perpetual remembrance of them, IjiHj and giving a reasonable portion of his fortune to the dead. Doing this, and living after this manner, we shall receive our reward from the Gods and those who are above us i.e., the demons ]; and we shall spend our days for the most part in good hope. And how a man ought to order what relates to his descendants and his kindred chiefly
[
and the rites of Heaven, and the intercourse which arises out of all these duties, with a view to the embellishment and orderly regu-
and friends and
fellow-citizens,
hospitality taught by
lation of his
own
life
—these things,
I
say, the
we
proceed with them, will accomplish, partly persuading, and partly when natures do not yield to the persuasion of custom, chastising them by might and right, and will thus render our state, if the Gods co-operate with us, prosperous and happy. But of what has to be
laws,as
said,
of
and must be
my way
said
by the legislator
of thinking,
and
yet,
if
who
is
said in the
—
form of law, would be out of place of this I think that he may give a sample for the instruction of himself and of those for whom he is legislating; and then when, as far as he is able, he has gone through all the preliminaries, he proceed to the work of legislation. Now, : will be the form of such prefaces. There may be a difficulty in including or describing them all under a single form, but I think that we may get some notion of them if we can guarantee one thing.
may
what
Cle.
What
is
that?
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
684
done in the way of conciliand is always worth having. no great inclination or readiness on
Take an example from been saying/ Of three kinds of funerals, there is one which is too extravagant, another is too niggardly, the third is a mean; and you choose and approve and order the last without qualification. But if I had an extremely rich wife, and she bade me bury her and describe her burial in a poem, I should praise the extravagant sort; and a poor miserly man, who had not much money to spend, would approve of the niggardly; and the man of moderate means, who was himself moderate, would
mankind to be made as good, or as quickly good, as possible. The case of the many proves the wisdom of Hesiod, who says that the road to wickedness is smooth and can be travelled without perspiring, because it is so very short:
moderate funeral. Now you in the camust not barely say "a moderate funeral," but you must define what moderation is, and how much; unless you are definite, you must not suppose that you are speaking a language that can become law.
Ath. I should wish thecitizens to be as readily persuaded to virtue as possible; this will surely be the aim of the legislator in Cle. Certainly.
The
Ath.
all
his laws.
proposal appears to
me
to be of
some value; and think that a person will listen with more gentleness and good-will to the precepts addressed to him by the legislator, when I
his soul
is
not altogether unprepared to receive
them. Even a
little
ation gains his ear,
For there
is
the part of
thing, but one only.
what you have
just
praise a
pacity of legislator
Cle. Certainly not.
But before virtue the immortal Gods have placed the sweat of labour, and long and steep is the way thither, [jig] and rugged at first; but when you have reached the top, although difficult before, it is then easy. Cle. Yes; and he certainly speaks well. Ath. Very true: and now let me tell you the effect which the preceding discourse has had
upon me. Cle. Proceed. Ath. Suppose that we have a little conversation with the legislator, and say to him "O,
—
legislator, speak;
to say
if
you know what we ought
and do, you can surely
tell."
Of
course he can. we not hear you just now saying, 1 that the legislator ought not to allow the poets Cle.
Ath. "Did
And
our legislator to have no preface Do this, avoid and then holding the penalty in terrorem, that to go on to another law; offering never a word of advice or exhortation to those for whom he Ath.
is
to his laws, but to say at once
—
is
legislating,
[720]
after the
doctors? For of doctors, as
I
manner
of
may remind
some you,
some have a gentler, others a ruder method of cure; and as children ask the doctor to be gentle with them, so we will ask the legislator to cure our disorders with the gentlest remedies. What I
mean
to say
that besides doctors there are
is,
doctors' servants,
who
are also styled doctors.
Cle.
Very
Ath.
And whether they are
makes no
true.
slaves or
freemen
difference; they acquire their knowl-
edge of medicine by obeying and observing
do what they liked? For that they would not know in which of their words they went against
their masters; empirically
the laws, to the hurt of the state."
freemen is, who have learned scientifically themselves the art which they impart scientifically to their pupils. You are aware that there are
to
Cle.
That
is
true.
Ath. May we not fairly make answer to him on behalf of the poets? Cle. What answer shall we make to him? Ath. That the poet, according to the tradition which has ever prevailed among us, and is accepted of all men, when he sits down on the tripod of the muse, is not in his right mind; like a fountain, he allows to flow out freely whatever comes in, and his art being imitative, he is often compelled to represent men of opposite dispositions, and thus to contradict himself; neither can he tell whether there is more truth in one thing that he has said than in another. But this is not the case in a law; the legislator must give not two rules about the same 1
Cf.
the natural
these
656,
fl.
and not according
to
manner
of
of learning, as the
classes of doctors?
To be sure. Ath. And did you Cle.
two classes of men; and the
ever observe that there are
patients in states, slaves slave doctors run about
the slaves, or wait for
—practitioners of
them
and freeand cure
in the dispensaries
never talk to their patients individually, or let them talk about their own individual complaints? The slavedoctor prescribes what mere experience suggests, as if he had exact knowledge; and when he has given his orders, like a tyrant, he rushes of! with equal assurance to some other servant who is ill; and so he relieves the master of the 2
ii.
two
way
Cf. 7 i 7
.
this sort
LAWS But the other doctor, who is a freeman, attends and practises upon freemen; and he carries his enquiries far back, and goes into the nature of the disorder; he enters into discourse with the patient and with his friends, and is at once getting information from the sick man, and also instructing him as far as he is able, and he will not prescribe forhimuntil he has first convinced him; at last, when he has brought the patient more and more under his persuasive influences and set him on the road to health, he attempts to effect a cure. Now which is the better way of proceeding in a physician and in a trainer? Is he the better who accomplishes his ends in a double way, or he who works in one way, and house of the care of his invalid slaves.
and
that the ruder Cle.
way
is
I
inferior?
should say, Stranger, that the double
far better.
Ath. Should you like to see an example of the double
and
single
Cle. Certainly
[j2i] Ath.
I
method
in legislation?
should.
What
will be our first
law? Will
not the legislator, observing the order of nature, begin by making regulations for states about
IV
be
Very true. Ath. And, according
fine;
but he
who
when he
is
has
amount, in order that not imagine his celibacy to bring ease and profit to him; and he shall not share in the honours which the young men in the state give to the aged. Comparing now the two forms of the law, you will be able to arrive at a judgment about any other laws whether they should be double in length even when shortest, because they have to persuade as well as threaten, or whether they shall only threaten and be of half the length.
may
—
Meg. The shorter form, Stranger, would be more in accordance with Lacedaemonian custom; although, for my own part, if any one were to ask me which I myself prefer in the state, I should certainly determine in favour of the longer; [722] and I would have every law made after the same pattern, if I had to choose. But I think that Cleinias is the person to be consulted, for his is the state which is going to use these laws.
Thank
—
would run thus:
—A man
the ages of thirty
manner
and
the
shall
marry between
thirty-five,
human
considering
race naturally par-
which every man is by nature inclined to desire to the utmost; for the desire of every man that he may become famous, and not lie in the grave without a name, is only the love of continuance. Now mankind takes of immortality,
all
time,
be
many
you, Megillus.
or few,
best form,
and are ever following, and so
will ever follow, the course of time;
they are immortal, because they leave children's children behind them, and partake of immor-
unity of generation.
And for a man
voluntarily to deprive himself of this gift, as he deliberately does who will not have a wife or
the
is
a
v^ery foolish
and not the
proved; nor
to the true order, the laws relating to marriage should be those which are first determined in every state? Cle. Quite so. Ath. Then let me first give the law of marriage in a simple form; it may run as follows: A man shall marry between the ages of thirty and thirty-five, or, if he does not, he shall pay such and such a fine, or shall suffer the loss of such and such privileges. This would be the simple law about marriage. The double law
tality in the
pay no
shall
Ath. Whether, in the abstract, words are to
Cle.
are coeval with
and
yearly fine of a certain
he
Cle.
that in a
impiety. He who obeys the law shall
arrived at the age of thirty-five, shall pay a
He will.
Ath. In all states the birth of children goes back to the connection of marriage?
and
free,
is
disobedient, and does not marry,
births? Cle.
685
children,
is
length at
question; the
is to be apbe regarded. Of
shortest, all to
two forms of law which have been recited, is not only twice as good in practical
the one
usefulness as the other, but the case
of the
two kinds
of doctors,
which
is
I
like that
was
just
mentioning. And yet legislators never appear to have considered that they have two instruments which they might use in legislation persuasion and force; for in dealing with the rude and uneducated multitude, they use the one only as far as they can; they do not mingle persuasion with coercion, but employ force pure and simple. Moreover, there is a third point, sweet friends, which ought to be, and never is, regarded in our existing laws.
now
—
Cle.
Ath.
What
is it?
A point arising out of our previous dis-
cussion,
which comes
into
my mind
in
some
mysterious way. All this time, from early dawn until noon, have we been talking about laws in this charming retreat: now we are going to promulgate our laws, and what has preceded was only the prelude of them. Why do I menBecause all distion this? For this reason: courses and vocal exercises have preludes and overtures, which are a sort of artistic beginnings intended to help the strain which is to be per-
—
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
686
formed;
ond and
er kind
the principles which
lyric measures and music of every othhave preludes framed with wonderiul care. But of the truer and higher strain of law and politics, no one has ever yet uttered any
composed or published any, as though there was no such thing in nature. Whereas our present discussion seems to me to imply that there is; these double laws, of which we were speaking, are not exactly double, but they are in two parts, [723] the law and the prelude of the law. The arbitrary command, which was compared to the commands of doctors, whom we described as of the meaner sort, was the law pure and simple; and that which preceded, and was described by our prelude, or
—
friend here as being hortatory only, was,
al-
though in fact, an exhortation, likewise analogous to the preamble of a discourse. For I imagine that all this language of conciliation, which the legislator has been uttering in the preface of the law, was intended to create good1
better beginning,
if
you
we have been
please,
laying
with
down,
which we never thought of regarding as a preamble before, but of which we may now make a preamble, and not merely consider them to be chance topics of discourse. Let us acknowledge, then, that we have a preamble. About the honour of the Gods and the respect of parents, enough has been already said; and we may proceed to the topics which follow next in order, until the preamble is deemed by you to be complete; and after that you shall go through the laws themselves. [724] Ath. I understand you to mean that we have made a sufficient preamble about Gods and demi-gods, and about parents living or dead; and now you would have us bring the rest of the subject into the light of day? Cle. Exactly.
Ath. After of us
all, I
this, as is
meet and
for the interest
the speaker, and you the listeners,
whom he addressed, in order that, by reason of this good-will, he might
will try to estimate all that relates to the souls
command, that is to say, the law. And therefore, in my way of speaking, this is more rightly described as the
gards both their occupations and amusements, and thus arrive, as far as in us lies, at the nature of education. These then are the topics which follow next in order. Cle. Very good.
will in the person
more
intelligently receive his
preamble than
as the matter of the law.
And
I
must further proceed to observe, that to all his laws, and to each separately, the legislator should prefix a preamble; he should remember
how
will certainly legislate in the
form which you
advise.
Ath. ias, in
I
think that you are quite right, Cleinall laws have preambles,
affirming that
and that throughout the whole of this work of legislation every single law should have a suitable preamble at the beginning; for that which is to follow is most important, and it makes all the difference whether we clearly remember the preambles or not. Yet we should be wrong in requiring that all laws, small and great alike, should have preambles of the same kind, any more than all songs or speeches; although they be natural to
all,
they are not always neces-
and whether they are
to be employed or not has in each case to be left to the judgment of the speaker or the musician, or, in the present instance, of the lawgiver. Cle. That I think is most true. And now, Stranger, without delay let us return to the argument, and, as people say in play, make a secsary,
1
Cf. 718.
of the citizens, as re-
BOOK V
great will be the difference between them,
according as they have, or have not, such preambles, as in the case already given. Cle. The lawgiver, if he asks my opinion,
may
and bodies and properties
[726] Athenian Stranger. Listen, all ye who have just now heard the laws about Gods, and about our dear forefathers: Of all the things which a man has, next to the Gods, his soul is the most divine and most truly his own. Now in every man there are two parts: the better and superior, which rules, and the worse and inferior, which serves; [727] and the ruling part of him is always to be preferred to the subject. Wherefore I am right in bidding every one next to the Gods, who are our masters, and
—
those
who
in
order follow them
[i.e.,
the de-
mons], to honour his own soul, which every one seems to honour, but no one honours as he ought; for honour is a divine good, and no evil thing is honourable; and he who thinks that he can honour the soul by word or gift, or any sort of compliance, without making her in any way better, seems to honour her, but honours her not at all. For example, every man, from his very boyhood, fancies that he is able to know everything, and thinks that he honours his soul by praising her, and he is very ready to let her do whatever she may like. But I mean to say that in acting thus he injures his soul, and is
LAWS V from honouring her; whereas, in our opinhe ought to honour her as second only to the Gods. Again, when a man thinks that others are to be blamed, and not himself, for the errors which he has committed from time to time, and the many and great evils which befell him in consequence, and is always fancying himself to be exempt and innocent, he is under the idea that he is honouring his soul; whereas the very reverse is the fact, for he is really injuring her. And when, disregarding the word and approval of the legislator, he indulges in pleasure, then again he is far from honouring her; he only dishonours her, and fills her full of evil and remorse; or when he does not endure to the end the labours and fears and sorrows and pains which the legislator approves, but gives way before them, then, by yielding, he does not honour the soul, but by all such conduct he makes her to be dishonourable; nor when he thinks that life at any price is a good, does he honour her, but yet once more he dishonours her; for the soul having a notion that the world below is all evil, he yields to her, and does not resist and teach or convince her that, for aught she knows, the world of the Gods befar
ion,
low, instead of being evil, may be the greatest of all goods. Again, when any one prefers beau-
what is this but the real and utter dishonour of the soul? For such a preference implies that the body is more honourable than the soul; and this is false, for there is nothing of earthly birth which is more honourable than the heavenly, and he who thinks otherwise of the soul has no idea how greatly he undervalues this wonderful possession; [J28] nor, again, when a person is willing, or not unwilling, to acquire dishonest gains, does he then honour his soul with gifts far otherwise; he sells her glory and honour for a small piece of gold; but all the gold which is under or upon the earth is not enough to give in exchange for virtue. In a word, I may say that he who does not estimate the base and evil, the good and noble, according to the standard of the legislator, and abstain in every possible way from the one and practise the other to the utmost of his power, does not know that in all these respects he is most foully and disgracefully abusing his ty to virtue,
—
soul,
which
one, as
I
is
may
the divinest part of
man; for no which is
say, ever considers that
declared to be the greatest penalty of evil-doing
— namely, to grow into the likeness of bad men, and growing
them to fly from the converand be cut off from them, and follow after the company of
like
sation of the good,
and cleave
to
687
And he who is joined to them must do and suffer what such men by nature do and say to one another a suffering which is not justice but retribution; for justice and the just are noble, whereas retribution is the suffering which waits upon injustice; and whether a man escape or endure this, he is miserable in the former case, because he is not cured; while in the bad.
—
—
the latter, he perishes in order that the rest of
mankind may be
saved.
Speaking generally, our glory is to follow the better and improve the inferior, which is susceptible of improvement, as far as this is possible.
And
of
all
human
possessions, the soul
is
by nature most inclined to avoid the evil, and track out and find the chief good; which when a man has found, he should take up his abode with it during the remainder of his life. Wherefore the soul also is second [or next to God] in honour; and third, as every one will perceive, comes the honour of the body in natural order. Having determined this, we have next to conis a natural honour of the body, honours some are true and some are
sider that there
and that
of
counterfeit.
To
decide which are which
business of the legislator; and he,
would intimate
I
is
the
suspect,
—
that they are as follows: Honnot to be given to the fair body, or to the strong or the swift or the tall, or to the healthy body (although many may think otherwise), any more than to their opposites; but the mean
our
is
states of all these habits are by far the safest and most moderate; for the one extreme makes the soul braggart and insolent, and the other, illiberal and base; and money, and property, and distinction all go to the same tune. The excess of any of these things is apt to be a source of hatreds and divisions [72g] among states and individuals; and the defect of them is commonly a cause of slavery. And, therefore, I would not have any one fond of heaping up riches for the sake of his children, in order that he may leave them as rich as possible. For the possession of great wealth is of no use, either to them or to the state. The condition of youth which is free from flattery, and at the same time not in need of the necessaries of life, is the best and most harmonious of all, being in accord and agreement with our nature, and making life to be most entirely free from sorrow. Let parents, then, bequeath to their children not a heap of
We, indeed, fancy that they will inherit reverence from us, if we rebuke them when they show a want of reverence. But this quality is not really imparted to them by the present style of admonition, riches, but the spirit of reverence.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
688
which only tells them that the young ought always to be reverential. A sensible legislator will rather exhort the elders to reverence the younger, and above all to take heed that no young man sees or hears one of themselves doing or saying anything disgraceful; for where old men have no shame, there young men will most certainly be devoid of reverence.
The
best
way
of
young is to train yourself at the same time; not to admonish them, but to be
training the
always carrying out your
He who
own
admonitions
in
and reveres those who share in the same Gods and are of the same blood and family, may fairly practice.
honours
his kindred,
expect that the Gods who preside over generation will be propitious to him, and will quicken
he who deems the services which and acquaintances do for him, greater and more important than they themselves deem them, and his own favours to them less his seed.
And
his friends
than theirs to him, will have their good-will in the intercourse of tions to the state
life.
and
And
surely in his rela-
his fellow-citizens, he
is
by far the best, who rather than the Olympic or any other victory of peace or war, desires to win the palm of obedience to the laws of his country, and who, of all mankind, is the person reputed to have obeyed them best through life. In his relations to strangers, a man should con-
most holy thing, and that all concerns and wrongs of strangers are more directly dependent on the protection of God, than wrongs done to citizens; for the stranger, having no kindred and friends, is more to be pitied by Godsand men. Wherefore, also, he who is most able to avenge him is most zealous in his cause; and he who is most able is the genius and the god of the stranger, [j^o] who follow in the train of Zeus, the god of sider that a contract
is
a
And for this reason, he who has a spark of caution in him, will do his best to pass through life without sinning against the stran-
strangers.
ger. And of offences
committed, whether against
strangers or fellow-countrymen, that against
suppliants
is
the greatest. For the God
who
wit-
made with the supspecial manner the guard-
nessed to the agreement pliant,
becomes
in a
and he will certainly not unavenged. Thus we have fairly described the manner in which a man is to act about his parents, and himself, and his own affairs; and in relation to the state, and his friends, and kindred, both in what concerns his own countrymen, and in ian of the sufferer;
suffer
what concerns the stranger. We will now consider what manner of man he must be who
would best pass through life in respect of those other things which are not matters of law, but and blame only; in which praise and blame educate a man, and make him more tractable and amenable to the laws which are about
of praise
to be
imposed.
Truth
is the beginning of every good thing, both to Gods and men; and he who would be blessed and happy, should be from the first a partaker of the truth, that he may live a true man as long as possible, for then he can be trusted; but he is not to be trusted who loves voluntary falsehood, and he who loves involuntary falsehood is a fool. Neither condition is enviable, for the untrustworthy and ignorant has no friend, and as time advances he becomes known, and lays up in store for himself isolation in crabbed age when life is on the wane:
so that, whether his children or friends are alive
—
is equally solitary. Worthy of honour is he who does no injustice, and of more than twofold honour, if he not only does no injustice himself, but hinders others from doin^ any; the first may count as one man, the second is worth many men, because he informs the
or not, he
rulers of the injustice of others.
And
yet
more
highly to be esteemed is he who co-operates with the rulers in correcting the citizens as far as
he can
—he
shall be
perfect citizen,
The same
proclaimed the great and
and bear away the palm of
may
vir-
be given about temperance and wisdom, and all other goods which may be imparted to others, as well as acquired by a man for himself; he who imparts them shall be honoured as the man of men, and he who is willing, [731] yet is not able, may be allowed the second place; but he who is jealous and will not, if he can help, allow others to partake in a friendly way of any good, is deserving of blame: the good, however, which he has, is not to be undervalued by us because it is possessed by him, but must be acquired by us also to the utmost of our power. Let every man, then, freely strive for the prize of virtue, and let there be no envy. For the unenvious nature increases the greatness of states he himself contends in the race, blasting the fair fame of no man; but the envious, who thinks that he ought to get the better by defaming others, is less energetic himself in the pursuit of true virtue, and reduces his rivals to despair by his unjust slanders of them. And so he makes the whole city to enter the arena untrained in the practice of virtue, and diminishes her glory as far as in him lies. Now every man should be valiant, but he should also be gende. From the tue.
praise
—
LAWS V cruel, or hardly curable, or altogether incurable
done
acts of injustice
to
him by
man
others, a
can only escape by fighting and defending himself and conquering, and by never ceasing to punish them; and no man who is not of a noble spirit is able to accomplish this. As to the ac-
who do
tions of those
evil,
but whose
curable, in the first place, let us
man is not unjust For no man of his own
evil is
remember
that
own
free
the unjust
of his
will.
free will
would and least
choose to possess the greatest of evils, all in the most honourable part of himself.
of
And
we said, is of a truth deemed the most honourable. In the soul, then, which is the most honourable part of him, no one, if he could help, would admit, or allow
by
the soul, as
all
men
1
continue the greatest of evils. The unrighteous and vicious are always to be pitied in any case; and one can afford to forgive as well as to
pity
him who
curable,
is
and refrain and calm
one's anger, not getting into a passion, like a
woman, and nursing
who evil,
ill-feeling.
But upon him
incapable of reformation and wholly the vials of our wrath should be poured is
out; wherefore
good men ought, when be both gentle and pas-
say that
I
occasion demands, to sionate.
Of
all evils
souls of
the greatest
most men
is
innate,
is
one which in the
and which a
man
always excusing in himself and never correcting; I mean, what is expressed in the saying that "Every man by nature is and ought to be is
his
own
friend."
self is in reality
Whereas the
excessive love of
the source to each
offences; for the lover
is
loved, so that he judges
man
of
all
blinded about the be-
wrongly of the
just,
[732] the good, and the honourable, and thinks that he ought always to prefer himself to the truth. But he who would be a great man ought to regard, not himself or his interests, but what is just, whether the just act be his own or that of another.
Through
a similar error
induced to fancy that their
own
men
are
ignorance
wisdom, and thus we who may be truly
is
said to
know
nothing, think that we know all things; and because we will not let others act for us in
what we do not know, we are compelled to act amiss ourselves. Wherefore let every man avoid excess of self-love, and condescend to follow a better man than himself, not allowing any false shame to stand in the way. There are also minor precepts which are often repeated, and are quite as useful; a
man should
recollect
them
and remind himself of them. For when a stream is
flowing out, there should be water flowing 1
Cf. Republic,
ii.
382.
689
in too; is
and
recollection flows in while
departing. Therefore
refrain
from excess
and should exhort
I
say that a
wisdom
man
should
either of laughter or tears,
neighbour to do the immoderate sorrow or joy, and seek to behave with propriety, whether the genius of his good fortune remains with him, or whether at the crisis of his fate, when he seems to be mounting high and steep places, the Gods oppose him in some of his enterprises. Still he may ever hope, in the case of good men, that whatever afflictions are to befall them in the future God will lessen, and that present evils he will change for the better; and as to the goods which are the opposite of these evils, he will not doubt that they will be added to them, and that they will be fortunate. Such should be men's hopes, and such should be the exhortations with which they admonish one another, never losing an opportunity, but on every occasion distinctly reminding themselves and others of all these things, both in jest and same; he should
his
veil his
earnest.
Enough has now been said of divine matters, both as touching the practices which men ought to follow, and as to the sort of persons who they ought severally to be. But of human things we have not as yet spoken, and we must; for to men we are discoursing and not to Gods. Pleasures and pains and desires are a part of human nature, and on them every mortal being must of necessity hang and depend with the most eager interest. And therefore we must praise the noblest life, not only as the fairest in appearance, but as being one which, if a man will only taste, and not, while still in his youth, desert for another, [733] he will find to surpass also in the very thing which we all of us desire
—
I
mean
ure and
And
in
having a greater amount of pleaspain during the whole of life.
less of
this will
be plain,
if
a
man
has a true taste
and clearly seen. But what is a true taste ? That we have to learn from the argument the point being what is according to nature, and what is not according to nature. One life must be compared with another, the more pleasurable with the more painful, after this manner: We desire to have of them, as will be quickly
—
—
we neither desire nor choose pain; and the neutral state we are ready to take in exchange, not for pleasure but for pain; and we pleasure, but
pain and greater pleasure, but we do not wish for; and an equal balance of either we cannot venture to assert that we should desire. And all these differ or do not differ severally in number also
wish for
less
pleasure and greater pain
less
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
690
and magnitude and
intensity
in the opposites of these
and equality, and
when regarded
jects of choice, in relation to desire.
as ob-
And
being the necessary order of things,
such
we wish
which there are many great and and pain, and in which the pleasures are in excess, and do not wish for that in which the opposites exceed; nor, again, do we wish for that in which the elements of either are small and few and feeble, and the pains exceed. And when, as I said before, there is a balance of pleasure and pain for that
life in
intense elements of pleasure
is to be regarded by us as the balwhile other lives are preferred by us because they exceed in what we like, or are rejected by us because they exceed in what we dislike. All the lives of men may be regarded by us as bound up in these, and we must also consider what sort of lives we by nature desire.
in life, this
anced
And
life;
if
we wish
for any others,
I
say that
we
them only through some ignorance and inexperience of the lives which actually exist. Now, what lives are they, and how many in which, having searched out and beheld the objects of will and desire and their opposites. and making of them a law, choosing, I say, the dear and the pleasant and the best and noblest, a man may live in the happiest way possible? Let desire
us say that the temperate life is one kind of life, and the rational another, and the courageous another, and the healthful another; and to these four let us oppose four other lives the fool-
—
ish,
the cowardly, the intemperate, the diseased.
He who knows
the temperate
life will
describe
it as in all things gentle, having gentle pains and gentle pleasures, and placid desires and loves not insane; [J34] whereas the intemperate life is impetuous in all things, and has violent pains and pleasures, and vehement and stinging desires, and loves utterly insane; and
in the
temperate
life
the pleasures exceed the
pains, but in the intemperate life the pains ex-
ceed the pleasures in greatness and number and frequency. Hence one of the two lives is naturally and necessarily more pleasant and the other more painful, and he who would live pleasandy cannot possibly choose to live intemperately. And if this is true, the inference clearly is that no man is voluntarily intemperate; but that the whole multitude of men lack temperance in their lives, either from ignorance, or
from want of self-control, or both. And the same holds of the diseased and healthy life; they both have pleasures and pains, but in health the pleasure exceeds the pain, and in sickness the pain exceeds the pleasure.
Now
our inten-
tion in choosing the lives
is
not that the pain-
should exceed, but the life in which pain is exceeded by pleasure we have determined to be the more pleasant life. And we should say that the temperate life has the elements both 01 pleasure and pain fewer and smaller and less frequent than the intemperate, and the wise life than the foolish life, and the life of courage than the life of cowardice; one of each pair exceeding in pleasure and the other in pain, the courageous surpassing the cowardly, and the wise exceeding the foolish. And so the one class of lives exceeds the other class in pleasure; the temperate and courageous and wise and healthy exceed the cowardly and foolish and intemperful
and diseased lives; and generally speaking, which has any virtue, whether of body or soul, is pleasanter than the vicious life, and far superior in beauty and rectitude and excellence and reputation, and causes him who lives acate
that
cordingly to be infinitely happier than the opposite.
Enough of the preamble; and now the laws should follow; or, to speak more correctly, an oudine of them. As, then, in the case of a web or any other tissue, the warp and the woof cannot be made of the same materials, ["35] but the warp is necessarily superior as being stronger, and having a certain character of firmness, whereas the woof is softer and has a proper de1
gree of elasticity;
who
—
in a similar
manner
those
are to hold great offices in states, should be
distinguished truly in each case from those who have been but slenderly proven by education.
Let us suppose that there are two parts in the constitution of a state
—one the creation
fices,
the other the laws
them
to administer.
of of-
which are assigned
to
comes the following conshepherd or herdsman, or breeder of horses or the like, when he has received his animals will not begin to train them until he has first purified them in a manner which befits a community of animals; he will But, before
sideration:
all this,
— The
divide the healthy and unhealthy, and the good
breed and the bad breed, and will send away and badly bred to other herds, and tend the rest, reflecting that his labours will be vain and have no effect, either on the souls or bodies of those whom nature and ill nurture have corrupted, and that they will involve in destruction the pure and healthy nature and being of every other animal, if he should neglect to purify them. Now the case of other animals is not so important they are only worth 1 Cf Statesman, 309. the unhealthy
—
.
—
—
LAWS V for the sake of illustration; but
introducing
what
man
relates to
of the highest impor-
is
and the legislator should makeenquiries, and indicate what is proper for each one in the way of purification and of any other procedure. Take, for example, the purification of a city there are many kinds of purification, some easier and others more difficult; and some of them, and the best and most difficult of them, tance;
able to effect;
he be also a despot, may be but the legislator, who, not being
a despot, sets
up
the legislator,
even
if
a
new government and
laws,
he attempt the mildest of purgations, may think himself happy if he can complete his work. The best kind of purification is painful, like similar cures in medicine, involving righteous punishment and inflicting death or exile if
For
in the last resort.
in this
dispose of great sinners
who
way we commonly are incurable,
are the greatest injury of the
form
the milder
whole
of purification
is
state.
and But
as follows:
when men who have
nothing, and are in want of food, show a disposition to follow their leaders in an attack on the property of the rich these,
[736]
state, are sent
who
are the natural plague of the
away by
the legislator in a friend-
he is able; and this dismissal euphemistically termed a colony. And every legislator should contrive to do this at once. Our present case, however, is peculiar. ly spirit as far as
of
them
is
For there
no need to devise any colony or purifying separation under the circumstances in which we are placed. But as, when many streams flow together from many sources, whether springs or mountain torrents, into a single lake, we ought to attend and take care that the confluent waters should be perfectly clear, and in order to effect this, should pump and draw off and divert impurities, so in every political arrangement there may be trouble and danger. is
we
now
691
en by necessity to legislate upon such matters can neither allow the old ways to continue, nor yet venture to alter them. We must have recourse to prayers, so to speak, and hope that a slight change may be cautiously effected in a length of time. And such a change can be accomplished by those who have abundance of land,
and having
also
many
debtors, are will-
with those who and sometimes giving, holding fast in a path of moderation, and deeming poverty to be the increase of a man's desires and not the diminution of his property. For this is the great beginning of ing, in a kindly spirit, to share
are in want, sometimes remitting
salvation to a state,
and upon
this lasting basis
may
be erected afterwards whatever political order is suitable under the circumstances; but if the change be based upon an unsound principle, the future administration of the country will be full of difficulties. [737] That is a danger which, as I am saying, is escaped by us, and yet
we had better say how, if we had not escaped, we might have escaped; and we may venture now to assert that no other way of escape, whether narrow or broad, can be devised but freedom from avarice and a sense of justice upon this rock our city shall be built; for there ought to be no disputes among citizens about property. If there are quarrels of long standing
among them, no
legislator of any degree of sense will proceed a step in the arrangement of the state until they are settled. But that they to
whom God
has given, as he has to us, to be the founders of a new state as yet free from enmity that they should create themselves enmities by their mode of distributing lands and houses, would be superhuman folly and wickedness. How then can we righdy order the distribution of the land ? In the first place, the number of the citizens has to be determined, and also
—
acting, let our selection be supposed to
number and size of the divisions into which they will have to be formed; and the land and
be completed, and the desired purity attained.
the houses will then have to be apportioned by
But, seeing that
and not
Touching
evil
are
men, who want
citizens of our state, after
by every time,
we
the good
only discoursing
to join
we have
and be
tested
them
and for a sufficient them from coming; but
sort of persuasion
will prevent
we
the
us as fairly as
we
can.
The number
of citizens
can only be estimated satisfactorily in relation to the territory and the neighbouring states. The territory must be sufficient to maintain a
number of inhabitants in a moderate more than this is not required; and the number of citizens should be sufficient
utmost of our ability open arms. Another piece of good fortune must not be 1 forgotten, which, as we were saying, the Heraclid colony had, and which is also ours that we have escaped division of land and the aboli-
certain
tion of debts; for these are always a source of
bours when they are wronged. After having taken a survey of theirs and their neighbours' territory, we will determine the limits of them
will to the
receive as friends with
—
dangerous contention, and a 1 Cf iii. 684. .
city
which
is
driv-
way to
of life
—
defend themselves against the injustice of
their neighbours,
power
and
also to give
them
the
of rendering efficient aid to their neigh-
692
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
in fact as well as in theory.
And now,
let
us
proceed to legislate with a view to perfecting the form and outline of our state. The number this will be a of our citizens shall be 5040 convenient number; and these shall be owners of the land and protectors of the allotment. The houses and the land will be divided in the same way, so that every man may correspond to a lot. Let the whole number be first divided into two parts, and then into three; and the number is further capable of being divided into
—
number
four or five parts, or any to ten.
Every
legislator
ought
to
of parts
know
so
up
much
what number is [738] and we are going to take that number which contains the greatest and most regular and unbroken series of divisions. The whole of number has every possible division, and the number arithmetic as to be able to most likely to be useful to
tell
all cities;
5040 can be divided by exactly fifty-nine diviand ten of these proceed without interval from one to ten: this will furnish numbers for sors,
war and
peace,
and
ings, including taxes
all contracts and dealand divisions of the land.
for
These properties of number should be tained at leisure by those to
know them;
who
for they are
ascer-
bound by law true, and should are
be proclaimed at the foundation of the
city,
with a view to use. Whether the legislator is establishing a new state or restoring an old and decayed one, in respect of Gods and temples the temples which are to be built in each city, and the Gods or demi-gods after whom they are to be called
—
if
oracle of Delphi, or
man of sense, he anything which the
he be a
make no change
will
in
Dodona, or the God
Am-
nion, or any ancient tradition has sanctioned in
whatever manner, whether by apparitions or reputed inspiration of Heaven, in obedience to which mankind have established sacrifices in connection with mystic rites, either originating on the spot, or derived from Tyrrhenia or Cyprus or some other place, and on the strength of which traditions they have consecrated oracles and images, and altars and temples, and portioned out a sacred domain for each of them. The least part of all these ought not to be disturbed by the legislator; but he should assign to the several districts some God, or demi-god, should give to these
and
all
their chosen
domain
things fitting, that the inhabitants of
the several districts
and
first
soil,
that they
may
may meet
at fixed times,
readily supply their various
wants, and entertain one another with sacriand become friends and acquaintances;
fices,
is
in a state
known
to
and then leave the selection to the settlement. Following this method ent instance,
let
ruler of the in the pres-
us speak of the states which arc
first, second, and third in exceland then we will leave the choice to Cleinias now, or to any one else who may here-
respectively lence,
after
have
to
make
a similar choice
among con-
and may desire to give to his state some feature which is congenial to him and which he approves in his own country. The first and highest form of the state and of the government and of the law is that in which there prevails most widely the ancient saying, that "Friends have all things in common." Whether there is anywhere now, or will ever be, this communion of women and children and of property, in which the private and individual is altogether banished from life, and things which are by nature private, such as eyes and ears and hands, have become common, and in some way see and hear and act in common, and all men express praise and blame and feel joy and sorrow on the same occasions, and whatever laws there are unite the city to the whether all this is possible or not, I utmost say that no man, acting upon any other principle, will ever constitute a state which will be stitutions,
!
or hero, and, in the distribution of the
no greater good
than that one another. When not light but darkness and ignorance of each other's characters prevails among them, no one will receive the honour of which he is deserving, or the power or the justice to which he is fairly entided: wherefore, in every state, above all things, every man should take heed that he have no deceit in him. but that he be always true and simple; and that no deceitful person take any advantage of him. 1 7 39] The next move in our pastime of legislation, like the withdrawal of the stone from the holy line in the game of draughts, being an unusual one. will probably excite wonder when mentioned for the first time. And yet, if a man will only reflect and weigh the matter with care, he will see that our city is ordered in a manner which, if not the best, is the second best. Perhaps also some one may not approve this form, because he thinks that such a constitution is ill adapted to a legislator who has not despotic power. The truth is, that there are three forms of government, the best, the second and the third best, which we may just mention, for there
the citizens should be
—
truer or better or
more
exalted in virtue. Wheth-
governed by Gods or sons of Gods, one, or more than one, happy are the er such a state 1
is
Cf. Republic, v. 462,
ff.
LAWS V men who, living after tnis manner, dwell there; and therefore to this we are to look for the pattern of the state, and to cling to this, and to seek with all our might for one which is like this. The state which we have now in hand, when
created, will be nearest to immortality
and the only one which takes the second place; and after that, by the grace of God, we will complete the third one. And we will begin by speaking of the nature and origin of the second. Let the citizens
at
once distribute their land
and houses, and not till the land in common, [740] since a community of goods goes beyond their proposed origin, and nurture, and education. But in making the distribution, let the several possessors feel that their particular lots also belong to the whole city; and seeing that the earth
more
is
their parent, let
carefully than children
For she
is
a goddess
and
are her mortal subjects.
do
them tend her their mother.
their queen,
Such
and they
also are the feel-
ings which they ought to entertain to the Gods and demi-gods of the country. And in order that the distribution
ought
may
always remain, they
to consider further that the present
num-
ber of families should be always retained, neither increased nor diminished. This
and
may
be
secured for the whole city in the following manner: Let the possessor of a lot leave the one of his children who is his best beloved, and
—
one only,
to be the heir of his dwelling,
and
his
successor in the duty of ministering to the Gods, the state
and the family,
members
of
it
as those
who
as well
the living
are departed
when
he comes into the inheritance; but of his other children, if he have more than one, he shall give the females in marriage according to the 1 law to be hereafter enacted, and the males he shall distribute as sons to those citizens
who
have no children, and are disposed to receive them; or if there should be none such, and particular individuals have too many children, male or female, or too few, as in the case of bar-
—
renness in all these cases let the highest and most honourable magistracy created by us judge and determine what is to be done with the redundant or deficient, and devise a means that the number of 5040 houses shall always remain the same. There are many ways of regulating numbers; for they in whom generation is afflu2 ent may be made to refrain, and, on the other
hand, special care
number
we may meet 1
2
Cf.
may
be taken to increase the
of births by rewards
xi.
and stigmas, or
the evil by the elder
men
giving
923-926.
Cf. Aristotle, Politics, vii. 16, 1335
b
20-27.
693
advice and administering rebuke to the younger
—
if
in this
after
all
way
may
the object
be attained. And
there be very great difficulty about
the equal preservation of the 5040 houses, and there be an excess of citizens, owing to the too
great love of those
who
live together,
are at our wits' end, there
is still
and we
the old device
often mentioned by us of sending out a colony,
which will part friends with us, and be composed of suitable persons. [741] If, on the other hand, there come a wave bearing a deluge of disease, or a plague of war, and the inhabitants become much fewer than the appointed number by reason of bereavement, we ought not to introduce citizens of spurious birth and education, if this can be avoided; but even God is said not to be able to fight against necessity. Wherefore let us suppose this "high argument" of ours to address us in the following terms: Best of men, cease not to honour according to nature similarity and equality and sameness and agreement, as regards number and every good and noble quality. And, above all, observe the aforesaid number 5040 throughout life; in the second place, do not disparage the small and modest proportions of the inheri-
—
which you received in the distribution, by buying and selling them to one another. For then neither will the God who gave you the lot be your friend, nor will the legislator; and indeed the law declares to the disobedient that these are the terms upon which he may or may tances
not take the
he
is
lot.
informed
is
In the first place, the earth as sacred to the Gods; and in the
next place, priests and priestesses will offer up prayers over a first, and second, and even a third sacrifice, that he who buys or sells the houses or lands which he has received, may suffer the punishment which he deserves; and these their prayers they shall write down in the temples, on tablets of cypress-wood, for the instruction of posterity. Moreover they will set a watch over all these things, that they may be observed; the magistracy which has the sharpest eyes shall keep watch that any infringement of these commands may be discovered and punished as offences both against the law and the God. How great is the benefit of such an ordinance to all those cities, which obey and are administered accordingly, no bad man can ever know, as the old proverb says; but only a man of experience and good habits. For in such an order of things there will not be much opportunity for making money; no man either ought, or indeed will be allowed, to exercise any ignoble occupation, of which the vulgarity is a mat-
—
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
694 ter of
want
reproach to a freeman, and should never by any such means.
to acquire riches
[742] Further, the law enjoins that no vate
man
shall be
pri-
allowed to possess gold and
but only coin for daily use, which is almost necessary in dealing with artisans, and for payment of hirelings, whether slaves or imsilver,
migrants, by
those persons
all
who
require the
use of them. Wherefore our citizens, as
we
say,
should have a coin passing current among themselves, but not accepted among the rest of mankind; with a view, however, to expeditions and journeys to other lands for embassies, or
—
any other occasion which may arise of sending out a herald, the state must also possess a common Hellenic currency. If a private person is ever obliged to go abroad, let him have the consent of the magistrates and go; and if when he returns he has any foreign money remaining, let him give the surplus back to the treasfor
ury,
and receive
a corresponding
sum
in the
And if he is discovered to approbe confiscated, and let him who knows and does not inform be subject to curse and dishonour equally with him who brought the money, and also to a fine not less in amount than the foreign money which has been brought local currency.
priate
it,
let
it
mean by
"the rich" the few who have the most valuable possessions, although the owner of them may quite well be a rogue. And if this is
can never assent to the doctrine that the will be happy he must be good as well as rich. And good in a high degree, and rich in a high degree at the same time, he cannot be. Some one will ask, why not' And we shall answer Because acquisitions which come true,
I
—
man
rich
—
from sources which are ferently, are
just
and unjust
more than double
indif-
those which
come from
just sources only; and the sums which are expended neither honourably nor
disgracefully, are only half as great as those
which
are expended honourably and on honourable purposes. Thus, if the one acquires double and spends half, the other who is in the opposite case and is a good man cannot possibly be wealthier than he. The first I am speaking
—
of the saver and not of the spender
—
is
not
al-
ways bad; he may indeed in some cases be utterly bad, but, as I was saying, a good man he never is. For he who receives money unjustly as well as justly, and spends neither justly nor unjustly, will be a rich
On
man
if
he be also
the other hand, the utterly bad
is
thrifty.
in general
and therefore very poor; while he spends on noble objects, and acquires wealth by just means only, can hardly be remarkable for riches, any more than he can be profligate,
back. In marrying and giving in marriage, no
who
one shall give or receive any dowry at all; and no one shall deposit money with another whom he does not trust as a friend, nor shall he lend money upon interest; and the borrower should be under no obligation to repay either capital or interest. That these principles are best, any one may see who compares them with the first
very poor. Our statement, then, is true, that the very rich are not good, and, if they are not good, they are not happy. But the intention of
principle tion, as
and intention of
we
The
inten-
affirm, of a reasonable statesman,
not what the
good
a state.
many
is
declare to be the object of
namely, that the state for the is advising should be as great and as rich as possible, and should possess gold and silver, and have the greatest empire by sea and land; this they imagine to be the real object of legislation, at the same time adding, inconsistently, that the true legislator desires to have the city the best and happiest possible. But they do not see that some of these things are possible, and some of them are impossible; and he who orders the state will desire what is possible, and will not indulge in vain wishes or attempts to accomplish that which is impossible. The citizen must indeed be happy and good, and the legislator will seek to make him so; but very rich and very good at the same time he cannot be, not, at least, in the sense in which the many speak of riches. [743] For they
a
legislator,
true interests of
which he
—
our laws was that the citizens should be as
happy as may be, and as friendly as possible to one another. And men who are always at law with one another, and amongst whom there are many wrongs done, can never be friends to one another, but only those
among whom
crimes
and lawsuits are few and slight. Therefore we say that gold and silver ought not to be allowed in the city,
which
is
nor
much
carried
of the vulgar sort of trade
on by lending money, or
rear-
ing the meaner kinds of live stock; but only the produce of agriculture, and only so much of this as will not compel us in pursuing it to neglect that for the sake of which riches exist mean, soul and body, which without gymnastics, and without education, will never be worth anything; and therefore, as we have said not once but many times, the care of riches should have the last place in our thoughts. For there are in all three things about which every man has an interest; and the interest about money, when rightly regarded, is the third and lowest of them: midway comes the interest of the
—
LAWS V
695
and the state which we are describing will have been rightly constituted if it ordains honours according to this scale. [744] But if, in any of the laws which have been ordained, health has been preferred to temperance, or wealth to health and temperate habits, that law must clearly be wrong. Wherefore, also, the legislator ought often to impress upon himself the question 'What do I want?" and "Do I attain my aim, or do I miss the mark?" In this way, and in this way only, he may acquit himself and free others from the work of legisla-
measure, and he will permit a man to acquire double or triple, or as much 2 as four times the amount of this. But if a person have yet greater riches, whether he has found them, or they have been given to him, or he has made them in business, or has acquired by any stroke of fortune that which is in excess of the measure, [745] if he give back
tion.
excess,
body; and,
first
of
all,
that of the soul;
—
then hold his lot upon the 1 conditions which we have mentioned. It would be well that every man should come to the colony having all things equal; but seeing that this is not possible, and one man will have greater possessions than another, for many reasons and in particular in order to
Let the
allottee
preserve equality in special crises of the state,
must be unequal, in and contributions and distri-
qualifications of property
order that offices butions may be proportioned to the value of each person's wealth, and not solely to the virtue of his ancestors or himself, nor yet to the strength and beauty of his person, but also to the measure of his wealth or poverty; and so by a law of inequality, which will be in proportion to his wealth, he will receive honours and offices as equally as possible, and there will be no quarrels and disputes. To which end there should be four different standards appointed according to the amount of property: there should be a first and a second and a third and a fourth class, in which the citizens will be placed, and they will be called by these or similar names: they may continue in the same rank, or pass into another in any individual case, on becoming richer from being poorer, or poorer from being richer. The form of law which I should propose as the natural sequel would be as follows:
—In
a state
which
ing saved from the greatest of
is
desirous of be-
—
plagues not should exist among the citizens neither extreme poverty, nor, again, excess of wealth, for both are productive of both these evils. Now the legislator should determine what is to be the limit of poverty or wealth. Let the limit of poverty be the value of the lot; this ought to be preall
faction, but rather distraction
served,
and no
ruler,
—there
nor any one
else
who
aspires after a reputation for virtue, will allow
the lot to be impaired in any case. This the leg'Cf. 740,741.
islator gives as a
the surplus to the state, and to the Gods who are the patrons of the state, he shall suffer no penalty or loss of reputation; but if he disobeys
our law, any one
this
against
him and
who
may inform
likes
receive half the value of the
and the delinquent shall pay a sum equal to the excess out of his own property, and the other half of the excess shall belong to the Gods. And let every possession of every man, with the exception of the lot, be publicly registered before the magistrates whom the law appoints, so that all suits about money may be easy
and quite simple.
The
next thing to be noted is, that the city should be placed as nearly as possible in the centre of the country; we should choose a place
which possesses what is suitable for a city, and may easily be imagined and described.
this
Then we
will divide the city into twelve por-
founding temples to Hestia, to Zeus Athene, in a spot which we will call the Acropolis, and surround with a circular wall, making the division of the entire city and country radiate from this point. The twelve portions shall be equalized by the provision that those which are of good land shall be smaller, while those of inferior quality shall be larger. The number of the lots shall be 5040, and each of them shall be divided into two, and every allotment shall be composed of two such sections; one of land near the city, the other of 3 land which is at a distance. This arrangement shall be carried out in the following manner: The section which is near the city shall be tions, first
and
to
added to that which is on the borders, and form one lot, and the portion which is next nearest
added to the portion which is next farand so of the rest. Moreover, in the two sections of the lots the same principle of equalization of the soil ought to be maintained; the badness and goodness shall be compensated by more and less. And the legislator shall divide the citizens into twelve parts, and arrange the shall be
thest;
rest of their property, as far as possible, so as
parts; and there shall be After this they shall assign
form twelve equal
to
a registration of 2 3
all.
Cf. Aristotle, Politics, Ibid., vii. 10,
1324
b
ii.
6,
10-15.
1265
b
18-25.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
696
twelve Gods, and call them by their names, and dedicate to each God their twelve
lots to
and
several portions,
And
call
the tribes after them.
they shall distribute the twelve divisions
same way
of the city in the 1
two
habitations, one in
try,
and the other
the
manner
which they
in
vided the country; and every
man
di-
have the centre of the counshall
Enough
extremity.
at the
of
of settlement.
by all means to consider that there can never be such a happy concurrence of circumstances as we have described; neither can all things coincide as they are wanted. [746] Men who will not take offence at such
mode
and will endure long to have their property fixed
of living together,
their life
all
at
moderate limit, and to beget children in accordance with our ordinances, and will allow themselves to be deprived of gold and other things which the legislator, as is evident from these enactments, will certainly forbid them; and will endure, further, the situation of the land with the city in the middle and dwellings roundabout; all this is as if the legislator were telling his dreams, or making a city and citizens of wax. There is truth in these objections, and therefore every one should take to heart what I am going to say. Once more, then, the "O legislator shall appear and address us: my friends," he will say to us, "do not suppose a
—
—
me
ignorant that there
is
truth in your words; but in matters
who
he
which
I
a certain
am
degree of
of opinion that,
are not present but future,
exhibits a pattern of that at
aims, should in nothing
and that
fall
which he
short of the fair-
he finds any part of this work impossible of execution he should avoid and not execute it, but he should contrive to carry out that which is nearest and most akin to it; you must allow the legislator to per-
est
and
truest;
fect his design,
if
and when
and demes and
it
is
perfected,
you
villages,
and
also military
ranks and movements, as well as coins and measures, dry and liquid, and weights, so a:> to be commensurable and agreeable to one another. Nor should we fear the appearance of minuteness, if the law commands that all the vessels which a man possesses should have a common measure, when we consider generally that the divisions
Now we ought
a
tries
and variations of [jjj] num-
bers have a use in respect of
all
the variations
which they are susceptible, both in themselves and as measures of height and depth, and in all sounds, and in motions, as well those which proceed in a straight direction, upwards or downwards, as in those which go round and
of
The
round.
legislator
is
to consider all these
things and to bid the citizens, as far as possible, not to lose sight of numerical order; for no single instrument of youthful education has such
mighty power, both as regards domestic econpolitics, and in the arts, as the study
omy and
Above all, arithmetic stirs up him who is by nature sleepy and dull, and makes him quick to learn, retentive, shrewd, and aided by art divine he makes progress quite
of arithmetic.
beyond his natural powers." All such things, if only the legislator, by other laws and institutions, can banish meanness and covetousness from the souls of men, so that they can use them properly and to their own good, will be excellent and suitable instruments of education. But if he cannot, he will unintentionally
wisdom, the habit of which evil tendency may be observed in the Egyptiansand Phoenicians, and many other create in them, instead of craft,
races,
through the general vulgarity of their
pursuits and acquisitions, whether
worthy
legislator of theirs has
some impediment
or
we must
not
fail
of chance or nature. For
to observe,
Cleinias, that there
some un-
been the cause,
is
O
Megillus and
a difference in places,
in considering what part expedient and what will
and that some beget better men and others worse; and we must legislate accordingly. Some
arouse opposition; for surely the artist who is to be deemed worthy of any regard at all, ought always to make his work self-consistent." Having determined that there is to be a dis-
places are subject to strangeand fatal influences
him
should join with of his legislation
is
tribution into twelve parts, let us
now
see in
what way this may be accomplished. There is no difficulty in perceiving that the twelve parts admit of the greatest number of divisions of that which they include, or in seeing the other numbers which are consequent upon them, and are produced out of them up to 5040; wherefore the law ought to order phra'Cf.
I bid.,
ii.
6,
1265" 18-25.
by reason of diverse winds and violent heats, some by reason of waters; or, again, from the character of the food given by the earth, which not only affects the bodies of men for good or but produces similar results in their souls. And in all such qualities those spots excel in which there is a divine inspiration, and in
evil,
which the demi-gods have their appointed lots, and are propitious, not adverse, to the settlers in them. To all these matters the legislator, if he have any sense in him, will attend as far as 1
Cf. Republic,
vii.
526.
— LAWS and frame his laws accordingly. And what you, Cleinias, must do, and to matof this kind you must turn your mind since
man this ters
can,
is
to colonize a new country. Your words, Athenian Stranger,
you are going Cleinias.
are excellent,
and
I
will
do
as
BOOK
say.
VI
[751] Athenian Stranger.
made an end
you
And now
of the preliminaries
we
having
will pro-
ceed to the appointment of magistracies. Cleinias.
first,
the
number
state there are
of the magistracies,
two and
mode of establishing them; and, secondly, when they have been established, laws again
the
will
have
to be
able in nature
provided for each of them,
suit-
and number. But before electing let us stop a little and say a
the magistrates
word
them. have you got to say? Ath. This is what I have to say; every one can see, that although the work of legislation is a most important matter, yet if a well-ordered city superadd to good laws unsuitable offices, not only will there be no use in having the good laws not only will they be ridiculous and useless, but the greatest political injury and evil will accrue from them. in season about the election of
Cle.
What
—
—
Cle.
Ath.
what
Of course. Then now, my happen
will
intended
state.
knowledge
In the
that those
to magisterial
friend, let us observe
in the constitution of our first
who
place,
you
will ac-
are duly appointed
power, and their families, should
severally have given satisfactory proof of
they are, from youth
upward
what
until the time of
election; in the next place, those
who
are to
should have been trained in habits of law, and be well educated, that they may have a right judgment, and may be able to select or reject men whom they approve or disapprove, as they are worthy of either. But how can we imagine that those who are brought together for the first time, and are strangers to one another, and also uneducated, will avoid making mistakes in the choice of magistrates?
elect
Cle. Impossible.
Ath. The matter not serve the turn.
is I
and excuses will what do, since you, as you tell
serious,
will tell you, then,
you and I will have to me, with nine others, have offered to settle the new state on behalf of the people of Crete, [752] and I am to help you by the invention of the present romance. I certainly should not like
697
to leave the tale
without a head; a hideous thing.
wandering
—
all
a headless
over the world is such
monster
Cle. Excellent, Stranger.
Ath. Yes; and I will be as good as my word. Cle. Let us by all means do as you propose. Ath. That we will, by the grace of God, if old age will only permit us. Cle. But God will be gracious. Ath. Yes; and under his guidance let us consider a further point. Cle.
Very good.
Ath. In the ordering of a parts:
VI
What
is it?
Ath. Let us remember what a courageously mad and daring creation this our city is. Cle. What had you in your mind when you said that?
Ath. I had in my mind the free and easy manner in which we are ordaining that the inexperienced colonists shall receive our laws. Now a man need not be very wise, Cleinias, in order to see that no one can easily receive laws at their first imposition. But if we could anyhow wait until those who have been imbued with them from childhood, and have been nurtured in them, and become habituated to them, take their part in the public elections of the state; I say, if this could be accomplished, and rightly accomplished by any way or contrivance then, I think that there would be very little danger, at the end of the time, of a state thus trained not being permanent. Cle. A reasonable supposition. Ath. Then let us consider if we can find any way out of the difficulty; for I maintain, Cleinias, that the Cnosians, above all the other Cretans, should not be satisfied with barely discharging their duty to the colony, but they ought to take the utmost pains to establish the offices which are first created by them in the best
and
surest
manner. Above
all,
this applies
guardians of the law, who must be chosen first of all, and with the greatest care; the others are of less importance. Cle. What method can we devise of electing
to the selection of the
them ?
—
Ath. This will be the method: Sons of the I shall say to them, inasmuch as the Cnosians have precedence over the other states, they should, in common with those who join this settlement, choose a body of thirty-seven in all, nineteen of them being taken from the settlers, [753] and the remainder from the citizens of Cnosus. Of those latter the Cnosians shall make a present to your colony, and you yourself shall be one of the eighteen, and shall Cretans,
become
a citizen of the
new
state;
and
if
you
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
698
and they cannot be persuaded sians
may
make
Cno-
to go, the
fairly use a little violence in
order to
which, under our circumstances,
you.
But why, Stranger, do not you and Megillus take a part in our new city? Ath. O, Cleinias, Athens is proud, and Sparta too; and they are both a long way off. But you and likewise the other colonists are conveniently situated as you describe. I have been speaking of the way in which the new citizens may be best managed under present circumstances; Cle.
but in after-ages, if the city continues to exist, the election be on this wise. All who are horse or foot soldiers, or have seen military service at the proper ages when they were severally fitted for it, shall share in the election of magistrates; and the election shall be held in let
1
whatever temple the state deems most venerable, and every one shall carry his vote to the altar of the God, writing down on a tablet the name of the person for whom he votes, and his father's name, and his tribe, and ward; and at the side he shall write his own name in like manner. Any one who pleases may take away any tablet which he does not think properly filled up, and exhibit it in the Agora for a period of not less than thirty days. The tablets which are judged to be first, to the number of 300, shall be shown by the magistrates to the whole city, and the citizens shall in like manner select from these the candidates whom they prefer; and this second selection, to the number of 100, shall be again exhibited to the citizens; in the third, lect
whom
let
any one
who
pleases se-
he pleases out of the 100, walking
through the parts of victims, and
let
them
choose for magistrates and proclaim the sevenand-thirty who have the greatest number of votes. But who, Cleinias and Megillus, will order for us in the colony all this matter of the magistrates, reflect,
we
and the
them? If we which are in ours must have
scrutinies of
shall see that cities
process of construction like
some such persons, who cannot
possibly be
and some way, and they
elected before there are any magistrates; yet they
must be
elected in
men, but the best possible. good beginning is half the business"; and "to have begun well" is praised by all, and in my opinion is a great deal more than half the business, [^$4] and has never been praised by any one enough. Cle. That is very true. Ath. Then let us recognize the difficulty, and make clear to our own minds how the beginare not to be inferior
For
1
as the
is to be accomplished. There is only one proposal which I have to oiler, and that is one
ning
proverb
says, "a
Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
ii.
6,
1265
b
26-33.
sary
is
both neces-
and expedient.
What
Cle.
is
it?
maintain that this colony of ours has a father and mother, who are no other than the colonizing state. Well I know that many colonies have been, and will be, at enmity with their parents. But in early days the child, as in a family, loves and is beloved; even if there come a time later when the tic is broken, still, while he is in want of education, he naturally loves his parents and is beloved by them, and flies to Ath.
I
his relativesfor protection,
andfindsinthem
his
time of need; and this parental feeling already exists in the Cnosians, as is shown by their care of the new city; and only natural
there
is
allies
in
a similar feeling
on the part of the
young city towards Cnosus. And I repeat what was saying for there is no harm in repeating that the Cnosians should take a good thing a common interest in all these matters, and choose, as far as they can, the eldest and best of the colonists, to the number of not less than a hundred; and let there be another hundred of
— —
I
the Cnosians themselves. These,
I
say.
on
their
should have a joint care that the magistrates should be appointed according to law, and that when they are appointed they should undergo a scrutiny. When this has been effected, the Cnosians shall return home, and the new city do the best she can for her own preservation and happiness. I would have the seven* and-thirty now, and in all future time, chosen Let them, in to fulfil the following duties: the first place, be the guardians of the law; and, secondly, of the registers in which each one registers before the magistrate the amount of his property, excepting four minae which are allowed to citizens of the first class, three alarrival,
—
two
and a any one, despising the laws for the sake of gain, be found to possess anything more which has not been registered, let all that he has in excess be confislowed
to the second,
single
mina
to the fourth.
to the third,
And
if
and let him be liable to a suit which shall be the reverse of honourable or fortunate. And let any one who will, indict him on the charge of loving base gains, and proceed against him cated,
before the guardians of the law. [J55] And if he be cast, let him lose his share of the public possessions,
and when there
is
any public
dis-
him have nothing but his original lot; and let him be written down a condemned man as long as he lives, in some place in which tribution, let
— LAWS any one who pleases can read about his offences. The guardian of the law shall not hold office longer than twenty years, and shall not be less than fifty years of age when he is elected; or if he is elected when he is sixty years of age, he shall hold office for ten years only; and upon the same principle, he must not imagine that he will be permitted to hold such an important office as that of guardian of the laws after he is seventy years of age, if he live so long. These are the three first ordinances about the
VI
699
other candidates shall be arranged in the same way as in the case of the generals, and let the cavalry vote and the infantry look on at the
two who have the
election; the
The bers
council shall consist of 30 x 12
—360
we
in order to speak of the election of other
shall select candidates
offi-
and these again must have their ministers, commanders, and colonels of horse, and commanders of brigades of foot, who would be more rightly called to be elected,
by their popular name of brigadiers. The guardians of the law shall propose as generals men
who are natives of the city, and
a selection from
made by those have been of the age for military service. And if one who is not proposed is thought by somebody to be better than one who is, let him name whom he prefers in the place of whom, and make oath that he is better, and propose him; and whichever of them is approved by vote shall be admitted to the final selection; and the three who have the greatest number of votes shall be appointed generals, and superintendents of military affairs, after previously undergoing a scrutiny, like the the candidates proposed shall be
who
are or
guardians of the law.
And let
the generals thus
elected propose twelve brigadiers, one for each tribe;
and there
shall be a right of counter-
we
counsellors for each class. First,
all
carry shields
[i.e.,
the hoplites],
for the generals; but captains of light troops,
or archers, or any other division of the army, shall be appointed by the generals for themselves. There only remains the appointment of officers of cavalry: these shall
be proposed by
same persons who proposed the generals, and the election and the counter-proposal of the
they
—
a fine of triple the
see,
who
first class;
compelled to vote, and, if they do not, shall be duly fined. When the candidates have been selected, some one shall mark them down; this shall be the business of the first day. And on the following day, candidates shall be selected from the second class in the same manner and under the same conditions as on the previous day; and on the third day a selection shall be made from the third class, at which every one may, if he likes, vote, and the three first classes shall be compelled to vote; but the fourth and lowest class shall be under no compulsion, and any member of this class who does not vote shall not be punished. On the fourth day candidates shall be selected from the fourth and smallest class; they shall be selected by all, but he who is of the fourth class shall suffer no penalty, nor he who is of the third, if he be not willing to vote; but he who is of the first or second class, if he does not vote shall be punished; he who is of the second class shall pay
the guardians of the law shall convene the as-
[756 J Let the body of cavalry choose phylarchs
from the
get ninety
the citizens
shall be
at first,
those
divide the
into four parts of ninety each,
proposal as in the case of the generals, and the voting and decision shall take place in the same way. Until the prytanes and council are elected,
sembly in some holy spot which is suitable to the purpose, placing the hoplites by themselves, and the cavalry by themselves, and in a third division all the rest of the army. All are to vote for the generals [and for the colonels of horse], but the brigadiers are to be voted for only by
mem-
number for whole number
will be a convenient
sub-division. If
have
num-
tions shall decide.
guardians of the law; as the work of legislation progresses, each law in turn will assign to them their further duties. And now we may proceed cers; for generals
greatest
ber of votes shall be the leaders of all the horse. Disputes about the voting may be raised once or twice; but if the dispute be raised a third time, the officers who preside at the several elec-
ple.
the
On
amount which was exacted
and he who
is
of the
first class
quadru-
the fifth day the rulers shall bring out
names noted down, for all the citizens to and every man shall choose out of them,
under pain,
if
penalty; and
he do not, of suffering the first they have chosen 180 out
when
of each of the classes, they shall choose one-half
who shall undergo a scrutiny: form the council for the year. The mode of election which has been described is in a mean between monarchy and democracy, [j$j] and such a mean the state ought always to observe; for servants and masters never can be friends, nor good and bad, of
them by
These are
lot,
to
merely because they are declared to have equal privileges. For to unequals equals become unequal, if they are not harmonized by measure; and both by reason of equality, and by reason of inequality, cities are filled with seditions.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
700
The
makes friendhappy and also true; but there is obscurity and confusion as to what sort of equality is meant. For there are two equalities which are called by the same name, but are in reality in many ways almost the opposite of one another; one of them may be introduced withold saying, that "equality
ship,"
is
out difficulty, by any state or any legislator in the distribution of honours: this is the rule of measure, weight, and number, which regulates
and apportionsthem.Butthereisanother equality, of a better and higher kind, which is not so easily recognized. This is the judgment of Zeus;
among men
however,
is
it
avails but little; that
the source of the greatest
individuals and states. For
it
little,
good
to
gives to the greater
more, and to the inferior less and in proportion to the nature of each; and, above all, greater honour always to the greater virtue, and to the less less; and to either in proportion to their re-
measure of virtue and education. And and is ever the true principle of states, at which we ought to aim, and according to this rule order the new city which is now being founded, and any other city which may be spective this
is
justice,
hereafter founded.
look
— not
or to the
To
power
ways; which, as
should one or more,
this thelegislator
to the interests of tyrants
of the people, but to justice
al-
was saying, is the distribution
I
of natural equality
among unequals
in each
But there are times at which every state is compelled to use the words, "just," "equal." in a secondary sense, in the hope of escaping in some degree from factions. For equity and indulgence are infractionsof the perfect and strict case.
rule of justice.
And
this
is
the reason
are obliged to use the equality of the
why we
lot, in
to avoid the discontent of the people;
and
order so
we
invoke God and fortune in our prayers, and beg that they themselves will direct the lot with a view to supreme justice.
though we are compelled
And
therefore,
al-
both equalities, we should use that into which the element of chance enters as seldom as possible. [758]
O my
to use
and for the reasons which would endure and be saved. But as a ship sailing on the sea has to be watched night and day, in like manner a city also is sailing on a sea of politics, and is liable to all sorts of insidious assaults; and therefore from morning to night, and from night to morning, rulers must join hands with rulers, and watchers with watchers, receiving and giving up their trust in a perpetual sucThus,
friends,
given, should a state act
cession.
Now
duty of
this sort
a multitude can never fulfil a
with anything like energy.
Moreover, the greater number of the senators will have to be left during the greater part of the year to order their concerns at their own homes. They will therefore have to be arranged in twelve portions, answering to the twelve months, and furnish guardians of the state, each portion for a single month. Their business is to be at hand and receive any rorei^ner or citizen who comes to them, whether to give information, or to put one of those questions, to which, when asked by other cities, a city should give an answer, and to which, if she ask them herself, she should receive an answer; or again,
when
there
is
a likelihood of
commotions, which are always liable happen in some form or other, thev will, if
internal to
they can, prevent their occurring; or if they have already occurred, will lose no time in mak-
known to the city, and healing the Wherefore, also, this which is the presiding body of the state ought always to have the control of their assemblies, and of the dissolutions of them, ordinary as well asextraordniarv. All this is to be ordered by the twelfth part of the council, which is always to keep watch together with the other officers of the state during one portion of the year, and to rest during the remaining eleven portions. ing them
evil.
Thus
will the city be fairly ordered.
And
now, who is to have the superintendence of the country, and what shall be the arrangement 3 Seeing that the whole city and the entire country have been both of them divided into twelve portions, ought there not to be appointed superintendents of the streets of the city, and of the houses, and buildings, and harbours, and the agora, and fountains, and sacred domains, and temples, and the like? Cle.
To
be sure there ought.
[759] dth. Let us assume, then, that there ought to be servants of the temples, and priests and priestesses. There must also be superintendents of roads and buildings, who will have a care of men, that they may do no harm, and also of beasts, both within the enclosure and in the suburbs. Three kinds of officers will thus have to be appointed, in order that the city may be suitably provided according to her needs. Those who have the care of the city shall be called wardens of the city; and those who have the care of the agora shall be called wardens of the agora; and those who have the care of the temples shall be called priests. Those who hold hereditary offices as priests or priestesses, shall not be disturbed; but if there be few or none such, as
is
probable at the foundation of a
new
LAWS city, priests
and
to be servants of the ants.
Some
appointed have no serv-
priestesses shall be
Gods who
of our officers shall be elected,
others appointed by
those
lot,
who
and
are of the
people and those who are not of the people mingling in a friendly manner in every place and city, that the state may be as far as possible of one mind. The officers of the temples shall be appointed by lot; in this way their election will be committed to God, that he may do what is agreeable to him. And he who obtains a lot shall undergo a scrutiny, first, as to whether he is sound of body and of legitimate birth; and in the second place, in order to show that he is of a perfectly pure family, not stained with homicide or any similar impiety in his own person, and also that his father and mother have led a similar unstained life. Now the laws about all divine things should be brought from Delphi, and interpreters appointed, under whose direction they should be
The
tenure of the priesthood should aland no longer; and he who will duly execute the sacred office, according used.
ways be
for a year
to the laws of religion,
—
must be not
less
than
age the laws shall be the same about priestesses. As for the interpreters, they shall be appointed thus: let the twelve tribes be distributed into groups of four, and let each group select four, one out of each tribe within the group, three times; and let the three who have the greatest number of votes [out of the twelve appointed by each group], after undergoing a scrutiny, nine in all, be sent to Delphi, in order that the God may return one out of each triad; their age shall be the same as that of the priests, and the scrutiny of them shall be conducted in the same manner; let them be intersixty years of
—
preters for
and when any one select another from the life,
dies let the
four tribes tribe of the deceased. Moreover, besides priests and interpreters, there must be treasurers, who will take charge of the property of the several temples, and of the sacred domains, and shall have authority over the produce
them; and three of them
and the
letting of
be chosen from the highest classes for the greater [j6o] temples, and two for the lesser, and one for the least of
all;
the
scrutiny of
shall
manner of their election and the them shall be the same as that of the
1
generals. This shall be the order of the temples.
Let everything have a guard as far as possible. Let the defence of the city be committed to the generals, and taxiarchs, and hipparchs, and phylarchs, and prytanes, and the wardens of
'Cf.755-
VI
701
when been completed. The
the city, and of the agora,
the election of
them has defence of the country shall be provided for as follows: The entire land has been already distributed into twelve as nearly as possible equal parts, and let the tribe allotted to a division provide annually for it five wardens of the country and commanders of the watch; and let each body of five have the power of selecting twelve others out of the youth of their own tribe these shall be not less than twenty-five years of age, and not more than thirty. And let there be allotted to them severally every month the various districts, in order that they may all acquire knowledge and experience of the whole coun-
—
—
try.
The term
commanders and two years.
of service for
for watchers shall continue during
After having had their stations allotted to them, they will go from place to place in regular order,
making their round from left to right commanders direct them; (when I
as their
speak of going to the right, are to
ment
go
to the east).
And
I
mean
at the
that they
commence-
of the second year, in order that as
many
guards may not only get a knowledge of the country at any one season of the year, but may also have experience of the
as possible of the
manner
in
which
different places are affected
then commanders shall lead them again towards the left, from place to place in succession, until they at different seasons of the year, their
have completed the second year. In the third year other wardens of the country shall be chosen and commanders of the watch, five for each division, who are to be the superintendents of the bands of twelve. While on service at each station, their attention shall be directed to In the first place, they the following points: shall see that the country is well protected against enemies; they shall trench and dig wherever this is required, and, as far as they can, they shall by fortifications keep off the
—
them from
evil-disposed, in order to prevent
doing any harm to the country or the property; they shall use the beasts of burden and the labourers whom they find on the spot: these will be their instruments whom they will superintend, [j6i] taking them, as far as possible, at the times when they are not engaged in their regular business. They shall make every part of the country inaccessible to enemies, and as accessible as possible to friends;
man and
2
there shall be
burden and for cattle, and they shall take care to have them always as smooth as they can; and shall provide
ways
2
for
beasts of
Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
vii. 5,
1326
b
38.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
702 against the rains doing to the land,
mountains
when
they
harm instead of good come down from the
and shall keep in the overflow by the help of works and ditches, in order that the valleys, receiving and drinking up the rain from heaven, and providing fountains and streams in the fields and regions which lie underneath, may furnish even to the dry places plenty of good water. The fountains of water, whether of rivers or of springs, shall be ornamented with plantations and buildings for beauty; and let them bring tointo the hollow dells;
gether the streams in subterraneous channels, all things plenteous; and if there be a
and make
sacred grove or dedicated precinct in the neigh-
bourhood, they
shall
conduct the water to the Gods, and so beautify
actual temples of the
them
Everywhere in make gymnasia for
at all seasons of the year.
such places the youth shall themselves, and warm baths for the aged, placing by them abundance of dry wood, for the benefit of those labouring under disease there the weary frame of the rustic, worn with toil, will receive a kindly welcome, far better than he would at the hands of a not over-wise doctor. The building of these and the like works will be useful and ornamental; they will provide a pleasing amusement, but they will be a
—
to the decision of the villagers in the
hood; but
in suits of greater
case of lesser,
if
neighbour-
amount, or
in the they refuse to submit, trusting
monthly removal into another part country will enable them to escape in such cases the injured party may bring his suit in the common court, and if he obtain a verdict he may exact from the defendant, who reiused to submit, a double penalty. The wardens and the overseers of the country, while on their two years' service, shall have common meals at their several stations, and shall all live together; and he who is absent from the common meal, or sleeps out, if only for one day or night, unless by order of his commanders, or by reason of absolute necessity, that their
—
of the
if
the five
denounce him and inscribe his name having kept his guard,
in the agora as not
him be deemed
to have betrayed the city, as power, and let him be disgraced and beaten with impunity by any one who meets him and is willing to punish him. If anv of the commanders is guilty of such an irregulet
far as lay in his
the whole company of sixty shall see to and he who is cognizant of the offence, and
larity, it,
serious
does not bring the offender to trial, shall be amenable to the same laws as the younger offender himself, and shall pay a heavier fine, and be incapable of ever commanding the
will
young.
employment too; for the sixty wardens have to guard their several divisions, not only with a view to enemies, but also with an eye to professing friends. When a quarrel arises among neighbours or citizens, and any one,
whether slave or freeman wrongs another, let the five wardens decide small matters on their own authority; but where the charge against another relates to greater matters, the seventeen
composed
of the fives
and twelves,
determine any charges which one against another, not involving
man
shall
brings
more than
three
1
Every judge and magistrate shall be liable to give anaccount of hisconduct in office, except those who, like kings, have the final decision. Moreover, as regards the aforesaid wardens of the country, if they do any wrong to those of whom they have the care, whether by imposing upon them unequal tasks, [762] or by taking the produce of the soil or implements of husbandry without their consent; also if they receive anything in the way of a bribe, minae.
or decide suits unjusdy, or influences of flattery, let
they yield to the them be publicly disif
honoured; and in regard to any other wrong
which they do if
to the inhabitants of the country,
the question be of a mina, 1
Cf.
viii.
843.
let
them submit
The guardians
of the law are to be care-
ful inspectors of these matters,
and
prevent or punish offenders. Every
remember
shall either
man
the universal rule, that he
should
who
is
not a good servant will not be a good master; a man should pride himself more upon serving well than upon commanding well: first upon serving the laws, which is also the service of the Gods; in the second place, upon having served ancient and honourable men in the days
two years which any one is a warden of the country, his daily food ought to be of a simple and hum-
of his youth. Furthermore, during the in
When the twelve have been chosen, [763] let them and the five meet together, and determine that they will be their own servants, and, like servants, will not have other slaves and servants for their own use, neither will they use those of the villagers and husbandmen for ble kind.
their
private advantage, but for the public
and in general they should make minds to live independently by themselves, servants of each other and of themselves. Further, at all seasons of the year, summer and winter alike, let them be under arms and survey minutely the whole country; thus they will at once keep guard, and at the same service only;
up
their
I
LAWS time acquire a perfect knowledge of every locality. There can be no more important kind of information than the exact knowledge of a man's own country; and for this as well as for more general reasons of pleasure and advantage, hunting with dogs and other kinds of sports should be pursued by the young. The service to whom this is committed may be called the secret police * or wardens of the country; the name does not much signify, but every one who has the safety of the state at heart will use his utmost diligence in this service. After the wardens of the country, we have to speak of the election of wardens of the agora and of the city. The wardens of the country
were
try into the city,
be
the waters,
and of the buildings,
made according
all
to
law;
ne-
of the agora shall observe
the order appointed by law for the agora,
and
have the charge of the temples and foun-
shall
which are in the agora; and they shall see no one injures anything, and punish him who does, with stripes and bonds, if he be a tains
that
slave or stranger; but if he be a citizen who misbehaves in this way, they shall have the power themselves of inflicting a fine upon him to the amount of a hundred drachmae, or with the consent of the wardens of the city up to double
that
amount.
And
have
a similar
power
let
the wardens of the city
of imposing punishments
also of
cation, of the other, the superintendence of con-
and of the
different high roads which lead out of the coun-
may
The wardens
cessity.
that they
parts of the city into three; like the former,
they shall have care of the ways,
703
some urgent
fines in their own department; and let them impose fines by their own authority, up to a mina, or up to two minae with the consent of the wardens of the agora. In the next place, it will be proper to appoint directors of music and gymnastic, two kinds of each of the one kind the business will be edu-
number, and the wardens of the be three, and will divide the twelve
sixty in
city will
VI
be present, in consequence of
—
which the guardians of the supply
and
—
tests.
In speaking of education, the law means who have the care of order
preserve and convey to them, care being taken
to speak of those
may reach the fountains pure and abundant, and be both an ornament and a benefit to the city. These also should be men of in-
and instruction in gymnasia and schools, and of the going to school, and of school buildings for boys and girls; and in speaking of contests, the law refers to the judges of gymnastics and of music; these again are divided into two classes, the one having to do with music, the other with gymnastics; and the same who judge of the gymnastic contests of men, shall judge of horses; but in music there shall be one set of judges of solo singing, and of imitation mean of rhapsodists, players on the harp, the flute and the like, and another who shall judge of choral song. First of all, we must choose directors for the choruses of boys, and men, and maidens, whom they shall follow in the amusement of the dance, and for our other musical
that they
fluence,
and
at leisure to
take care of the public
Let every man propose as warden of the city any one whom he likes out of the highest class, and when the vote has been given on them, and the number is reduced to the six who have the greatest number of votes, let the electing officers choose by lot three out of the six, and when they have undergone a scrutiny let them hold office according to the laws laid down for them. Next, let the wardens of the agora be elected in like manner, out of the first and second class, five in number: ten are to be first elected, and out of the ten five are to be chosen by lot, as in the election of the wardens of the city: these when they have undergone a scrutiny are to be declared magistrates. Every one shall vote for every one, and he who will not vote, [764] if he be informed against before the magistrates, shall be fined fifty drachmae, and shall also be deemed a bad citizen. Let any one who likes go to the assembly and to the general council; it shall be compulsory to go on citizens of the first and second class, and they shall pay a fine of ten drachmae if they be found not answering to their names at the assembly. interest.
—
But the third and fourth
class shall be
under no
compulsion, and shall be let off without a fine, unless the magistrates have commanded all to 1 Cf i. 633. .
—
arrangements;
enough less
[765]
—one
for the choruses,
than forty years of age.
also be
director
will
be
and he should be not
One
director will
enough to introduce the solo singers, give judgment on the competitors, and
and to he ought not
to be less than thirty years of age.
The
and manager
of the choruses shall be elected after the following manner: Let any persons who commonly take an interest in such matters go to the meeting, and be fined if they do not go (the guardians of the law shall judge of their fault), but those who have no interest shall not be compelled. The elector shall propose as director some one who understands music, and he in the scrutiny may be challenged on the one part by those who say he has no skill,
director
—
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
704
and defended on the other hand by those who
Ten are to be elected by ten who is chosen by lot
say that he has.
vote,
shall and he of the undergo a scrutiny, and lead the choruses for
a year
And
according to law.
who wins
the competitor
in like
manner
the lot shall be leader
and he who is thus elected shall deliver the award to the judges. In the next place, we have to choose judges in the contests of horses and of men: these shall be selected from the third and also from the second class of citizens, and the three first classes shall be compelled to go to the of the solo
and concert music
election, but the lowest
punity; and
stay
away with im-
there be three elected by lot out
let
of the twenty
may
for that year;
who
have been chosen previoushave the vote and approval of the examiners. But if any one is rejected in the scrutiny at any ballot or decision, others shall be chosen in the same manner, and
and they must
ly,
also
undergo a similar scrutiny. There remains the minister of the education of youth, male and female; he too will rule according to law; one such minister will be sufficient, and he must be fifty years old, and have children lawfully begotten, both boys and girls by preference, at any rate, one or the other. He who is elected, and he who is the elector, should consider that of
the great offices of state this
all
the greatest; for the
is
if it
of
makes
good
shoot of any plant, towards the attainment
first
start
natural excellence, has the greatest effect
its
on
a
maturity: and this
its
not only true of
is
[~66] but of animals wild and tame, and also of men. Man, as we say, is a tame or
plants,
civilized animal: nevertheless, he requires prop-
and a fortunate nature, and then animals he becomes the most divine and
er instruction
of
all
most
1
civilized;
educated he
is
but
if
he be insufficiently or
ill
the most savage of earthly crea-
who have been his electors, with the exception of the guardians of the law shall hold office for five years: and in the sixth year let another be chosen in like manner to fill the magistrates
—
his office. If
any one dies while he is holding a public and more than thirty days before his
office,
term of
office expires, let
those
elect
to the suit.
Now may
the establishment of courts of justice
be regarded as a choice of magistrates, for
every magistrate must also be a judge of some things; and the judge, though he be not a magistrate, yet in certain respects is a very important magistrate
termining a
on the day on which he is deRegarding then the judges
suit.
tures. Wherefore the legislator ought not to allow the education of children to become a secondary or accidental matter. In the first place, he who would be rightly provident about them,
also as magistrates, let us say
should begin by taking care that he is elected, who of all the citizens is in every way best; him the legislator shall do his utmost to appoint guardian and superintendent. To thisend all the magistrates, with the exception of the council and prytanes, shall go to the temple of Apollo, and elect by ballot him of the guardians of the law whom they severally think will be the best superintendent of education. And he who has the greatest number of votes, after he has undergone a scrutiny at the hands of all
gants appoint in
1
Aristotle, Politics,
i.
2,
1253
"
29-38.
whose business
another to the office in the same manner as before. And if any one who is entrusted with orphans dies, let the relations both on the father's and mother's side, who are residing at home, includingcousins, appoint another guardian within ten days, or be fined a drachma a day for neglect to do so. A city which has no regular courts of law ceases to be a city; and again, if a judge is silent and says no more in preliminary proceedings than the litigants, as is the case in arbitrations, he will never be able to decide justly; wherefore a multitude of judges will not easily judge well, nor a few if they are bad. The point in dispute between the parties should be made clear; and time, and deliberation, and repeated examination, greatly tend to clear up doubts. For this reason, he who goes to law with another, should go first of ail to his neighbours and friends who know best the questions at issue. And if he be unable to obtain from them a satisfactory decision, [j6jj let him have recourse to another court: and if the two courts cannot settle the matter, let a third put an end it is
who
are
fit
to
be
and of what they are to be judges, and how many of them are to judge in each suit. Let that be the supreme tribunal which the litijudges,
common for themselves, choosAnd let there
ing certain persons by agreement.
be two other tribunals: one for private causes, when a citizen accuses another of wronging him and wishes to get a decision; the other for public causes, in which some citizen is of opinion that the public has been dividual,
and
mon
interests.
tion
how
who
is
wronged by an
in-
willing to vindicate the com-
And we must
not forget to men-
the judges are to be qualified,
and
they are to be. In the first place, let there be a tribunal open to all private persons who
LAWS are trying causes one against another for the third time, and let this be composed as follows:
— All
the officers of state, as well annual as those holding office for a longer period, when
new year is about to commence, in the month following after the summer solstice, on the
VI
calling
God
to witness, shall
dedicate one judge from every magistracy to be their first-fruits, choosing in each office him who seems to them to be the best, and whom they deem likely to decide the causes of his fellow-citizens during the ensuing year in the
and
best
holiest
manner.
And when
the elec-
completed, a scrutiny shall be held in the presence of the electors themselves, and if any one be rejected another shall be chosen in tion
the
is
same manner. Those who have undergone
the scrutiny shall judge the causes of those
have declined the inferior courts, and their vote openly.
The
who have
magistrates
councillors
elected
them
who
shall give
and other shall be re-
quired to be hearers and spectators of the and any one else may be present who pleases. If one man charges another with having intentionally decided wrong, let him go to the guardians of the law and lay his accusation causes;
before them, and he
who
found guilty in pay damages to the injured is
such a case shall party equal to half the injury; but if he shall appear to deserve a greater penalty, the judges shall determine what additional punishment he shall suffer, and how much more he ought to pay to the public treasury, and to the party who brought the suit. [j68] In the judgment of offences against the state, the people ought to participate, for when any one wrongs the state all are wronged, and may reasonably complain if they are not allowed to share in the decision. Such causes ought to originate with the people, and they ought also to have the final decision of them, but the trial of them shall take place before three of the highest magistrates, the plaintiff
and the defendant
upon
whom
shall agree;
and
they are not able to come to an agreement themselves, the council shall choose one of the two proposed. And in private suits, too, as far as is possible, all should have a share; for he if
who
has no share in the administration of jusapt to imagine that he has no share in
tice, is
the state at
all.
And
for this reason there shall
be a court of law in every tribe, and the judges shall be chosen by lot; they shall give their decisions at once, and shall be inaccessible to
—
entreaties.
The
final
judgment
shall rest
with
maintain, has been
tablished in the most incorruptible
es-
form of
which human things admit:
this shall be the court established for those who are unable to get rid of their suits either in the courts of neighbours or of the tribes.
Thus much
the last day but one of the year, shall meet in
some temple, and
705
we
that court which, as
was
of the courts of law, which, as
I
saying, cannot be precisely defined either
as being or not being offices; a superficial sketch has been given of them, in which some things have been told and others omitted. For the right place of an exact statement of the laws respecting suits, under their several heads, will
be at the end of the body of legislation;
—
let us 1 then expect them at the end. Hitherto our legislation has been chiefly occupied with the appointment of offices. Perfect unity and exactness, extending to the whole and every particular of political administration, cannot be attained to the full, until the discussion shall have a beginning, middle, and end, and is complete in every part. At present we have reached the election of magistrates, and this may be regarded as a sufficient termination of what has preceded. And now there need no longer be any delay or hesitation in beginning the work
of legislation.
what you have said, Stranger; and manner of tacking on the beginning of your new discourse to the end Cle.
I
I
like
particularly like your
of the former one.
[769] Ath. Thus far, then, the old men's ragone off well. Cle. You mean, I suppose, their serious and
tional pastime has
noble pursuit? Ath. Perhaps; but
whether you and
I
should like to
I
know
are agreed about a certain
thing.
About what thing?
Cle.
You know
Ath.
painters expend
the endless labour
upon
their pictures
which
—they
are
always putting in or taking out colours, or whatever be the term which artists employ; they seem as if they would never cease touching up their works, which are always being
made
brighter and
Cle.
I
more
beautiful.
know something of these matters from
I have never had any great acquaintance with the art. Ath. No matter; we may make use of the Suppose that illustration notwithstanding: some one had a mind to paint a figure in the
report, although
—
most beautiful manner,
work as
instead of losing
time went on *Cf.
ix.
853,
in the
—do you not
ff.; xii.
hope that
his
would always improve
956.
ff.
see that
being a
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
706
some one to succeed which time may introduce, and be able to add what is left imperfect through the defect of the artist, and who will further brighten up and improve the mortal, unless he leaves
him who
picture,
will correct the flaws
his great labour will last but a short
all
Cle.
True.
Ath.
And
—and is
not the aim of the legislator sim-
he desires that his laws should be written down with all possible exactness; in the second place, as time goes on and he has made an actual trial of his decrees, will he not find omissions? Do you imagine that there ilar? First,
ever was a legislator so foolish as not to
many
know
things are necessarily omitted, which
some one coming after him must correct, if the and the order of government is not to deteriorate, but to improve in the state which constitution
he has established? Cle. Assuredly, that is the sort of thing which every one would desire. Ath. And if any one possesses any means of accomplishing this by word or deed, or has any way great or small by which he can teach a person to understand how he can maintain and amend the laws, he should finish what he has to say, and not leave the work incomplete. Cle. By all means. [yyo] Ath. And is not this what you and I have to do at the present moment? Cle. What have we to do? Ath. As we are about to legislate and have chosen our guardians of the law, and are ourselves in the evening of life, and they as compared with us are young men, we ought not only to legislate for them, but to endeavour to make them not only guardians of the law but legislators themselves, as far as this
Cle. Certainly;
Ath. At any Cle.
Ath.
There was one main point about which we were agreed that a man's whole energies throughout life should be devoted to the acquisition of the virtue proper to a man, whether this was to be gained by study, or habit, or some mode of acquisition, or desire, or opinion, or
time?
that
of the law ought to keep in view.
Of
if
rate,
we can. we must do our
is
possible.
best.
—
knowledge
men and women,
and young the aim of all should always have described; anything which I may be an impediment, the good man ought to old
be such as
show
that he utterly disregards.
necessity plainly compels
him
And
if
at last
an outlaw from his native land, rather than bow his neck to the yoke of slavery and be ruled by inferiors, and he has to fly, an exile he must be and endure all such trials, rather than accept another form of government, which is likely to make men worse. These are our original principles; and do you now, fixing your eyes upon the standard of what a man and a citizen ought or ought not to be, praise and blame the laws blame those which have not this power of making the citizen better, [j"i] but embrace those which have; and with gladness receive and live in them; bidding a long farewell to other institutions which aim at goods, as they are termed, to be
of a different kind.
Let us proceed to another class of laws, beginning with their foundation in religion. And
we must entire
first
—
number 5040 the many connumber of the tribes
return to the
number had, and
has, a great
venient divisions, and the which was a twelfth part of the whole, being correctly formed by 21 x 20 [5040 -f (21 x 20), i.e., 5040 -r- 420 =12], also has them. And not only is the whole number divisible by
number of each tribe is diby twelve. Now every portion should be regarded by us as a sacred gift of Heaven, corresponding to the months and to the revolution of the universe. Every city has a guiding and sacred principle given by nature, but in some the division or distribution has been more right than in others, and has been more sacred and fortunate. In our opinion, nothing can be more right than the selection of the number 5040, which may be divided by all numbers from one to twelve with the single exception of eleven, and that admits of a very easy correction; for if, turning to the dividend (5040), we deduct two families, the defect in the division is cured. And the truth of this may be easily proved when we have leisure. But for the prestwelve, but also the
visible
1
course.
We
will say to
them
—O friends and
down any law, which we shall omit, and this cannot be helped; at the same time, we will do our utmost to describe what is important, and will give an outline which you shall fill up. And I will explain on what principle you are to act. Megillus and Cleinias and I have often spoken to one another touching these matters, and we are of opinion that we have spoken well. And we hope that you will be of the same mind with us, and become our disciples, and keep in view the things which in our united opinion the legislator and guardian saviours of our laws, in laying there are
this applies equally to
many
particulars
ent, trusting to the 1
mere
Cf. Timaeus, 39, 47.
assertion of this prin-
LAWS and assigning to each portion some God or son of a God, let us give them altars and sacred rites, and at the ciple, let us divide the state;
hold assemblies for sacrifice twice twelve assemblies for the tribes, and twelve for the city, according to their dialtars let us
month
in the
—
visions; the first in
honour of the Gods and
divine things, and the second to promote friendship and "better acquaintance," as the phrase
good fellowship with one must be acquainted with whose families and whom they marry
and every
is,
sort of
another. For people those into
and with those
to
whom they give in marriage;
such matters, as far as possible, a man should deem it all important to avoid a mistake, and with this serious purpose let games be instix tuted in which youths and maidens shall dance together, [772] seeing one another and being seen naked, at a proper age, and on a suitable occasion, not transgressing the rules of modin
VI
707
mind, and suitable for the procreation of children, let him marry if he be still under the age of five-and-thirty years; but let him first hear how he ought to seek after 3 what is suitable and appropriate. For, as Clein4 ias says, every law should have a suitable prenection which
Cle. You recollect at the right moment, Stranger, and do not miss the opportunity which the argument affords of saying a word in season.
[773] Ath. I thank you. We will say to him is born of good parents O my son, you ought to make such a marriage as wise men would approve. Now they would advise you neither to avoid a poor marriage, nor specially
—
who
to desire a rich one; but
intendents and regulators of these games, and
And
he
they, together with the guardians of the law,
strong,
directors of choruses will be the super-
will legislate in
any matters which we have 2
omitted; for, as we said, where there are numerous and minute details, the legislator must leave out something. And the annual officers who have experience, and know what is want-
other things are
if
and with form connections; this will be for the benefit of the city and of the families which are united; for the equable and symmetrical tends infinitely more to virtue than the unmixed.
equal, always to to
The
to his
lude.
them
esty.
is
who
honour
inferiors,
—
conscious of being too head-
is
and carried away more than is fitting in all his actions, ought to desire to become the relation of orderly parents; and he who is of the opposite temper ought to seek the opposite
cient;
Let there be one word concerning all Every man shall follow, not after the marriage which is most pleasing to himself, but after that which is most beneficial to the state. For somehow every one is by nature prone to that which is likest to himself, and in this way the whole city becomes unequal in property and in disposition; and hence there
the several officers shall refer the omissions
least desire to
which come under their notice to the guardians and correct them, until all is perfect; and from that time there shall be no more change, and they shall establish and use the new laws with the others which the legislator originally gave them, and of which they are never, if they can help, to change aught; or, if some necessity overtakes them, the magistrates must be called into counsel, and the whole people, and they must go to all the oracles of the Gods; and if they are all agreed, in that case they may
an express provision, not only that the rich man shall not marry into the rich family, nor the powerful into the family of the powerful, but that the slower natures shall be compelled to enter into marriage with the quicker, and the quicker with the slower, may awaken anger as well as laughter in the minds of many; for
must make arrangements and improvements year by year, until such enactments and
ed,
provisions are sufficiently determined. years' experience of sacrifices
tending to
all
A
and dances,
if
ten ex-
particulars, will be quite suffi-
and if the legislator be alive they shall communicate with him, but if he be dead then
of the law,
make the change, but if they are not agreed, by no manner of means, and any one who dissents shall prevail, as the law ordains. Whenever any one over twenty-five years of age, having seen and been seen by others, believes himself to have found a marriage con1
8
Cf. Republic, v. 459. Cf 770. .
alliance.
marriages:
arise in
there
is
ought the
—
most
states the very results
happen.
Now,
to
add
which we law
to the
a difficulty in perceiving that the city
to be well
mingled
maddening wine
is
which
like a cup, in
hot and
fiery,
but
when
chastened by a soberer God, receives a fair associate and becomes an excellent and temper5 ate drink. Yet in marriage no one is able to see that the same result occurs. Wherefore also the law must let alone such matters, but we should 3
Cf. a
1335 4
5
Cf.
721,
iv.
and
iv.
723.
Cf Statesman, 306, .
Aristotle,
27-31 ff.
Politics,
vii.
16,
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
708 try to
charm
the spirits of
men
into believing
the equability of their children's disposition to
be of more importance than equality in excessive fortune when they marry; and him who is too desirous of making a rich marriage we should endeavour to turn aside by reproaches,
however, by any compulsion of written
not,
law.
1
—
and alien among his fellow-citizens, and is unmarried at thirty-five years of age, let
still
money, as was said beunmarried that the treasurers of Here were to exact the money, or pay the exact the
fore about the
—
fine themselves.
The first
betrothal by a father shall be valid in the degree, that by a grandfather in the second
degree, and in the third degree, betrothal by
who have the same father; but if there none of these alive, the betrothal by a mother shall be valid in like manner; in cases of unexampled fatality, the next of kin and the brothers
Let this then be our exhortation concerning marriage, and let us remember what was said before that a man should cling to immortality, [jJ4] and leave behind him children's children to be the servants of God in his place for ever. All this and much more may be truly said by way of prelude about the duty of marriage. But if a man will not listen, and remains unsocial
Gods
of these
him pay
a yearly fine;
—he who
is
of the highest
are
guardians
shall
have authority.
What
are to be
the rites before marriages, or any other sacred acts, relating either to future, present,
or past marriages, /7757 shall be referred to the interpreters; and he who follows their advice may be satisfied. Touching the marriage festival,
they shall assemble not
more than
and hxe female friends of both
number of members
five
families,
male and a
pay a fine of a hundred drachmae, and he who is of the second class a fine of seventy drachmae; the third class shall pay sixty drachmae, and the fourth thirty drachmae, and let the money be sacred to Here; he
like
who
census of each decreases: all men shall praise him who is obedient to the law; but he who is disobedient shall be punished by the guardians
class shall
does not pay the fine annually shall
owe
which the treasurer of the goddess shall exact; and if he fails in doing so, let him be answerable and give an account of ten times the sum,
money
the
marry
show
refuses to
in money, and honour which the younglet no young man volun-
punished
shall be thus
also be deprived of
er
He who
at his audit.
all
to the elder;
obey him, and, if he attempt to punish any one, let every one come to the rescue and defend the injured person, and he who is present and does not come to the rescue, shall be pronounced by the law to be a coward and a bad citizen. Of the marriage portion I have already spoken;" and again I say for the instruction of poor men that he who neither gives nor receives a dowry on account of poverty, has a compensation; for the citizens of our state are provided with the necessaries of life, and wives tarily
and husbands them on account
will be less likely to be insolent, to be
mean and
of property.
subservient to
And
he
who obeys this law will do who will not obey, and
a noble action; but he
gives or receives
more than
fifty
drachmae
the price of the marriage garments
as
he be of the lowest, or more than a mina, or a minaand-a-half, if he be of the third or second classes, or two minae if he be of the highest class, shall
and
owe that
sacred to 1
if
to the public treasury a similar sum, which is given or received shall be Here and Zeus; and let the treasurers
Cf. iv. 721.
a
Cf. v. 742.
of the family of either
and no man shall spend more than his means will allow; he who is of the richest class may spend a mina he who is of the second, half a mina, and in the same proportion as the sex,
—
of the
law
as a
man wanting
in true taste,
and
uninstructed in the laws of bridal song. Drunkenness is always improper, except at the festivals of the God who gave wine; and peculiarly dangerous, when a man is engaged in the business of marriage; at such a crisis of their lives a bride
and bridegroom ought to have all their them they ought to take care that
—
wits about ings; for
them
may
be born of reasonable beon what day or night Heaven will give
their offspring
increase,
ought not
who
can say? Moreover, they
to be begetting children
when
their
bodies are dissipated by intoxication, but their offspring should be compact and solid, quiet
and compounded properly; whereas the drunkard is all abroad in all his actions, and beside himself both in body and soul. Wherefore, also, the drunken man is bad and unsteady in sowing the seed of increase, and is likely to beget who will be unstable and untrustworthy, and cannot be expected to walk straight
offspring
body or mind. Hence during the whole year and all his life long, and especially while he is begetting children, he ought to take care and not intentionally do what is injurious to health, or what involves insolence and wrong; for he cannot help leaving the impression of himself on the souls and bodies of his offspring, and he begets children in every way either in
LAWS And
on the day and night of marriage should a man abstain from such things. For the beginning, which is also a God inferior.
especially
dwelling in man, [776] preserves all things, if meet with proper respect from each individual. He who marries is further to consider that one of the two houses in the lot is the nest and nursery of his young, and there he is to marry and make a home for himself and bring up his
VI
709
sense ought to trust
them? And the wisest of
our poets, speaking of Zeus, says:
away half the understandthe day of slavery subdues.
Far-seeing Zeus takes
men whom
ing of
it
away from
and mother. For in friendships there must be some degree of desire, in order to cement and bind tochildren, going
his father
gether diversities of character; but excessive intercourse not having the desire which is created by time, insensibly dissolves friendships from a feeling of satiety;
wherefore a
man and
his
wife shall leave to his and her father and mother their own dwelling-places, and themselves go as to a colony and dwell there, and visit and be visited by their parents; and they shall beget and bring up children, handing on the torch of life from one generation to another, and worshipping the Gods according to law for ever. In the next place, we have to consider what sort of property will be most convenient. There
no
understanding or acquiring most kinds of property, but there is
is
difficulty either in
great difficulty in
what
relates to slaves.
And
we
speak about them in a way which is right and which is not right; for what we say about our slaves is consistent and also inconsistent with our practice about them. Megillus. I do not understand, Stranger, the reason
is
that
what you mean. Ath.
am
not surprised, Megillus, for the Helots among the Lacedaemonians is of all Hellenic forms of slavery the most controverted and disputed about, some approving I
state of the
and some condemning
it;
there
is
less
dispute
about the slavery which exists among the Heracleots, who have subjugated the Mariandynians, and about the Thessalian Penestae. Looking at these and the like examples, what ought we to do concerning property in slaves? I made a remark, in passing, which naturally elicited a question about my meaning from you. It was this: We know that all would agree that we should have the best and most attached slaves whom we can get. For many a man has found his slaves better in every way than brethren or sons, and many times they have saved the lives and property of their masters and their whole house such tales are well known. Meg. To be sure. Ath. But may we not also say that the soul of
—
—
the slave
is
utterly corrupt,
and that no
man
[777] Different persons have got these two different notions of slaves in their minds some of them
—
utterly distrust their servants, and, as
they
—
country, Stranger, seeing that there are such differences in the treatment of slaves by their
owners ? Ath. Well, Cleinias, there can be no doubt man is a troublesome animal, and therefore he is not very manageable, nor likely to become so, when you attempt to introduce the necessary division of slave, and freeman, and that
master. Cle.
That
is
obvious.
Ath. He is a troublesome piece of goods, as has been often shown by the frequent revolts of the Messenians, and the great mischiefs which happen in states having many slaves who speak the same language, and the numerous
and lawless life of the Italian banthey are called. man who considers
robberies ditti, as all
this
A
is
fairly at a loss.
—
Two
remedies alone
remain to us not to have the slaves of the same country, nor if possible, speaking the same 1
language; in this way they will more easily be held in subjection: secondly, we should tend them carefully, not only out of regard to them, but yet more out of respect to ourselves. And the right treatment of slaves is to behave properly to them, and to do to them, if possible, even more justice than to those who are our equals; for he who naturally and genuinely reverences justice, and hates injustice,
is
ered in his dealings with any class of
whom
he can easily be unjust.
And
he
discov-
men who
to in
regard to the natures and actions of his slaves is undefiled by impiety and injustice, will best
sow
the seeds of virtue in them;
and
this
may
be truly said of every master, and tyrant, and of every other having authority in relation to his inferiors. Slaves ought to be punished as they deserve, and not admonished as if they were freemen, which will only make them conceited. [778] The language used to a servant 1
of
if
were wild beasts, chastise them with goads and whips, and make their souls three times, or rather many times, as slavish as they were before; and others do just the opposite. Meg. True. Cle. Then what are we to do in our own
Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
vii. 10,
1330
a
23-33.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
710
1
ought always to be that of a command, and we ought not to jest with them, whether they are males or females this is a foolish way which many people have of setting up their slaves, and making the life of servitude more disagreeable both for them and for their masters. Cle. True. Ath. Now that each of the citizens is provided, as far as possible, with a sufficient number of suitable slaves who can help him in what he
—
has to do,
we may
next proceed to describe
their dwellings.
The
city
being
new and
hitherto unin-
habited, care ought to be taken of
all
the build-
and the manner of building each of them, and also of the temples and walls. These, Cleinias, were matters which properly came before ings,
the marriages; but, as is
no objection
to
we
are only talking, there
changing the order.
ever, our plan of legislation
is
If,
how-
ever to take
ef-
then the house shall precede the marriage so will, and afterwards we will come to the regulations about marriage; but at present we are only describing these matters in a genfect, if
God
eral outline.
Cle. Quite true.
The temples
round on the 2 heights in a circle, for the sake of defence and Near the temples are to of purity. for the sake be placed buildings for the magistrates and the courts of law; in these plaintiff and defendant will receive their due, and the places will be regarded as most holy, pardy because they have to do with holy things, and partly because they are the dwelling-places of holy Gods: and in them will be held the courts in which cases of homicide and other trials of capital offenses may fitly take place. As to the walls, Megillus, I Ath.
the agora,
are to be placed
and the whole
city
all
built
agree with Sparta in thinking that they should be allowed to sleep in the earth, and that we should not attempt to disinter them; ' there is a poetical saying,
which
"walls ought to be of of earth"; besides,
finely expressed, that
is
steel
how
and
iron,
and not
ridiculous of us to be
sending out our young men annually into the country to dig and to trench, and to keep off the enemy by fortifications, under the idea that they are not to be allowed to set foot in our territory, and then, that we should surround ourselves with a wall, which, in the first place, is by no means conducive to the health of cities, 1 2
Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
Cf
•CL
i.
a
Ibid., vii. 12, 1331 Ibid., ii,
is
in the
also apt to
minds
produce
a certain effeminacy
of the inhabitants, inviting
men
run thither instead ot repelling their enemies, /77a/ and leading them to imagine that their safety is due not to their keeping guard day and night, but that when they are protected by walls and gates, then they may sleep in salety; as if they were not meant to labour, and to
know
did not
that true repose
comes from
la-
bour, and that disgrace! ul
indolence and a only the renewal of
temper of mind is But if men must have walls, the private houses ought to be so arranged from the first that the whole city may be one wall, having all the houses capable of defence by reason of their uniformity and equality towards the streets.* The form of the city being that of a single dwelling will have an agreeable aspect, and being easily guarded will be infinitely betcareless
trouble.
Very good.
Cle.
Ath.
and
b
1330
13,
1260
29-31.
3i-35-
b
2-8.
ter for security. Until the original building is completed, these should be the principal objects
of the inhabitants;
and the wardens of the
city
should superintend the work, and should impose a fine on him who is negligent; and in all that relates to the city they should have a care of cleanliness, and not allow a private person to encroach upon any public property either by buildings or excavations. Further, they ought to take care that the rains from heaven flow off easily, and of any other matters which may have to be administered either within or without the city. The guardians of the law shall pass any further enactments which their experience may show to be necessary, and supply any other points in which the law may be deficient.
And now
that these matters,
and the
buildings about the agora, and the gymnasia,
and places of instruction, and theatres, are all ready and waiting for scholars and spectators, let us proceed to the subjects which follow marriage in the order of legislation. Cle. By all means. Ath. Assuming that marriages exist already, Cleinias, the mode of life during the year after marriage, before children are born, will follow
next in order. In what
way
bride and bride-
which is to be matter not at all easy for us to determine. There have been many difficulties already, but this will be the greatest of them, and the most disagreeable to the many. Still I cannot but say what appears to me to be right and true, Cleinias.
groom ought
to live in a city
superior to other
cities, is a
[j8o] Cle. Certainly. Ath.
He who
imagines that he can give laws
'Ct.lbid., 11, 1330
b
21-27.
LAWS for the public conduct of states, while he leaves the private life of citizens wholly to take care of itself; who thinks that individuals may pass
the day as they please, necessity of order in
gives
up
all
and
that there
things; he,
I
no
is
say,
the control of their private lives,
who and
supposes that they will conform to law in their common and public life, is making a great mistake.
Why
have
I
made
this
remark? Why,
be-
cause I am going to enact that the bridegrooms should live at the common tables, just as they did before marriage. This was a singularity
when
enacted by the legislator in your parts of the world, Megillus and Cleinias, as I should suppose, on the occasion of some war or 1 other similar danger, which caused the passing of the law, and which would be likely to occur in thinly-peopled places, and in times of pressure. But when men had once tried and been accustomed to a common table, experience first
conduced to security; and in some such manner the custom of having common tables arose among you. Cle. Likely enough. Ath. I said that there may have been singularity and danger in imposing such a custom at first, but that now there is not the same difficulty. There is, however, another institution which is the natural sequel to this, and would be excellent, if it existed anywhere, but at present it does not. The institution of which I am
showed
that the institution greatly
about to speak
not easily described or exelike the legislator "combing wool into the fire," as people say, or performing any other impossible and useless feat. Cle. What is the cause, Stranger, of this excuted; and
is
would be
treme hesitation? Ath. You shall hear without any fruitless loss of time. That which has law and order in a state is the cause of every good, but that which disordered or ill-ordered is often the ruin of which is well-ordered; [j8i] and at this point the argument is now waiting. For with you, Cleinias and Megillus, the common tables is
that
of
men
are, as
I
heaven-born and admiryou are mistaken in leavunregulated by law. They have said, a
able institution, but
ing the
women
no similar
institution of public tables in the
VI
711
have been far better, if they had been only regulated by law; for the neglect of regulations about women may not only be regarded as a neglect of half the entire matter,
2
but in proportion as woman's nature is inferior to that of men in capacity for virtue, in that degree the
consequence of such neglect as important.
The
more than twice
is
careful consideration of this
matter, and the arranging and ordering on a common principle of all our institutions relat-
ing both to
men and women,
greatly conduces
to the happiness of the state.
such
is
But at present, the unfortunate condition of mankind,
no man of sense will even venture to speak common tables in places and cities in which
that of
they have never been established at all; and how can any one avoid being utterly ridiculous,
who
attempts to compel women to show in how much they eat and drink? There is
public
which the sex is more likely to take For women are accustomed to creep into dark places, and when dragged out into the light they will exert their utmost powers of resistance, and be far too much for the legislator. And therefore, as I said before, in most places they will not endure to have the truth spoken without raising a tremendous outcry, but in this state perhaps they may. And if we may assume that our whole discussion about the state has not been mere idle talk, I should like to prove to you, if you will consent to listen, that this institution is good and proper; but if you had rather not, I will refrain. Cle. There is nothing which we should both of us like better, Stranger, than to hear what you have to say. Ath. Very good; and you must not be surprised if I go back a little, for we have plenty of leisure, and there is nothing to prevent us from considering in every point of view the nothing
at
offence.
subject of law. Cle. True.
Then let us return once more to what we were saying at first. Every man should understand that the human race either had no beAth.
ginning at all, and will never have an end, but always will be and has been; [782] or that it 3 began an immense while ago.
and just that part of the human which is by nature prone to secrecy and stealth on account of their weakness I mean
tions
the female sex
pursuits both orderly
light of day,
Cle. Certainly.
race
Ath. Well, and have there not been constitu-
—has been
tion by the legislator,
And,
—
left
which
is
without regulaa great mistake.
consequence of this neglect, many things have grown lax among you, which might in
'Cf.i.o^^.
and destructions of states, and all sorts of and disorderly, and diverse desires of meats and drinks always, and in all the world, and all sorts of changes of the 2
3
Aristotle, Politics,
C£.
iii.
676.
i.
13,
1260
b
8-24.
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
712
may be expected to have undergone innumerable transformations of themselves? seasons in which animals
Cle.
No
doubt.
And may we
Ath.
not suppose that vines ap-
peared, which had previously no existence, and also olives, and the gifts of Demeter and her
daughter, of which one Triptolemus was the minister, and that, before these existed, animals took to devouring each other as they do still? Cle. True.
Ath. Again, the practice of men sacrificing one another still exists among many nations; while, on the other hand, we hear of other human beings who did not even venture to taste the flesh of a cow and had no animal sacrifices, but only cakes and fruits dipped in honey, and similar pure offerings, but no flesh of animals; from these they abstained under the idea that they ought not to eat them, and might not stain the altars of the Gods with blood. For in those days men are said to have lived a sort of Orphic life, having the use of all lifeless things, but abstaining from all living things. Cle. Such has been the constant tradition, and is very likely true.
Some one might
Ath.
say to us,
What
is
the
drift of all this?
Cle.
A
ias, if I
very pertinent question, Stranger.
And
Ath.
therefore
can, to
draw
I
will
endeavour, Clein-
the natural inference.
Cle. Proceed.
Ath.
upon is
I
see that
among men
three wants
virtue,
opposite
if if
and
all
things depend
desires, of
which the end
they are rightly led by them, or the wrongly. Now these are eating and
drinking, which begin at birth
—every animal
has a natural desire for them, and is violently and rebels against him who says that
excited,
all his pleasures and appeand get rid of all the corresponding pains and the third and greatest and [78]] sharpest want and desire breaks out last, and is the fire of sexual lust, which kindles in men every species of wantonness and madness. And these three disorders we must endeavour to master by the three great principles of fear and law and right reason; turning them away from that which is called pleasantest to the best, using the Muses and the Gods who preside over contests to extinguish their increase and influx. But to return: After marriage let us speak of the birth of children, and after their birth of their nurture and education. In the course
he must not satisfy tites,
—
—
of discussion the several laws will be perfected,
and we
shall at last arrive at the
common
ta-
Whether such associations are to be conmen, or extended to women also, we shall see better when we approach and take a nearer view of them; and we may then determine what previous institutions are required and will have to precede them. As I said before, we shall see them more in detail, and shall be bles.
fined to
down
better able to lay
the laws
which
are
proper or suited to them. Cle.
Very
true.
Ath. Let us keep in mind the words which have now been spoken; for hereafter there may be need of them. Cle. What do you bid us keep in mind?
Ath. That which
words
the three
—
we comprehended under
first,
eating, secondly, drink-
ing, thirdly, the excitement of love.
Cle.
We shall be sure to remember, Stranger.
Ath. Very good. Then let us now proceed to marriage, and teach persons in what way they shall beget children, threatening them, if they disobey, with the terrors of the law. Cle.
Ath.
What do you mean? The bride and bridegroom
should con-
produce for the state the specimens of children which
sider that they are to best
and
fairest
they can.
Now
all
men who
are associated in
any action always succeed when they attend and give their mind to what they are doing, but when they do not give their mind or have no mind, they fail: wherefore let the bridegroom give his mind to the bride and to the begetting of children, and the bride in like manner give her mind to the bridegroom, and particularly at the time when their children are not yet born. [784] And let the women whom be the overseers of such mat-
we have chosen
them
in whatever number, large whatever time the magistrates may command, assemble every day in the temple of Eileithyla during a third part of the day, and being there assembled, let them inform one another of any one whom they see, whether ters,
and
or small,
man
or
let
and
at
woman,
of those
who
are begetting
children, disregarding the ordinances given at
when the nuptial sacrifices and ceremonies were performed. Let the begetting of children and the supervision of those who are begetting them continue ten years and no longer, during the time when marriage is fruitful. But if any continue without children up to this time, let them take counsel with their kindred and with the women holding the office of overseer and be divorced for their mutual benefit. If, however, any dispute arises about what is proper and for the interest of either party, they the time
LAWS shall choose ten of the guardians of the law and abide by their permission and appointment. The women who preside over these matters
houses of the young, and and partly by threats them give over their folly and error: if
shall enter into the
VII
713
military service, let the time of service be after she shall have brought forth children up to fifty years of age; and let regard be had to what is
possible
and suitable
partly by admonitions
make
women
go and tell the guardians of the law, and the guardians shall prevent them. But if they too cannot prevent them, they shall bring the matter before the people; and let them write up their names and make oath that they cannot reform such and such an one; and let him who is thus written up, if he cannot in a court of law convict those who have inscribed his name, be deprived of they persist,
let
the
to each.
BOOK
VII
And now, assuming
[j88]
sexes to have been born,
it
children of both
will be proper for us
to consider, in the next place, their nurture and education; this cannot be left altogether un-
noticed,
and
yet
may
be thought a subject fitted
rather for precept and admonition than for law.
the privileges o£ a citizen in the following re-
life there are many little things, not always apparent, arising out of the pleasures and pains and desires of individuals, which run counter to the intention of the legislator, and
let him not go to weddings nor to the spects: thanksgivings after the birth of children; and
dissimilar:
—
if he go, let any one who pleases strike him with impunity; and let the same regulations hold about women: let not a woman be allowed to appear abroad, or receive honour, or go to
nuptial and birthday festivals,
manner be written up
she in like
if
as acting disorderly
and
cannot obtain a verdict. And if, when they themselves have done begetting children according to the law, a man or woman have connection with another man or woman who are still begetting children, let the same penalties be inflicted upon them as upon those who are still having a family; and when the time for
procreation has passed
who and
the
let
man
or
woman
refrains in such matters be held in esteem,
those
let
who do
contrary of esteem
Now,
esteem.
if
not refrain be held in the
—that
is
to say,
[j8$]
the greater part of
dis-
mankind
behave modestly, the enactments of law may be left to slumber; but, if they are disorderly, the enactments having been passed, let them be carried into execution. To every man the first year is the beginning of life, and the time of birth ought to be written down in the temples
In private
make
the characters of the citizens various
—
this is
an
evil in states; for
and
by rea-
son of their smallness and frequent occurrence, would be an unseemliness and want of propriety in making them penal by law; and if made penal, they are the destruction of the written law because mankind get the habit of frequendy transgressing the law in small matters. The result is that you cannot legislate about them, and still less can you be silent. I speak somewhat darkly, but I shall endeavour also to bring my wares into the light of day, for there
I
acknowledge that
clearness in Cleinias.
at present there
what I am Very true.
is
a
want of
saying.
Am
I not right in mainAthenian Stranger. taining that a good education is that which tends most to the improvement of mind and body? Cle. Undoubtedly. Ath. And nothing can be plainer than that the fairest bodies are those which grow up from infancy in the best and straightest manner?
Cle. Certainly.
And do we not further observe that the shoot of every living thing is by far the
Ath. first
and
Many
even contend
of their fathers as the beginning of existence
greatest
whether boy or girl. Let every phratria have inscribed on a whited wall the names of the successive archons by whom the
that a
And near to them let the members of the phratria be inscribed, and when they depart life let them be erased. The limit of marriageable ages for a woman
Ath. Well, and is not rapid growth without proper and abundant exercise the source of end-
to every child,
years are reckoned. living
shall be
from
sixteen to twenty years at the
longest
for a
man, from
years;
a
man
—
and
let a
if
woman
at thirty years.
from twenty
thirty to thirty-five
hold office at forty, and Let a man go out to war
to sixty years,
there appear any need to
and
for a
make
woman,
use of her in
man
the height
fullest?
at twenty-five
will
does not reach twice
which he attained
at five.
Cle. True.
less evils in the
body?
Cle. Yes.
[j8g] Ath. And the body should have the most exercise when it receives most nourish-
ment ? Cle. But, Stranger, are
great fants?
amount
of exercise
we
to
impose
this
upon newly-born
in-
DIALOGUES OF PLATO
714
Ath. Nay, rather on the bodies of infants still unborn. Cle. What do you mean, my good sir? In the
Ath, Ridicule, and the difficulty of getting the feminine and servant-like dispositions of the nurses to comply.
process of gestation? Ath. Exactly. I am not at
of the matter at
you have never heard of
Cle. all
surprised that
which, although strange,
I
little
will
creatures,
endeavour
to
explain to you. Cle.
By
all
Ath.
this very peculiar sort
of gymnastic applied to such
means.
arrive at a true conviction that without
is to say, not their own health, but the health of the birds; whereby they prove to any intelligent person, that all bodies are
of health, that
benefited by shakings and movements,
moved without
when
weariness, whether the
motion proceeds from themselves, or is caused by a swing, or at sea, or on horseback, or by other bodies in whatever way moving, and that thus gaining the mastery over food and drink, they are able to impart beauty and health and strength. But admitting all this, what follows? Shall we make a ridiculous law that the pregnant woman shall walk about and fashion the
we
fashion
wax
before
it
hardens, and after birth swathe the infant for two years? Suppose that we compel nurses, under penalty of a legal fine, to be always carrying the children somewhere or other, either to the temples, or into the country, or to their relations' houses, until they are well able to stand, to take care that their
torted by leaning on
young
2
—they
limbs are not
them when they
dis-
are too
should continue to carry them until the infant has completed its third year; the nurses should be strong, and there should be more than one of them. Shall these be our rules, and shall we impose a penalty for the neglect of them? [790] No, no; the penalty of which we were speaking will fall upon our own heads more than enough. Cle. What penalty? 1 2
due
life in cities, stability
in
down of laws is hardly to be expected; and he who makes this reflection may himself adopt the laws just now mentioned, and, adopting them, may order his house and a
state well
Cf. Republic, v. 459. Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
and be happy. enough.
Cle. Likely
1
and
The reason is that masters and freemen when they hear of it. are very likely to
the laying
keeping quails and cocks, which they train to fight one another. And they are far from thinking that the contests in which they stir them up to fight with one another are sufficient exercise; for, in addition to this, they carry them about tucked beneath their armpits, holding the smaller birds in their hands, the larger under their arms, and go for a walk of a great many miles for the sake
as
there any need to speak
r
in states,
sons, are in the habit of
embryo within
all
regulation of private
Ath. The practice is more easy for us to understand than for you, by reason of certain amusements which are carried to excess by us at Athens. Not only boys, but often older per-
they are
Then why was
Ath.
And
therefore
legislation until
let
us proceed with our
we have determined
the exer-
which are suited to the souls of young children, in the same manner in which we have begun to go through the rules relating to their cises
bodies. Cle. By all means. Ath. Let us assume, then, as a first principle in relation both to the body and soul of very young creatures, that nursing and movingabout by day and night is good for them all, and that
the younger they are, the *
it;
if
infants should live,
if
more they that
were
will
need
possible, as
they were always rocking at sea. This
is
—
of this?
The reason is obvious. What Ath. The affection both of Ath. Cle.
3
the Bacchantes
and of the children is an emotion of fear, which springs out of an evil habit of the soul. And when some one applies external agitation to affections of this [ygi] sort, the motion coming from without gets the better of the terrible and violent internal one, and produces a peace and calm in the soul, and quiets the restless palpitation of the heart, which is a thing much to be desired, sending the children to sleep, and 3
vii. 17,
1336
*
8-15.
the
which we may gather from the experience of nurses, and likewise from the use of the remedy of motion in the rites of the Corybantes; for when mothers want their resdess children to go to sleep they do not employ rest, but, on the contrary, motion rocking them in their arms; nor do they give them silence, but they sing to them and lap them in sweet strains; and the Bacchic women are cured of their frenzy in the same manner by the use of the dance and of music. Cle. Well, Stranger, and what is the reason lesson
Cf. Republic, v. 449. *Cf. Aristotle, Politics,
vii.
17,
1336* 8-15.
— LAWS making
VII
715
and producing in them a sound mind, which takes the place of their frenzy. And, to express what I mean in a word, there is a good
be pleased, but, when he weeps and cries out, then he is not pleased. For tears and cries are the inauspicious signs by which children show what they love and hate. Now the time which is thus spent is no less than three years, and is a very considerable portion of life to be passed
deal to be said in favour of this treatment.
ill
awake, the
the Bacchantes, although they remain
dance
to
Gods
to
with the help of they offer acceptable sacri-
to the pipe
whom
fices,
or well. Cle. True.
Cle. Certainly.
Ath. But to infer
if
be
Ath. Does not the discontented and ungracious nature appear to you to be full of lamenta-
facts, that
from youth upward fears, will
power we ought
every soul which has been familiar with
fear has such a
from these
made more
1
every one will allow that this a habit of cowardice Cle.
No
and the way to form
liable to fear, is
and not of courage.
doubt.
Ath. And, on the other hand, the habit of overcoming, from our youth upwards, the fears
and
terrors
which
beset us,
may
be said to be
an exercise of courage. Cle. True. Ath. And we may say that the use of exercise and motion in the earliest years of life greatly contributes to create a part of virtue in the soul. Cle. Quite true. Ath. Further, a cheerful temper, or the reverse, may be regarded as having much to do with high spirit on the one hand, or with cow-
ardice Cle.
on the other.
To
be sure.
Then now we must endeavour to show how and to what extent we may, if we please, Ath.
without
difficulty
implant either character in
the young. Cle. Certainly.
Ath. There is a common opinion, that luxury makes the disposition of youth discontented and irascible and vehemently excited by
on the other hand excessive and savage servitude makes men mean and abject, and haters of their kind, and therefore makes them undesirable associates. Cle. But how must the state educate those who do not as yet understand the language of the country, and are therefore incapable of appreciating any sort of instruction? Ath. I will tell you how: Every animal that is born is wont to utter some cry, and this is especially the case with man, and he is also affected with the inclination to weep more than trifles;
that
—
any other animal. Cle. Quite true. Ath. Do not nurses, when they want to know what an infant desires, [J92] judge by these signs? when anything is brought to the infant and he is silent, then he is supposed to
—
1
Cf. Republic,
iii.
386.
and sorrows more than
tions
a
good man ought
to be?
Cle. Certainly.
Ath. Well, but if during these three years every possible care were taken that our nursling should have as little of sorrow and fear, and in general of pain as was possible, might we not expect in early childhood to make his
more
2
and cheerful ? be sure, Stranger more especially if we could procure him a variety of pleasures. Ath. There I can no longer agree, Cleinias: you amaze me. To bring him up in such a way would be his utter ruin; for the beginning is always the most critical part of education. Let us see whether I am right. Cle. Proceed. Ath. The point about which you and I differ is of great importance, and I hope that you, Megillus, will help to decide between us. For I maintain that the true life should neither seek for pleasures, nor, on the other hand, entirely avoid pains, but should embrace the middle 3 state, which I just spoke of as gentle and benign, and is a state which we by some divine presage and inspiration rightly ascribe to God. soul
Now,
gentle
—
To
Cle.
I
say,
he
among men,
too,
divine ought to pursue after this
who would be mean habit
he should not rush headlong into pleasures, for he will not be free from pains; nor should we allow any one, young or old, male or female, to be thus given any more than ourselves, and least of all the newly-born infant, for in infancy more than at any other time the character is engrained by habit. Nay, more, if I were not afraid of appearing to be ridiculous, I would say that a woman during her year of pregnancy should of all women be most carefully tended, and kept from violent or excessive pleasures and pains, and should at that time cultivate gentleness and benevolence and kindness. [793] C/